Lincoln Political Writings


321 113 3MB

English Pages 300

Report DMCA / Copyright

DOWNLOAD PDF FILE

Table of contents :
01......Page 1
02......Page 9
03......Page 13
04......Page 15
05......Page 38
06......Page 42
07......Page 50
08......Page 52
09......Page 57
09......Page 59
09......Page 67
09......Page 76
09......Page 78
09......Page 92
09......Page 97
09......Page 110
09......Page 119
09......Page 124
09......Page 145
09......Page 148
09......Page 167
09......Page 169
09......Page 171
09......Page 180
09......Page 195
09......Page 198
09......Page 203
09......Page 205
09......Page 209
09......Page 211
09......Page 223
09......Page 226
09......Page 228
09......Page 237
09......Page 242
09......Page 247
09......Page 249
09......Page 253
09......Page 257
09......Page 259
09......Page 262
09......Page 265
09......Page 266
09......Page 269
10......Page 275
10......Page 277
10......Page 279
10......Page 280
10......Page 281
10......Page 283
10......Page 284
10......Page 285
10......Page 287
10......Page 289
10......Page 291
10......Page 292
10......Page 295
10......Page 296
10......Page 297
11......Page 298
Recommend Papers

Lincoln Political Writings

  • 0 0 0
  • Like this paper and download? You can publish your own PDF file online for free in a few minutes! Sign Up
File loading please wait...
Citation preview

ABRAHAM LINCOLN

Political Writings and Speeches Abraham Lincoln occupies a unique place in the American pantheon. Symbol, sage, myth, and martyr, he is an American icon – Honest Abe and The Great Emancipator, a Janus-faced demigod sculpted in marble. But this is the post-assassination Lincoln. During his lifetime Lincoln elicited very different reactions. The writings and speeches presented in this scholarly edition illuminate Lincoln as a political thinker in the context of his own time and political situation. Opening with a concise yet rich introduction, the texts that follow are complete and carefully edited, with extensive annotation and footnotes to provide a clearer insight into Lincoln the man, the politician, and the political thinker. His views on race and slavery, on secession and civil war, and on the contradiction (as he saw it) between the Declaration of Independence (“all men are created equal”) and the original Constitution (which condones slavery) are laid out in Lincoln’s own well-crafted words. terence ball is Professor of Political Science and Philosophy at Arizona State University. He is the author of several books, including Transforming Political Discourse (1988), Reappraising Political Theory (1995), and a mystery novel, Rousseau’s Ghost (1998), and is coeditor (with Richard Bellamy) of The Cambridge History of Twentieth-Century Political Thought, among other works. He has previously edited The Federalist and coedited (with Joyce Appleby) Jefferson: Political Writings for the Cambridge Texts series.

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784

C A M B R ID G E T E X T S IN T H E H I S T O R Y O F P O L IT I C A L T H O U G H T

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784

CAMBRIDGE TEXTS IN THE HISTORY OF POLITICAL THOUGHT

Series editors R A Y M O N D G E U S S , Professor in Philosophy, University of Cambridge Q U E N T I N S K I N N E R , Barber Beaumont Professor of the Humanities, Department of History, Queen Mary, University of London Cambridge Texts in the History of Political Thought is now firmly established as the major student textbook series in political theory. It aims to make available to students all the most important texts in the history of Western political thought, from ancient Greece to the early twentieth century. All the familiar classic texts will be included, but the series seeks at the same time to enlarge the conventional canon by incorporating an extensive range of less well-known works, many of them never before available in a modern English edition. Wherever possible, texts are published in complete and unabridged form, and translations are specially commissioned for the series. Each volume contains a critical introduction together with chronologies, biographical sketches, a guide to further reading and any necessary glossaries and textual apparatus. When completed the series will aim to offer an outline of the entire evolution of Western political thought. For a list of titles published in the series, please see end of book

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784

ABRAHAM LINCOLN POLITICAL WRITINGS AND SPEECHES

EDITED BY

TERENCE BALL

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784

CAMBRIDGE UNIVERSITY PRESS

Cambridge, New York, Melbourne, Madrid, Cape Town, Singapore, São Paulo, Delhi, Mexico City Cambridge University Press The Edinburgh Building, Cambridge cb2 8ru, UK Published in the United States of America by Cambridge University Press, New York www.cambridge.org Information on this title: www.cambridge.org/9780521897280 © in the selection, introduction and editorial matter Cambridge University Press 2013 This publication is in copyright. Subject to statutory exception and to the provisions of relevant collective licensing agreements, no reproduction of any part may take place without the written permission of Cambridge University Press. First published 2013 Printed and bound in the United Kingdom by the MPG Books Group A catalogue record for this publication is available from the British Library Library of Congress Cataloguing in Publication data Lincoln, Abraham, 1809–1865. [Selections. 2013] Abraham Lincoln : political writings and speeches / edited by Terence Ball. p. cm. – (Cambridge texts in the history of political thought) Includes bibliographical references and index. i sbn 978- 0-521- 89728- 0 (hardback) – isbn 978-1-521-72226-1 (paperback) 1. Lincoln, Abraham, 1809–1865. 2. Presidents – United States – Biography. 3. United States – Politics and government – 1815–1861. 4. United States – Politics and government – 1861–1865. 5. Speeches, addresses, etc., American – 19th century. I. Ball, Terence. II. Title. e457.92 2012c 973.7092–dc23 [B] 2012023157 i sbn 978- 0-521- 89728- 0 Hardback i sbn 978- 0-521-72226-1 Paperback Cambridge University Press has no responsibility for the persistence or accuracy of URLs for external or third-party internet websites referred to in this publication, and does not guarantee that any content on such websites is, or will remain, accurate or appropriate.

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784

For Mary Dietz and James Farr In friendship

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784

The Gettysburg Address, Bancroft copy. Courtesy of the Division of Rare and Manuscript Collections, Cornell University Library.

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784

Contents Preface Introduction Chronology Biographical synopses A note on sources and abbreviations Bibliographical note I

page xiii xv xxxviii xlii l lii

Political Writings and Speeches

1. Autobiographical sketch (c. June 1860) 2. “The Perpetuation of Our Political Institutions”: Address to the Springfield Young Men’s Lyceum (January 27, 1838) 3. Limits of Presidential Power: To William H. Herndon (February 15, 1848) 4. Speech on the Kansas–Nebraska Act (October 16, 1854) 5. To Joshua F. Speed (August 24, 1855) 6. Speech on the Dred Scott Decision (June 26, 1857) 7. “A House Divided” Speech: Acceptance Speech for the Republican Senatorial Nomination (June 16, 1858) 8. Portion of a Speech at Edwardsville, Illinois (September 11, 1858) 9. Seventh Lincoln–Douglas Debate: Lincoln’s Reply (October 15, 1858) 10. On Thomas Jefferson: To Henry L. Pierce and Others (April 6, 1859) 11. Cooper Union Address (February 27, 1860)

1 3 11 20 22 36 41 54 63 68 89 92

ix

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:07, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784

Contents 12. Speech at Indianapolis, Indiana (February 11, 1861) 13. Speech at Independence Hall, Philadelphia (February 22, 1861) 14. First Inaugural Address (March 4, 1861) 15. Message to Congress in Special Session (July 4, 1861) 16. Appeal to Border-State Representatives for Compensated Emancipation (July 12, 1862) 17. Address on Colonization to a Committee of Colored Men (August 14, 1862) 18. To Horace Greeley (August 22, 1862) 19. Preliminary Emancipation Proclamation (September 22, 1862) 20. Proclamation Suspending the Writ of Habeas Corpus (September 24, 1862) 21. Second Annual Message to Congress (December 1, 1862) 22. Final Emancipation Proclamation (January 1, 1863) 23. To General John A. McClernand (January 8, 1863) 24. To Erastus Corning and Others (June 12, 1863) 25. To Matthew Birchard and Others: Reply to the Ohio Democratic Convention (June 29, 1863) 26. To James C. Conkling (August 26, 1863) 27. The Gettysburg Address (November 19, 1863) 28. Third Annual Message to Congress (December 8, 1863) 29. Proclamation of Amnesty and Reconstruction (December 8, 1863) 30. Reply to the New York Working-men’s Democratic Republican Association (March 21, 1864) 31. To Albert G. Hodges (April 4, 1864) 32. To Charles D. Robinson (August 17, 1864) 33. Reply to a Southern Woman (December 6 [?], 1864) 34. “With Malice toward None”: Second Inaugural Address (March 4, 1865) 35. Speech on Reconstruction (Lincoln’s last speech) (April 11, 1865)

111 113 115 124 139 142 147 149 153 155 167 170 172 181 186 191 193 197 201 203 206 209 210 213 219

II Notes and Fragments 36. On Government (1854?) 37. On Slavery (1854?)

221 223 x

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:07, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784

Contents 38. 39. 40. 41. 42. 43. 44. 45. 46. 47. 48. 49.

On Slavery and Democracy (1858?) On Pro-slavery Theology (1858?) On the Struggle against Slavery (c. July 1858) On Racial (In)equality 1: First Lincoln–Douglas Debate (August 21, 1858) On Racial (In)equality 2: Fourth Lincoln–Douglas Debate (September 18, 1858) The Declaration of Independence includes all men: Fifth Lincoln–Douglas Debate (October 7, 1858) On Slavery, Property, and the Constitution: Fifth Lincoln– Douglas Debate (October 7, 1858) On Labor and Capital 1 (1846 or 1847) On Labor and Capital 2: Address to the Wisconsin State Agricultural Society (September 30, 1859) On Labor and Capital 3: Speech at New Haven, Connecticut (March 6, 1860) On Liberty: Address at Sanitary Fair, Baltimore, Maryland (April 18, 1864) On the Thirteenth Amendment (abolition of slavery): Fourth Annual Message to Congress (December 6, 1864)

Index

224 225 227 228 229 231 233 235 236 239 240 241 242

xi

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:07, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:07, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784

Preface Abraham Lincoln is legendary among American presidents. And yet the Lincoln legend sometimes makes it difficult to find Lincoln the man, the politician – and the political thinker. My hope is that this addition to the vast literature on Lincoln aids that search in some small way. Anyone who undertakes the task of selecting and annotating Lincoln’s writings immediately faces several difficulties. First, Lincoln was a skilful politician who played his cards close to his vest. It is often difficult, if not impossible, to discern his “real” meaning. When he writes or says something that sounds despicably racist, for example, is he speaking from the heart or attempting to placate an audience of rabid racists? A second difficulty is that it is impossible to master the voluminous secondary literature on Lincoln, which continues to grow apace. This I know because when I agreed to edit this volume I tried – and finally failed – to master this massive corpus. But the attempt, although futile, was an education in itself. On a happier note, I have gratefully incurred a number of debts to scholars and students who have helped me by commenting critically and constructively on my Introduction. I owe a special debt to Russell Hanson and James Read for their close and careful reading of and extensive comments on a first full draft. Randolph Clay Aldridge and Robert W.T. Martin supplied several suggestions and corrections. I owe a more unusual debt to several of my students. I issued a challenge to those taking my undergraduate course in American Political Thought. I asked them to comment critically on my draft Introduction, paying particular attention to obscure references or unclear prose and to passages that could be reduced or eliminated entirely. Three undaunted students – xiii

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.001

Preface Joseph Campa, David Moakley, and Shane Newlands – accepted that challenge, and this book is the better for their astute comments, criticisms, and suggestions. I would also like to thank my wife Judith for checking the typescript and for preparing the index. Finally, though not least, I am indebted once again to Richard Fisher and to the editors of this series, Raymond Geuss and Quentin Skinner, for their patience and for commenting very helpfully on my Introduction. T.B. Madeline Island in Lake Superior

xiv

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.001

Introduction Abraham Lincoln occupies a unique place in the American pantheon. Symbol, sage, myth, and martyr, he is an American icon and touchstone – Honest Abe and The Great Emancipator, a Janus-faced demigod sculpted in marble. But that is the post-assassination Lincoln. During his lifetime Lincoln elicited very different reactions. To the abolitionist agitator Wendell Phillips, he was “that slave-hound from Illinois.” 1 To the abolitionist author and orator Frederick Douglass Lincoln was “preeminently the white man’s President, entirely devoted to the welfare of white men.” 2 In the eyes of southern slave-holders and sympathizers Lincoln was a radical abolitionist turned tyrant, a view shared by John Wilkes Booth. “Sic semper tyrannis!” – thus always to tyrants – Booth shouted after shooting Lincoln. My purpose here is to look at Lincoln as a political thinker. This is a more difficult task than might at first appear, for we cannot hope to understand Lincoln the thinker without understanding the constraints under which he thought and wrote and spoke. For Lincoln was, above all, a canny and shrewdly practical politician who had to win elections in order to accomplish anything at all. He was not an armchair philosopher who had the luxury of thinking and discoursing candidly (much less publicly) on the 1

2

Wendell Phillips to WHH, n.d., in Douglas L. Wilson and Rodney O. Davis, eds, Herndon’s Informants: Letters, Interviews, and Statements about Abraham Lincoln (Urbana: University of Illinois Press, 1998), p. 704. Frederick Douglass, “Oration delivered on the Occasion of the Unveiling of the Freedman’s Monument in memory of Abraham Lincoln, April 14, 1876,” in Harold Holzer, ed., The Lincoln Anthology: Great Writers on His Life and Legacy (New York: Library of America, 2009), p. 226.

xv

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction great moral and political issues of the day – slavery in particular. As president he steered a complex course between the shoals of radical abolitionism and pro-slavery secessionism, southern sympathizers in the North and border-state loyalists. He was more on the abolitionists’ side than they knew or acknowledged; but his actions were constrained by the Constitution, by his oath to uphold it, and by practical political necessity. If we are to understand Lincoln the political thinker, then we must put primary emphasis on the adjective “political,” for his thought is embedded in his actions and the justifications he offers in their defense.

Early life and education Little is known of Lincoln’s early life, and much of what we think we know is mistaken. This much we can say for certain. Lincoln was born in 1809, in humble circumstances – and, yes, in a log cabin – on the rugged Kentucky frontier. That, however, did not distinguish him from most babies born in that hardscrabble region. His mother, Nancy Hanks Lincoln, died when he was nine, and Thomas Lincoln married the widow Sarah Bush Johnston shortly thereafter. Lincoln showed little affection for his hard driving father but he never ceased to sing the praises of his stepmother, who showed him the love and affection of a real mother. He had little formal education, and that was spotty and sporadic at best. He later tried to teach himself by reading every book he could lay his hands on, including the King James Bible and Shakespeare, whose lingering influence can be seen in the rolling periods of his later oratory. His illiterate father demeaned and discouraged Abraham’s efforts at self-education and, with the notable exception of his stepmother, he received little or no encouragement from any other quarter. In an autobiographical sketch written for the 1860 presidential campaign Lincoln, describing himself in the third person, said that “the aggregate of his schooling did not amount to one year. He was never in a college or Academy as a student … What he has in the way of education, he has picked up … He regrets his want of education, and does what he can to supply the want.” 3 And to that end he did quite a lot. A voracious reader throughout his life, he never ceased to marvel at the wonders of the written word. “Writing – the art of communicating thoughts to the mind, through the

3

AL, “Autobiographical Sketch,” c. June, 1860 (see selection 1).

xvi

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction eye – is the great invention of the world.” 4 His youngest stepsister recalled that “Abe was not energetic except in one thing – he was active & persistent in learning,” and she marveled at her brother’s practice of copying out, memorizing, and reciting long passages. 5 Throughout his life Lincoln preferred to read aloud, to take words in through the ear as well as the eye. As Richard Hofstadter observes, “these are the reading habits of a man who is preparing for the platform.” 6 The Lincoln family moved frequently. Abraham was seven when the Lincolns left Kentucky for Indiana. His youth there and later in Illinois was spent in hard physical labor, which ranged from splitting logs to make fence posts and rails, to plowing, planting, and harvesting, to working on a flatboat plying the waters of the Ohio and Mississippi rivers. Twice (in 1828 and 1831) he and a friend floated their produce-laden flatboat all the way to New Orleans, an experience that both broadened and darkened his horizons. In a New Orleans slave market he saw men, women, and children being sold at auction like cattle. On another trip, to Louisville, Kentucky, he saw “ten or a dozen slaves, shackled together with irons. That sight was a continual torment to me; and I see something like it every time I touch the Ohio, or any other slave-border.” 7 Lincoln’s aversion to slavery was acquired early on. So, apparently, was his fondness for politics. In 1832 the 23-year-old Lincoln announced his candidacy for the Illinois House of Representatives. He campaigned hard but lost decisively everywhere except in New Salem where he was well known and respected. When he volunteered to serve briefly in the militia during the Black Hawk War he was elected captain. He later joked that the only blood shed was his, drawn by hungry mosquitoes. 8 Returning to New Salem, Lincoln worked by turns as hired hand, store clerk, mill hand, ferryman, surveyor, and other odd jobs. He longed for a less laborious and more genteel and respectable life. Frugal and hard-working, he invested his meager savings in a partner’s general store. 4 5

6

7 8

AL, “Lecture on Discoveries and Inventions,” April 6, 1858, SW II, p. 7. WHH interview with Matilda Johnston Moore, September 8, 1865, Herndon’s Informants, p. 109. Richard Hofstadter, The American Political Tradition: And the Men Who Made It, 2nd edn (New York: Knopf, 1973), p. 125. AL to Joshua Speed, August 24, 1855 (selection 5). AL’s remarks ridiculing his part in the Black Hawk War take the form of a humorous aside in his otherwise serious “Speech on the Presidential Question,” July 27, 1848, SW I, pp. 205–21, at 214. Hofstadter ranks these remarks as “one of the classics of American frontier humor” (American Political Tradition, p. 159).

xvii

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction After his feckless partner drank up all the profits and died the store went bankrupt, leaving Lincoln with enormous debts. Although legally liable for his half only, Lincoln insisted on paying all creditors in full. His reputation as “honest Abe” would soon stand him in good stead. Lincoln’s first campaign, although unsuccessful, had whetted his appetite for politics. In 1834 he ran again for the Illinois House of Representatives, as a Whig, and was elected. Whigs favored a protective tariff to encourage domestic manufacturing, and federal and state government expenditures on roads, railroads, bridges, and canals as a means of encouraging commerce within and between the states. The leading national Whig was Henry Clay of Kentucky, whom Lincoln called “my beau ideal of a statesman.” 9 Closer to home, Lincoln was befriended by the prominent Illinois Whig, John Todd Stuart, the minority leader in the House. The two men roomed together at the state capital in Vandalia, and Stuart encouraged Lincoln to study the law in his spare time. Under Stuart’s tutelage he read Sir William Blackstone’s Commentaries on the Laws of England and other works. Lincoln passed the Illinois bar examination and in September 1837 was licensed to practice law, which raised his standing among House colleagues and also helped secure his financial future. During his time in the Illinois House he also came to know another up-and-coming politician, the 21-year old Democrat Stephen A. Douglas, who was later to become Lincoln’s arch-rival and most formidable foe. Lincoln’s career in the Illinois House of Representatives was undistinguished. He was instrumental in moving the state capital from Vandalia to Springfield, and in 1837 he and fellow representative Dan Stone sponsored a resolution opposing slavery and abolitionism alike – the former because “the institution of slavery is founded on both injustice and on bad policy,” and the latter because “abolition doctrines” make matters worse by stirring the pot.10 Whether his rather conventional and conservative political views came from conviction or ambition we do not know. “He was always calculating and planning ahead,” his law partner later recalled. “His ambition was a little engine that knew no rest.” 11 Lincoln longed for 9

10 11

AL, “A House Divided,” June 16, 1858 (selection 7). “Henry Clay was his favorite of all the great men of the nation[;] he all but worshiped his name”: J. Rowan Herndon to WHH, May 28, 1865, in Herndon’s Informants, p. 8. See also AL’s eulogy for Henry Clay, July 6, 1852, SW I, pp 259–72. “Protest in the Illinois Legislature on Slavery,” March 3, 1837, SW I, p. 18. WHH and Jesse W. Weik, Herndon’s Life of Lincoln, ed. Paul M. Angle (Greenwich, CT: Fawcett Publications, 1961), p. 304.

xviii

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction a larger stage, and to that end he cultivated friendships, campaigned for the Whig presidential candidate William Henry Harrison in 1840, married his social superior Mary Todd (of the slave-owning Kentucky Todds) in 1842, and sought (unsuccessfully) the Whig nomination for the US Congress in 1843. All the while he never refused an invitation to speak on topics ranging from temperance to the preservation of American political institutions. Written and delivered not only to inform his audience but to impress them with his eloquence, Lincoln’s early orations were rather conventional, and a far cry from the deft and self-assured speeches of the 1850s and early 1860s. But some, such as his 1838 speech to the Young Men’s Lyceum of Springfield, show the young lawyer-legislator to be a political thinker who had thought deeply about some serious questions. One of these is the question of the proper role of religion and remembrance in public life. Little is known of Lincoln’s religious beliefs. Critics claimed that he had none and was in fact a free-thinker or atheist. So widespread and persistent was this politically damning criticism that Lincoln felt it necessary to issue a public denial.12 Although his denial was vague and apparently half-hearted, Lincoln wholeheartedly embraced and espoused an American civil religion. Like Machiavelli, Rousseau, and other republican thinkers he had probably never read, Lincoln believed that a shared civil religion was needed to cement the citizenry together from generation to generation. He spoke of the need for a “political religion” to bind Americans together.13 The English word “religion” derives from the Latin ligare, “to bind fast.” A republican civil religion would tie citizens tightly to their origins, reminding them from where the republic came, and why. Thus a key feature of republican political thinking is its emphasis on time and memory or remembrance, especially of foundings and founders. The passage of time does what cannons cannot: It dims and even erases memory, most especially of the American Revolution and the Founding. “[What] invading foemen could never do, the silent artillery of time has done.” 14 Lincoln thought it imperative that citizens of the 12 13

14

“Handbill Replying to Charges of Infidelity,” July 31, 1846, in SW I, pp 139–40. “Address to the Young Men’s Lyceum of Springfield, Illinois,” January 27, 1838 (selection 2); AL’s italics. Ibid. On the importance attached to time and memory by the republican tradition, see Bruce James Smith, Politics and Remembrance (Princeton University Press, 1985): A republic is “a type of regime erected upon the injunction: remember” (p. 7).

xix

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction American republic should resist the ravages of time by commemorating – that is, remembering together – the origins of their republic, those who founded it, and the texts that serve as its secular scripture. As we shall see shortly, in the 1850s and finally and most memorably at Gettysburg in 1863, Lincoln elevated the Declaration of Independence to the status of American scripture.15 In addition to substantive speeches, Lincoln wrote letters to and satirical pieces for newspapers, and poetry that was nostalgic and sentimental, in the manner of the songs of Stephen Foster. And, not least, Lincoln presided over an increasingly successful law practice with his junior partner (and future biographer), William H. Herndon. For Lincoln the courtroom was a theater in which to practice and perfect his craft, not only as a lawyer but as a politician and orator. The tall, raw-boned, and physically powerful young attorney impressed clients and adversaries alike with his hard work, conscientious preparation, and capacity to build a convincing case backed by argument and evidence and illustrated with apt and often amusing anecdotes. His increasingly lucrative law practice notwithstanding, Lincoln had lost none of his political ambition, and in 1846 he was nominated for and elected to the United States Congress. Determined to stand out and make a name for himself, Congressman Lincoln publicly and courageously questioned the constitutionality of President James K. Polk’s decision to wage war with Mexico.16 But the Mexican-American War (1846–48) was wildly popular with most Americans – not least because it annexed Mexico’s northern territories (most of present-day New Mexico, Arizona, Colorado, California, and Nevada) to the United States – and Lincoln was not nominated for a second term.17 His first and only congressional term at an end, Lincoln returned to Illinois to practice law full time. The profitability of his law practice, along with his ever-growing family, seems to have quieted his political ambitions, at least for a time. He campaigned for other candidates but did not stand for office himself. 15

16

17

See Pauline Maier, American Scripture: Making the Declaration of Independence (New York: Knopf, 1997), especially pp. 197–215. “Speech in the US House of Representatives on the War with Mexico,” January 12, 1848, SW I, pp. 161–71. AL defends his speech in a letter to Herndon, February 15, 1848 (selection 3). Lincoln’s opposition to the war with Mexico continued to be used against him by political opponents. “While still in Congress,” Senator Stephen A. Douglas said, “he distinguished himself by his opposition to the Mexican war, taking the side of the common enemy against his own country.” First Lincoln–Douglas debate, August 21, 1858, SW I, pp. 500–501.

xx

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction Then, in 1854, lightning struck. Senator Stephen A. Douglas, Democrat of Illinois, successfully sponsored the Kansas–Nebraska Act, which overturned the Missouri Compromise of 1820 and allowed the extension of slavery into the western territories acquired in the Louisiana Purchase and the Cession following the war with Mexico. Written into the Act was Douglas’s doctrine of “popular sovereignty,” according to which white male settlers in the territories would decide democratically whether theirs was to be a free or a slave state. Outraged and unwilling to remain silent, Lincoln was determined to act.

Into the gathering storm Writing of himself in the third person Lincoln recalled, “In 1854, his profession had almost superseded the thought of politics in his mind, when the repeal of the Missouri Compromise aroused him as he had never been before.” 18 Although angry, he at first held his fire. He studied the language and the reasoning of the Act, looking for logical fallacies and historical inaccuracies. He made a careful study of the history of and justification offered for the Missouri Compromise. Like the lawyer he was, Lincoln constructed his case carefully and meticulously. After three months of preparation he was ready, and armed at all points. With pro-slavery forces fighting “free soilers” in “bleeding Kansas,” and alarmed at the controversy he had helped to create, Senator Douglas returned to Illinois to defend his Act. Following Douglas all across the state, Lincoln took to the stump with the longest and best speech of his heretofore undistinguished career. His 17,000-word address took three hours to deliver and was fiery, learned, passionate and dispassionate by turns, and a tour de force. He tore into Douglas, his Kansas–Nebraska Act, and his doctrine of popular sovereignty in particular. How is it, Lincoln asked, that free men are entitled to decide, democratically, to enslave others?19 For his part, Douglas claimed to be indifferent to the spread of slavery and to be a democrat who would leave that decision to the will of the people (or rather, strictly speaking, to a majority of enfranchised white men). To this, Lincoln thundered:

18 19

“Autobiographical Sketch,” June 1860 (selection 1). “Speech on the Kansas–Nebraska Act” (selection 4).

xxi

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction This declared indifference, but as I must think, covert real zeal for the spread of slavery, I can not but hate. I hate it because of the monstrous injustice of slavery itself. I hate it because it deprives our republican example of its just influence in the world – enables the enemies of free institutions, with plausibility, to taunt us as hypocrites – causes the real friends of freedom to doubt our sincerity, and especially because it forces so many really good men amongst ourselves into an open war with the very fundamental principles of civil liberty – criticising the Declaration of Independence, and insisting that there is no right principle of action but self-interest.20

With the passage of the Kansas–Nebraska Act, Our republican robe is soiled, and trailed in the dust. Let us repurify it. Let us turn and wash it white, in the spirit, if not the blood, of the Revolution … Let us re-adopt the Declaration of Independence, and with it, the practices, and policy, which harmonize with it … If we do this, we shall not only have saved the Union; but we shall have saved it, as to make, and keep it, forever worthy of the saving. 21

Fired up as never before, Lincoln reentered politics and won election to the state legislature. But when it became clear that anti-Nebraska Democrats and Whigs had gained control of the legislature, he resigned his seat to stand for the US Senate in 1855. (Under the original Constitution, and before the Seventeenth Amendment [1913], US senators were elected not by popular vote but by state legislatures.) Lincoln led in early balloting but began to lose ground. When it seemed certain that a Douglas ally and pro-Nebraska Democrat would win, Lincoln withdrew and threw his support to the anti-Nebraska Democrat Lyman Trumbull, who won on the tenth ballot. To say that Lincoln was disappointed would be an understatement. He had come close, but not close enough, to winning a seat in the United States Senate. He would have his turn again three years later. The Kansas–Nebraska Act had set Kansas ablaze and divided the Democratic and Whig parties. The only party that was foursquare against the spread of slavery was the newly formed “free soil and free labor” Republican Party. Lincoln joined. In Lincoln’s view the Kansas–Nebraska Act was nothing short of disastrous, but it was at least a disaster with the legislative remedy of repeal. And if the growing ranks of Republicans had their way, it would

20

Ibid.

21

Ibid.

xxii

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction be remedied. But in 1857, three years after the Act, came another and even heavier blow in the form of a decision handed down by the United States Supreme Court. Dred Scott was a slave whose master had taken him to the free state of Illinois and the Wisconsin Territory, and Scott argued that he was therefore free since slavery was not legal in any free state or territory. When the case reached the US Supreme Court, a majority (seven of nine Justices) ruled that Scott was not and could not be a citizen and so had no “standing” to bring a case; but, clearly contradicting itself, the Court took the case anyway, ruling against Scott. That tortured and lengthy majority opinion, written by Chief Justice Roger B. Taney, is succinctly summarized by Lincoln: The Constitution of the United States forbids Congress to deprive a man of his property, without due process of law; the right of property in slaves is distinctly and expressly affirmed in that Constitution; therefore, if Congress shall undertake to say that a man’s slave is no longer his slave, when he crosses a certain line into a territory, that is depriving him of his property without due process of law, and is unconstitutional. 22

But the loss was not Scott’s alone. The Dred Scott decision was radical and far-reaching. Indeed, it went much further than the Kansas–Nebraska Act, in that it declared the Missouri Compromise to have been unconstitutional and said that Congress could not exclude slavery anywhere, including already-existing free states and future states to be carved out of the Western territories.23 The Court also declared that even free Negroes and mulattos were not and could never be citizens of the United States, adding that blacks are “beings of an inferior order, and altogether unfit to associate with the white race, either in social or political relations, and so far inferior that they had no rights which the white man was bound to respect.” 24

22

23

24

AL, “Speech at Columbus, Ohio,” September 16, 1859, SW II, p. 52. The Dred Scott decision reads like an extended gloss of the argument advanced by South Carolina Senator John C. Calhoun in his “Speech on the Oregon Bill” (June 27, 1848), in Union and Liberty: The Political Philosophy of John C. Calhoun, ed. Ross M. Lence (Indianapolis, IN: Liberty Fund, 1992), especially p. 557. On the decision’s impact see Don E. Fehrenbacher, The Dred Scott Case: Its Significance in American Law and Politics (Oxford University Press, 1978). Dred Scott v. Sandford (1857), in Henry Steele Commager, ed., Documents of American History, 2 vols, 7th edn (New York: Appleton-Century-Crofts, 1963), vol. I, pp. 339–45, at 342.

xxiii

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction The Dred Scott decision seemed to have dealt a decisive blow to the Republican Party’s goal of stopping the spread of slavery.25 Greatly alarmed at the prospect of slavery’s further extension, Lincoln once again entered the fray with a measured but blistering attack on that decision and on Douglas, who had defended it. The core of Lincoln’s critique was the error and absurdity of Taney’s and Douglas’s assertion that the Declaration of Independence’s promise of equality applies only to whites, not to blacks. This, says Lincoln, is a blatant distortion of the plain words of the Declaration that “all men are created equal.” The words “all men” mean “all men.” Slavery tramples the right to liberty and the pursuit of happiness, and sometimes the right to life itself. Once held sacred, the Declaration is now demeaned and defamed: “To aid in making the bondage of the negro universal and eternal, it is assailed, and sneered at, and construed, and hawked at, and torn, till, if its framers could rise from their graves, they could not at all recognize it.” 26 To read the Declaration as Lincoln and the Republicans read it, Douglas claimed, not only would eventually destroy the institution of slavery but would allow blacks to associate with whites on equal terms. The unacceptable upshot will be that blacks will intermarry (or “amalgamate”) with whites. Lincoln’s reply was by turns humorous, acerbic, and principled. Douglas and other Democrats are “especially horrified at the thought of the mixing blood by the white and black races: agreed for once – a thousand times agreed. There are white men enough to marry all the white women, and black men enough to marry all the black women; and so let them be married.” 27 And: “I protest against that counterfeit logic which concludes that, because I do not want a black woman for a slave I must necessarily want her for a wife. I need not have her for either, I can just leave her alone.” And then, anticipating an argument he would use against Douglas a year later, Lincoln added: “In some respects she certainly is not my equal; but in her natural right to eat the bread she earns with her own hands without asking leave of anyone else, she is my equal, and the equal of all others.” 28 In the wake of the Dred Scott decision American slavery had acquired a new lease on life. Having been both ardent and articulate in his opposition 25

26

The Dred Scott decision could be countermanded in only one of two ways: Either the Court could reverse itself by rescinding its decision; or the Constitution could be amended (which is what happened in 1865 with the passage of the Thirteenth Amendment). See selection 49. 27 28 “Speech on the Dred Scott Decision,” June 26, 1857 (selection 6). Ibid. Ibid.

xxiv

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction to Douglas’s Kansas–Nebraska Act and Douglas’s defense of the Dred Scott decision, Lincoln was well positioned to secure the nomination of Illinois Republicans for the 1858 Senate race. Upon receiving their nomination Lincoln delivered his most electrifying speech to date. “A house divided against itself cannot stand,” he said, quoting the words of Jesus in the Gospel of Mark (3: 25). “I believe this government cannot endure, permanently half slave and half free. I do not expect the Union to be dissolved – I do not expect the house to fall – but I do expect it will cease to be divided. It will become all one thing or all the other.” 29 The Kansas–Nebraska Act, followed by the Dred Scott decision, pointed in one direction only: If not stopped, slavery would spread until it became universal in the United States.

The Lincoln–Douglas Debates Having made his name and reputation in Republican circles in Illinois and beyond, Lincoln was the party’s obvious choice to run against Douglas in the 1858 Senatorial election. The two had tangled before, but the stage was now set for their most memorable and protracted encounter yet. The more established and better-known Douglas graciously assented to Lincoln’s suggestion that they engage in seven debates at various venues around the state. The debates drew large and frequently raucous audiences. In mid-nineteenth-century America political rallies and debates were a source of mass entertainment, amusement, and information. Under the US Constitution of the day, voters could not vote directly for Douglas or for Lincoln – that would be done by the state legislature – but legislators leaned the way their constituents wanted them to.30 The two men made an odd pair. At nearly six and a half feet, the tall and gangly Lincoln towered over the five-foot four-inch “Little Giant.” Renowned as a fierce and formidable debater, Douglas was to meet his match in Lincoln. In their first debate, however, Lincoln stumbled, taken aback by Douglas’s repeated references to the “Black Republican Party” which he claimed was really a front for the “Abolition Party” led by Lincoln’s good friend “Fred Douglass” (i.e., the former slave turned

29 30

“A House Divided” Speech, June 16, 1858 (selection 7). The Lincoln–Douglas debates doubtless helped pave the way for the Seventeenth Amendment (1913) which changes Art. I, sec. 3 to require that senators be elected by direct popular vote.

xxv

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction eloquent abolitionist Frederick Douglass) who, he alleged, consorted with white women.31 Douglas knew his audience well. Many, perhaps most, citizens of Illinois were negrophobes and racists, some were favorably disposed to the institution of slavery, and most were ill-disposed to abolitionists and to the very idea that blacks were (or conceivably could ever be) full and free citizens of the United States. Ten years before the Lincoln–Douglas debates seven out of ten Illinois voters had approved a constitutional amendment to keep all blacks out of their state. When campaigning against Douglas, Lincoln had to tread a fine line on the issues of race and slavery. Douglas did not demur from making blatantly racist appeals to the Illinois electorate, and tried time and again (albeit unsuccessfully) to lure Lincoln into a contest to decide which of the two contenders was the more ardent racist. Not surprisingly, the Lincoln–Douglas debates focused on the intensifying conflict over slavery and what it portended for the future of the American republic. Douglas disputed Lincoln’s view that the nation could not continue to exist half free and half slave. It had done so since the Founding; why should it not continue? Besides, Lincoln’s attacks on slavery would only alienate the South and give it good reason to secede from the Union. Lincoln’s alleged abolitionist leanings and belief in “negro equality” were like sparks to gunpowder. And, reiterating his defense of the Dred Scott decision, Douglas denied that the Declaration of Independence referred to “all men” regardless of race. Douglas repeated his and Chief Justice Taney’s claim that, in writing “all men are created equal,” Jefferson meant all white men. To argue otherwise, as Lincoln had, is a “monstrous heresy.” 32 Such assertions were typically met with loud applause all across the state, and especially in its southern counties. When campaigning in the negrophobic southern part of the state, Lincoln was not above defending himself in terms that were racist, or close to it: “I am not, nor ever have been, in favor of bringing about in any way the social and political equality of the white and black races. I am not nor ever have been in favor of making voters or jurors of negroes, nor of qualifying them to hold office, nor to intermarry with white people.” 33 Even so, Lincoln argued for a rough kind of racial equality, even as he appeared to equivocate. He assuaged his negrophobic audience by speaking 31 32 33

First Lincoln–Douglas Debate, August 21, 1858, SW I, pp 495–536, at 505. Fifth Lincoln–Douglas Debate, October 7, 1858, SW I, pp 697–8. Fourth Lincoln–Douglas Debate, September 18, 1858, SW I, pp 636–84, at 636.

xxvi

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction in favor of racial segregation and black inferiority even as he argued for the natural rights of all races. Lincoln had a talent for turning quickly and seamlessly from pandering politician to principled moralist, as can be seen in the following excerpt from the first debate. First comes the pander: I have no purpose to introduce political and social equality between the white and the black races. There is a physical difference between the two, which in my judgment will probably forever forbid their living together upon the footing of perfect equality, and inasmuch as it becomes a necessity that there must be a difference, I, as well as Judge Douglas, am in favor of the race to which I belong, having the superior position. I have never said anything to the contrary, but [he continues in a more elevated and principled vein] I hold that notwithstanding all this, there is no reason in the world why the negro is not entitled to all the natural rights enumerated in the Declaration of Independence, the right to life, liberty and the pursuit of happiness. [Loud cheers.] I hold that he is as much entitled to these as the white man. I agree with Judge Douglas he is not my equal in many respects – certainly not in color, perhaps not in moral or intellectual endowment. But in the right to eat the bread, without leave of anybody else, which his own hand earns, he is my equal and the equal of Judge Douglas, and the equal of every living man. [Great applause.]34

The apparent pander is a prelude to a ringing reaffirmation of the natural rights of all human beings, regardless of race. After making so bold as to declare that the Declaration applies to all human beings, Lincoln seems to slip – “I agree with Judge Douglas he is not my equal in many respects – certainly not in color, perhaps not in moral or intellectual endowment” – but this is no slip: It is an interjection between two then-radical and quite daring statements of moral principle. Lincoln had been nominated because he was best able to articulate the Republicans’ “free soil, free labor” view that slavery is the institutionalized theft of one man’s labor by another.35 Time and again Lincoln drove the point home. Slavery not only degrades individual slaves and deprives them of the fruits of their labor; it demeans the dignity of labor itself, whether the laborer be white or black, free or slave. And, not least,

34 35

First Lincoln–Douglas Debate, August 21, 1858, SW I, pp 495–536, at 512. See Eric Foner, Free Soil, Free Labor, Free Men: The Ideology of the Republican Party before the Civil War, 2nd edn (Oxford University Press, 1995).

xxvii

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction Lincoln attempted to allay his audiences’ deep-seated negrophobia by appealing to their self-interest as free laborers. Because crops grown and goods manufactured by slaves are cheaper than those grown and made by free men, slavery threatened the livelihood of free laborers in Illinois and elsewhere. Lincoln’s contest with Douglas ended with the latter’s reelection. But if Lincoln’s debates with Douglas did not secure the victory he sought, he gained something else: increasing national prominence, particularly in Republican circles.

Lincoln for president Even as the Lincoln–Douglas debates enhanced Lincoln’s national visibility, they helped throw the Democratic Party into disarray. At the beginning of the debates Douglas was well positioned not only to retain his Senate seat, but to be nominated for president by the national Democratic Party two years later. In the course of the debates, however, Lincoln laid a trap for Douglas and the Democrats. How, he asked in their second debate at Freeport, could settlers in a territory – relying on Douglas’s doctrine of popular sovereignty – decide democratically to keep slavery out of that territory, since the Supreme Court had declared in the Dred Scott case that they could not do so? Had the Court not made Douglas’s doctrine obsolete and inapplicable? Douglas’s reply, which came to be known as the “Freeport Doctrine,” held that settlers in such territories could decide democratically not to enact and enforce a territorial slave code, effectively making theirs a free territory and subsequently a free state. This answer enraged southern Democrats, splitting the party into a northern and a southern wing and almost certainly ensuring the election of a Republican president in 1860. Before ensuring that Lincoln would be that Republican, he first had to assure prominent eastern Republicans that an obscure, homely, and selfeducated lawyer from the western prairies would not make their party a laughingstock. The Republican Party, and the country, needed a president to bring peace to a nation nearing the precipice of civil war. Several slave states were poised to secede from the Union, even as abolitionists goaded them to try. In 1859 the militant abolitionist John Brown led a raid on the federal arsenal at Harpers Ferry, Virginia in the hope of arming slaves and inciting a slave insurrection throughout the South. Although unsuccessful, Brown’s xxviii

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction raid greatly increased Southerners’ apprehensions that their “peculiar institution” was in grave danger from abolitionists and Republicans who were, in their eyes, one and the same. As a possible Republican nominee for president, Lincoln would have to reassure the South without losing the support of the North. In the autumn of 1859 Lincoln was invited to what was, for all practical purposes, a job interview: Under the sponsorship of the Young Men’s Republican Union he was to address a large audience at New York’s Cooper Union. On February 27, 1860, after months of meticulous preparation Lincoln was ready to make his case that – contrary not only to Douglas’s view and the Supreme Court’s Dred Scott decision, but to William Lloyd Garrison and the radical abolitionists as well – the Constitution was not a pro-slavery compact. A majority of the Founders held that the federal government had the authority to prevent the spread of slavery in its territories. Patiently and painstakingly Lincoln showed that Douglas and the Court had been wrong, factually and historically, about the Founders’ beliefs and intentions.36 Lincoln went on to reassure the South that the Republican Party had no intention of interfering with the institution of slavery in the South; its policy was to prevent the extension of slavery, not to eliminate it. Lincoln concluded by addressing his fellow Republicans, asking them to stand by their principled policy of preventing the spread of slavery while recognizing full well the evil of that institution. At the conclusion of his address the audience of fifteen hundred rose to their feet, roaring and clapping their approval. Prominent Republicans in the audience concluded that no other Republican could have done what Lincoln did that evening. The next day Lincoln’s speech was reprinted and praised handsomely in the newspapers of New York and other eastern cities. Any lingering doubts about Lincoln’s fitness for the presidency had been laid to rest.37 While in the east Lincoln gave several speeches, all variations on his “Cooper Union Address.” In New Haven, Connecticut to visit his son Robert, then a student at the Phillips Exeter Academy preparing to enter Harvard, Lincoln elaborated his party’s pro-labor platform. A shoemakers’ strike was then spreading throughout New England, and Lincoln used it to illustrate the difference between free labor and slave labor. 36 37

AL, “Cooper Union Address,” February 27, 1860 (selection 11). Harold Holzer, Lincoln at Cooper Union: The Speech that Made Abraham Lincoln President (New York: Simon & Schuster, 2004).

xxix

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction I am glad to see that a system of labor prevails in New England under which laborers CAN strike when they want to, where they are not obliged to work under all circumstances, and are not tied down and obliged to labor whether you pay them or not! I like the system which lets a man quit when he wants to, and wish it might prevail everywhere. One of the reasons why I am opposed to Slavery is just here. What is the true condition of the laborer? I take it that it is best for all to leave each man free to acquire property as fast as he can. Some will get wealthy. I don’t believe in a law to prevent a man from getting rich; it would do more harm than good. So while we do not propose any war upon capital, we do wish to allow the humblest man an equal chance to get rich with everybody else.38

Using himself as a case in point, Lincoln added, “I am not ashamed to confess that twenty-five years ago I was a hired laborer, mauling rails, at work on a flat-boat – just what might happen to any poor man’s son!” And then, expanding upon his autobiographical aside, he continues: “I want every man to have the chance – and I believe a black man is entitled to it – in which he can better his condition – when he may look forward and hope to be a hired laborer this year and the next, work for himself afterward, and finally to hire men to work for him. That is the true system.” 39 This complements his earlier statement that “the democracy of to-day holds the liberty of one man to be absolutely nothing, when in conflict with another man’s right of property. Republicans, on the contrary, are for both the man and the dollar; but in cases of conflict, the man before the dollar.” 40 Lincoln’s eastern tour was a triumph. Republican newspapers all but nominated him for the presidency, and opposition Democratic Party papers agreed, with some trepidation, that Lincoln was the likely nominee. And indeed he was. At the Republican convention in Chicago in May 1860 Lincoln defeated his chief rival, New York senator William H. Seward, and was nominated on the third ballot. As was then the custom, presidential candidates, Lincoln included, did not give stump speeches; that was left to others. And, as expected, the Democratic Party split into a northern faction headed by Stephen A. Douglas and a southern splinter party led by Senator John C. Breckinridge of Kentucky; divided, the Democrats lost the election, and the Republican candidate from Illinois became president with not quite 40 percent of the popular vote.

38 39

AL, “Speech at New Haven, Connecticut,” March 6, 1860 (selection 47), at 144. 40 Ibid. AL to Henry L. Pierce and others, April 6, 1859 (selection 10).

xxx

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction

Lincoln as president When Lincoln was elected president in 1860 he was widely (and rightly) regarded in the North as a moderate on the issue of slavery. He did not advocate the abolition of that institution; he merely opposed its westward expansion. Why then did Southerners regard Lincoln’s elevation to the presidency as dangerous, and indeed disastrous, for the South? It was because they knew what Lincoln knew: that unless slavery was allowed to expand into the western territories, it was as good as dead, and within the foreseeable future. Although no card-carrying abolitionist, Lincoln was regarded by Southerners as a fellow-traveler and ally of the abolitionist movement. They were quite correct in their apprehensions. Lincoln believed that if slavery were extended beyond the South to territories to the west, it would survive and even thrive. The three-fifths clause of the Constitution (Article I, section 2) gave the slave-owning South an added advantage: For purposes of political representation in the House of Representatives every slave introduced into slave-holding states, old or new, would count for an additional three-fifths of a person. If, however, slavery were confined to the South, it would die out. Lincoln’s reasoning relied on simple arithmetic. As western territories became states, they would gain representation in the Congress. If these new states were slave states then the slave-owning interest would have ever-greater representation, and therefore increasing power and influence, in the Senate and, more especially, the House of Representatives. But if these territories entered the Union as free-soil states, over time the pro-slavery interest would have less and less representation in the Congress. Finally outnumbered there by anti-slavery interests, the slave states would constitute an increasingly isolated and outvoted minority. Southerners feared that a two-thirds majority in Congress and a three-quarters majority of free states could, and sooner or later would, amend the Constitution to abolish slavery. 41 In the four months between Lincoln’s election and his inauguration, seven Southern states seceded from the Union. South Carolina was the first to leave, on December 20, 1860; six others – Mississippi, Florida,

41

See, e.g., Mississippi’s “Resolutions on Secession,” November 30, 1860, which stated that Northerners “seek by an increase of abolition states ‘to acquire two thirds of both houses [of Congress]’ for the purpose of preparing an amendment to the Constitution of the United States, abolishing slavery in the States …” (Documents of American History, vol. I, p. 371).

xxxi

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction Alabama, Georgia, Louisiana, and Texas – soon followed and were subsequently joined by Virginia, North Carolina, Tennessee, and Arkansas. Nearly a month before Lincoln’s inauguration, a counter-republic called The Confederate States of America was formed, with Jefferson Davis as its president. President Lincoln hoped against hope to persuade them to return. Addressing absent Southerners in his First Inaugural Address Lincoln said, “I have no purpose, directly or indirectly, to interfere with the institution of slavery in the States where it exists. I believe I have no lawful right to do, and I have no inclination to do so.” He was, he said, bound by his oath of office to uphold the Constitution in all its parts, including those protecting the institution of slavery. And Southerners, for their part, were bound by the Constitution to remain in an intact and perpetual Union of the states. (Lincoln based this claim on the Preamble to the Constitution, which aimed “to form a more perfect Union.” The Union, Lincoln reasoned, could hardly be perfected by rending it asunder.) “It follows,” Lincoln continued, “that no State upon its own mere motion can lawfully get out of the Union [and] that resolves and ordinances to that effect are legally void …” Lincoln thus signaled his intention to view secession as an act undertaken not by sovereign states but by rebellious individuals within those states. “In your hands, my dissatisfied fellow-countrymen, and not in mine, is the momentous issue of civil war. The Government will not assail you. You can have no conflict without being yourselves the aggressors.” 42 The day after Lincoln spoke these words he received a message from Major Robert Anderson, commander of Fort Sumter, the Union garrison in South Carolina’s Charleston Harbor, saying that his soldiers would soon be hungry and thirsty, and in desperate need of medical and other supplies. Lacking these, he would be forced to surrender the fort and all its occupants. The new president ordered the Navy to prepare to send a relief expedition to Fort Sumter, and notified the South Carolina governor of his plan “to supply Fort Sumter with provisions only.” 43 The Confederate president and his cabinet agreed that the relief expedition must be stopped before it could be launched. Shortly before dawn on April 12 fifty Confederate batteries opened fire on Fort Sumter. And the war came. 42 43

First Inaugural Address, March 4, 1861 (selection 14). AL to Robert S. Chew [for delivery to Governor Pickens], April 6, 1861, SW II, p. 229.

xxxii

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction Thus began the most momentous and deadliest war ever fought by the United States. Between 1861 and 1865 some 2.1 million Northerners and 880,000 Southerners went to war against each other. The Civil War was slaughter on a mass scale, taking more American lives than were lost in all of America’s other wars from the Revolution to the present. Before it was over more than 750,000 Americans would be dead, killed by other Americans, on American soil. Hundreds of thousands of others were wounded or maimed. One of every five Northern and one in three Southern soldiers died. At the Battle of Gettysburg alone some 50,000 soldiers, Southern and Northern, were killed or wounded in three days of fierce fighting. The war was to last another two years. 44 President Lincoln’s part in that conflict was, and in some quarters remains, controversial. As commander-in-chief he kept close tabs on his generals, did his best to boost the morale of Union troops, and fought his own rearguard action against “Copperheads” – Northern Democrats who opposed the war and wanted to sue for peace at almost any price, including the perpetuation and extension of slavery. Once the war was underway Lincoln was determined to see it through – and to see its meaning made clear by being couched in the language of the Declaration of Independence. Shrewd strategist that he was, however, Lincoln knew that Northern public opinion must be assuaged and prepared slowly and carefully for any move in the direction of freedom for blacks and greater equality between the races. The Civil War, he insisted repeatedly, was being fought for one reason and one reason only: to keep the Union intact. There is no reason to doubt his sincerity on this point. Replying to an editorial penned by his friend (and staunch critic) Horace Greeley asking Lincoln to abolish American slavery with the stroke of his pen, Lincoln wrote: “My paramount object in this struggle is to save the Union, and it is not to save or to destroy slavery. If I could save the Union without freeing any slave I would do it, and if I could save it by freeing all the slaves I would do it; and if I could save it by freeing some and leaving others alone I would also do that.” 45 Even before replying to Greeley he had begun to lay the groundwork for at least partial emancipation.

44

45

For the Civil War’s doleful impact on soldiers and civilians alike, see Drew Gilpin Faust, This Republic of Suffering: Death and the American Civil War (New York: Knopf, 2008). AL to Horace Greeley, August 22, 1862 (selection 18).

xxxiii

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction The Emancipation Proclamation of January 1, 1863 aimed to free only those slaves residing in the Confederacy; it did not touch slavery in the slave-holding but non-rebellious border states. The Proclamation was made as a matter of military necessity, and publicly justified on those grounds alone. Lincoln reasoned, rightly, that the labor of Southern slaves was propping up and prolonging the Confederate war effort. If he could induce many of those slaves to escape in hope of finding freedom, he could cripple the South’s ability to fight. In his capacity as commander-in-chief Lincoln issued the prosaic Proclamation as a no-nonsense, low-key executive order. 46 The lawyerly and businesslike prose of the Proclamation was intentional. Lincoln sought to free slaves in the rebellious Confederacy without alarming slave owners and sympathizers in the loyal border states. But there was another, now often overlooked but then-controversial, clause of the Final Emancipation Proclamation. Escaped slaves, it said, were eligible to enlist as Union soldiers and sailors: “such persons of suitable condition, will be received into the armed service of the United States to garrison forts, positions, stations and other places …” 47 And sure enough, by war’s end, more than one in ten – some 200,000 – Union soldiers and sailors were of African ancestry. This prospect did not sit well with many in the border states and pleased almost no Northern Democrats. In Illinois Peace Democrats drafted resolutions opposing the Emancipation Proclamation, and especially its provision for arming freed blacks. What would come next, they asked? Black emancipation? Enfranchisement? Equality with whites? The very thought was anathema to them and to many others in Illinois and across the North. Union soldiers, they said, had not enlisted to free the slaves but to save the Union; if the aim is now to free the slaves, Northern soldiers would and should lay down their arms and cease to fight. Fearing the spread of such sentiments in Illinois and beyond, Lincoln’s friend James C. Conkling organized a mass meeting to oppose them, and invited Lincoln to address the gathering. Lincoln declined, but sent a powerfully worded letter which he asked Conkling to read aloud and “very slowly.” He reiterated his justification of partial emancipation on grounds of

46

47

Richard Hofstadter is correct, if rather unfair, in complaining that “the Emancipation Proclamation had all the moral grandeur of a bill of lading” (American Political Tradition, p. 169). Final Emancipation Proclamation, January 1, 1863 (selection 22).

xxxiv

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction military necessity, and added: “You say you will not fight to free negroes. Some of them seem willing to fight for you; but no matter. Fight you, then, exclusively to save the Union.” 48 Almost as controversial as the Emancipation Proclamation was President Lincoln’s Proclamation Suspending Habeas Corpus, issued two days after his Preliminary Emancipation Proclamation. 49 Once again, Lincoln’s justification turned on “military necessity” and his constitutional powers as commander-in-chief. Confederate sympathizers in the North and the border states had cut telegraph wires, torn up sections of railroad tracks along which Union troops and supplies were transported, and stirred up anti-war and anti-black feelings (indeed, the two were seen by some as interchangeable) among Northern laborers. Under Lincoln’s suspension of habeas corpus such fifth columnists could be (and indeed were) imprisoned without trial.50 When Chief Justice Taney and other critics complained that Lincoln’s suspension was unconstitutional, Lincoln quoted the words of the Constitution back at them. “Ours is a clear case of rebellion – … in fact, a clear, flagrant, and gigantic case of rebellion; and the provision of the Constitution [Article I, section 9] that ‘the privilege of the writ of habeas corpus shall not be suspended, unless when, in cases of rebellion or invasion, the public safety may require it,’ is the provision which specially applies to our present case.” 51 But the real constitutional question turned on who had the authority to suspend habeas corpus. Since the provision quoted by Lincoln is in Article I – which enumerates the powers of Congress – it appears that Lincoln did indeed overstep his constitutional authority and usurp a power that properly belonged to Congress. As his first term drew to a close Lincoln, and almost everyone else, believed he would not be reelected in 1864. The unpopular war was taking a terrible toll in lives, treasure, and the president’s popularity. His fortunes began to revive, however, when Union forces began to win more battles than they lost. Lincoln came to believe that the war must have, or be given, a larger meaning than Union victory and the defeat of the South – a meaning even larger than preserving the Union itself. 48 49 50

51

AL to James C. Conkling, August 26, 1863 (selection 26). Proclamation Suspending the Writ of Habeas Corpus, September 24, 1862 (selection 20). The most controversial case was that of former Ohio Congressman and leading Copperhead, Clement L. Vallandigham, who was imprisoned in 1863. See selections 24 and 25. AL to Erastus Corning and others, June 12, 1863 (selection 24).

xxxv

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction A turning-point came with the Battle of Gettysburg when Union forces began to prevail against the Confederacy. Because losses on both sides were especially horrific, it was decided to turn the battlefield into a national cemetery. Lincoln was invited to the dedication ceremony to “make a few appropriate remarks.” Those few remarks became the Gettysburg Address.52 In his best and briefest address Lincoln effectively recast the meaning of the Civil War. And he did so by reframing the war in the words and principles of the Declaration of Independence. “Four score and seven years ago our fathers brought forth on this continent a new nation, conceived in liberty and dedicated to the proposition that all men are created equal.” That opening sentence alone was controversial because, among other things, Lincoln radically reinterprets both the date and the meaning of the American Founding. If you do the math (four-score and seven = 87; 1863 minus 87 = 1776), Lincoln dates the American founding to 1776 and the Declaration of Independence, and not to 1788 and the ratification of the Constitution. The Declaration says that all men are created equal, with certain unalienable rights, including the rights to life, liberty, and the pursuit of happiness; the Constitution denies what the Declaration declares and affirms, and condones the institution of slavery (which is mentioned three times in the Constitution, without actually using the words slave or slavery).53 In so doing Lincoln seems to sign on, implicitly, to the abolitionist view (voiced by William Lloyd Garrison and Frederick Douglass, among others) that the Declaration, not the Constitution, is the first and truer charter of American liberty, and the Constitution – unless amended to accord with the Declaration by abolishing slavery – is forever freighted and stained with the blood of slaves. Lincoln then goes on to reframe and reinterpret the reasons for which the Civil War was still being fought. As a matter of historical fact – attested to by Lincoln’s pre-war speeches, along with letters written and speeches delivered early in the war – the war was being fought by the North to keep the Union intact, and nothing more. But as a matter of moral meaning the Civil War was recast by Lincoln as a conflict of an altogether different sort – as a struggle to deliver on the promise of the

52 53

See selection 27. The three-fifths clause (Art. I, sec. 2); the requirement that escaped slaves be returned to their masters (Art. IV, sec. 2); and the provision that Congress could, if it chose, outlaw the importing of slaves after 1808 (Art. I, sec. 9).

xxxvi

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Introduction “real” founding of 1776, which was stated in the form of a “proposition” that all men are created equal. With his reelection secured and the war’s end in sight Lincoln began to think in earnest about the fate and future of African-Americans, both Southern slaves and freemen alike. He feared that, once back in the Union, Southern slave owners would demand a return of their human “property.” The raison d’être of the Emancipation Proclamation – military necessity – would no longer apply. To return brave black soldiers and sailors to slavery would be unconscionable. Lincoln knew that the institution of American slavery could be abolished only by amending the Constitution. And to that end the Republican Party platform of 1864 proposed adding a Thirteenth Amendment to abolish the institution of slavery itself. With the President’s warm endorsement that amendment was proposed on January 31, ten weeks before Lincoln was assassinated, and ratified on December 6, nearly nine months after his death. In one fell swoop it negated and voided all the heated debates over the existence and extension of slavery – the Kansas–Nebraska Act and the Dred Scott decision in particular – by abolishing the institution itself. It is the sweeping Thirteenth Amendment, much more than the limited Emancipation Proclamation, that warrants Lincoln’s reputation as The Great Emancipator. That is not to say that Lincoln was the selfless saint that he is often portrayed to be. Throughout his life he thirsted not only for office but for fame. Fame, in the classical republican sense, is as close as humans can come to achieving immortality. Fame belongs to those who speak great words and perform great deeds. And no deed is greater than the founding of a free and long-lived republic.54 But what of one who rescues and refounds a foundering and divided republic, by preserving it intact while making it more truly free by emancipating its slaves and thereby redeeming the promise of its founding principle that all men are created equal? Therein lies Lincoln’s unique achievement as political thinker and actor.

54

See, inter alia, Francis Bacon’s ranking of famous men: “In the first place are … founders of states and commonwealths.” (“Of Honour and Reputation,” Essays in Selected Writings of Francis Bacon, ed. H.G. Dick [New York: Modern Library, 1955], p. 137.) Or Alexander Hamilton’s observation that “the love of fame [is] the ruling passion of the noblest minds”: Federalist 72, in The Federalist, ed. Terence Ball (Cambridge University Press, 2003), p. 353. See, more generally, Douglass Adair, Fame and the Founding Fathers (Indianapolis, IN: Liberty Fund, 1974).

xxxvii

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.002

Chronology 1809 1815 1816 1818 1819 1822 1828 1830 1831

1832

1833

1834

(February 12) Born in Hardin County, Kentucky to Thomas and Nancy Hanks Lincoln. Briefly attends a local school. (December) Thomas Lincoln moves his family to Indiana. (October 5) Mother dies of milk sickness. (December 2) Thomas Lincoln marries the widow Sarah Bush Johnston. Attends local school for two or three months. Lincoln and friend float a cargo-laden flatboat to New Orleans where he sees slaves sold at auction. (March) The Lincoln family leaves Indiana for Illinois. (April–June) Makes second trip to New Orleans by flatboat; reads Robert Burns and Shakespeare; taught briefly by the aptly named Mentor Graham; joins local debating society. (March) Becomes candidate for the Illinois state legislature, campaigning on issue of free public education for all, among others. (April 21) Volunteers to serve in the local New Salem militia and is elected company captain. (August 6) Defeated in state legislative election. (January 15) Lincoln and partner William Berry buy grocery store in New Salem. (May 7) Appointed postmaster of New Salem by President Andrew Jackson. (January) Appointed deputy surveyor of Sangamon County. (August 4) Elected to Illinois House of Representatives. xxxviii

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:27, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.003

Chronology 1835

1836 1837

1838 1839

1840 1842 1844

1845 1846 1847

1848 1849 1854

(January) Store goes out of business and partner dies, leaving Lincoln with enormous debts, which he eventually repays in full, earning him the sobriquet “Honest Abe.” (August 1) Reelected to state legislature. (September 9) Licensed to practice law in Illinois. (March 3) Lincoln and fellow representative Dan Stone file protest against an anti-abolitionist resolution passed by the House on January 20. (April 15) Moves to Springfield, the new state capital, and becomes law partner of eminent Illinois Whig John Todd Stuart. Rooms with storekeeper Joshua F. Speed, who becomes his closest friend. (August 6) Reelected to Illinois state legislature for third term. (September 23) Begins service on the Eighth Judicial Circuit. (October 8) Named presidential elector by Illinois Whig convention (also serves in 1844, 1852, and 1856). (June 18) Argues first case before Illinois Supreme Court. (August 3) Reelected to fourth term in state legislature. (November 4) Marries Mary Todd, daughter of prominent slave-owning family in Kentucky. (October–November) In his capacity as presidential elector Lincoln campaigns for Henry Clay in Illinois, Indiana, and Kentucky. Establishes law firm with William H. Herndon. (August 3) Elected to US House of Representatives. (December 23) Sponsors resolutions questioning the legality and legitimacy of President Polk’s having taken the country to war against Mexico. (January 12) Makes speech on House floor criticizing President Polk for starting war with Mexico. (September 27) Declines invitation to be governor of the Oregon Territory; returns to Springfield to practice law. (May 30) Passage of Kansas–Nebraska Act sets Kansas ablaze and rekindles Lincoln’s interest in politics. (October 16) Lincoln gives speech criticizing the Kansas– Nebraska Act and its sponsor, Senator Stephen A. Douglas of Illinois, with whom he shares the stage in Peoria. (November 7) Elected to state legislature but resigns on November 27 to run for US Senate.

xxxix

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:27, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.003

Chronology 1855

1856 1857

1858

1859 1860

1861

(February 8) To prevent election of Douglas ally and pro-Nebraska Democrat Joel A. Matteson to US Senate, Lincoln withdraws and throws his support to anti-Nebraska Democrat Lyman Trumbull, who wins election. Anti-Nebraska Whigs and Democrats form the new Republican Party; AL joins. (March 6) US Supreme Court hands down Dred Scott decision; incensed, Lincoln gives major speech opposing that decision. (June 16) Nominated by state Republican Party for US Senate seat then held by Douglas; gives his “House Divided” acceptance speech. (August 21–October 15) Lincoln and Douglas engage in a series of seven debates at various venues around the state, attracting large and oft-times raucous audiences numbering between 10,000 and 20,000 at each debate. (January 5) Lincoln loses election but wins wide acclaim. (February 27) Delivers Cooper Union address in New York City, greatly boosting his chance of being nominated as the Republican candidate for president. (May 18) Nominated for president on third ballot. (November 6) Elected President of the United States, receiving 180 of 303 electoral votes and nearly 40 percent of the popular vote. (December 20) South Carolina secedes from the Union; other Southern states soon follow. (February 4) Secessionist states form Confederate States of America and elect Jefferson Davis as president. (February 11–23) En route to Washington, DC Lincoln gives a series of speeches; learning of Southern plot to assassinate him, he arrives secretly and under armed guard. (March 4) Inaugurated sixteenth President of the United States; delivers First Inaugural Address. (March 5) Receives communiqué from Major Robert Anderson, commander of Fort Sumter in South Carolina’s Charleston Harbor, saying that his men are in need of food, water, and medical supplies.

xl

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:27, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.003

Chronology

1862

1863

1864

1865

(April 6) Notifies South Carolina Governor Pickens of intention to resupply Fort Sumter “with provisions only.” (April 12) Fort Sumter attacked by Confederate forces; Civil War begins. (April 19) Proclaims blockade of Southern forts. (July 4) Outlines war plans in Message to Congress in Special Session. (April 16) Signs act abolishing slavery in Washington, DC. (September 22) Issues Preliminary Emancipation Proclamation. (September 24) Issues Proclamation Suspending the Writ of Habeas Corpus. (January 1) Issues Final Emancipation Proclamation. (June 29) Writes public letter to Matthew Birchard and other members of the Ohio Democratic convention, defending his suspension of habeas corpus. (August 26) Writes letter to James C. Conkling to be read at large pro-Union rally, defending his Emancipation Proclamation and particularly its provision to enlist and arm escaped slaves to fight for the Union. (November 19) Delivers Gettysburg Address. (December 8) Issues Proclamation of Amnesty and Reconstruction; outlines plans for post-war reconstruction of South in Third Annual Message to Congress. (April 4) Writes letter to Kentucky editor Albert G. Hodges defending the enlistment and arming of free blacks. (June 8) Renominated for presidency by Republican national convention. (December 6) Delivers Fourth Annual Message to Congress in which he strongly supports the Thirteenth Amendment abolishing slavery throughout the United States. (December 8) Reelected to presidency with 212 of 233 electoral votes and 55 percent of popular vote. (March 4) Delivers Second Inaugural Address promising “malice toward none.” (April 11) Delivers Speech on Reconstruction. (April 14) Lincoln assassinated.

xli

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:27, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.003

Biographical synopses b r e c k i n r i d g e , j o h n c . (1821–75) was a congressman and later senator from Kentucky, subsequently serving as President James Buchanan’s vice-president (1857–61). In the run-up to the 1860 presidential election the Democratic Party split into a Northern and a Southern wing, which nominated Breckinridge for President. He and the Northern Democratic candidate Stephen A. Douglas lost to Lincoln. b r o w n , j o h n (1800–59) was a radical abolitionist who sought to destroy Southern slavery by armed assault. He first gained prominence (or notoriety) in “bleeding Kansas” after the Kansas–Nebraska Act of 1854 opened the western territories to slavery and made the Kansas Territory a battleground between pro- and anti-slavery forces. Brown led the Pottawatomie Massacre (1856) in which five pro-slavery sympathizers were killed. But Brown’s most ambitious campaign was his raid on the federal arsenal at Harpers Ferry, Virginia in 1859. Although unsuccessful – Brown was captured and hanged – the raid was seen by Southerners as a portent of things to come, and in that respect it helped set the stage for the Civil War. b u c h a n a n , j a m e s (1791–1868) was the fifteenth president of the United States. A Democrat and Southern sympathizer, Buchanan took a tolerant view of slavery. And although he opposed the prospect of the South seceding from the Union he also opposed the possibility of waging war to prevent this, believing both actions to be unconstitutional. Increasingly unpopular in both North and South, Buchanan’s divided Democratic Party did not nominate him for a second term. c a l h o u n , j o h n c . (1782–1850) was the leading South Carolina politician of his day, serving as Andrew Jackson’s vice-president and elected to the xlii

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.004

Biographical synopses House of Representatives and subsequently the Senate. Although he began as a nationalist, Calhoun became an ardent Southern sectionalist who defended slavery as a “positive good.” Many of the arguments advanced by Southern secessionists had their origins in Calhoun’s political thinking, and especially his Disquisition on Government (1848) and his concept of “concurrent majorities.” Calhoun held that a majority, unless checked, would ride roughshod over the rights and interests of the minority. The minority can best protect itself by the threat to “nullify” majority decisions that adversely affect its interests. c l ay, h e n ry (1777–1852) was the leading Whig politician of his day. He served his home state of Kentucky as congressman and senator, and the nation as Secretary of State. He championed the “American System” whereby the federal government would facilitate trade and commerce by funding roads, bridges, and other kinds of infrastructure. He brokered the Missouri Compromise (1820) and earned the nickname “The Great Compromiser.” Lincoln called Clay “my beau ideal of a statesman.” d av i s , j e f f e r s o n (1808–89) began his career as a military officer and a graduate of West Point but his interest soon turned to politics. He served as senator from Mississippi and later president of the breakaway Confederate States of America (CSA). As a senator Davis argued against secession on practical grounds even as he acknowledged that sovereign states had a constitutional right to secede if they so chose. As president of the CSA he used his knowledge of military strategy to help direct the surprisingly successful Southern war effort. He also sought, less successfully, foreign recognition of the CSA as a sovereign nation. After the South’s defeat Davis was charged with treason but never tried. d o u g l a s , s t e p h e n a . (1813–61) was a Democratic senator from Illinois and Abraham Lincoln’s chief rival. He was instrumental in the passage of the 1854 Kansas–Nebraska Act which, relying on Douglas’s doctrine of “popular sovereignty,” stipulated that voters in the western territories would decide whether theirs was to be a free or a slave state. It was this Act that sparked the formation of the Republican Party, rekindled Lincoln’s political passions, and led him to reenter public life as an opponent of the Act, of popular sovereignty, and of Douglas himself. In 1858 Douglas ran for reelection against the Republican Party’s nominee, Abraham Lincoln. After a series of debates – the famous Lincoln–Douglas debates – Douglas won reelection. In the 1860 presidential election Douglas was nominated by xliii

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.004

Biographical synopses the Northern wing of the deeply divided Democratic Party. He and the nominee of the Southern wing, John C. Breckinridge, lost to Lincoln. d o u g l a s s , f r e d e r i c k (1818–95) was a leading abolitionist author and orator. Born into slavery, he violated the law by teaching himself to read and write. After several unsuccessful attempts, he finally escaped to freedom. He described his life as a slave and subsequent escape in his first autobiography, Narrative of Frederick Douglass, an American Slave (1845). Like other militant abolitionists, Douglass was disappointed by what he viewed as President Lincoln’s gradualist attitude toward the abolition of slavery. But after Lincoln issued the Emancipation Proclamation (1863), which not only promised emancipation to slaves in the CSA but a place in the Union forces for all who qualified, Douglass became an ardent supporter. Believing everyone entitled to equal rights Douglass also worked for the emancipation and enfranchisement of women. g r a n t, u ly s s e s s . (1822–85) was a graduate of West Point and later commander of Union forces during the Civil War and Reconstruction, and eighteenth president of the United States. As a general, Grant was renowned as an aggressive strategist and tactician who always sought to take the battle to the enemy. Were it not for Grant’s successes on the battlefield, it is unlikely that Lincoln would have been reelected in 1864. In April 1865 Grant’s forces captured the Confederate capital at Richmond and Robert E. Lee surrendered, effectively ending the Civil War. g r e e l e y, h o r a c e (1811–72) was an eminent newspaper editor and outspoken abolitionist. His New York Tribune was the leading masscirculation paper to align itself with the newly founded Republican Party and to advocate the abolition of slavery. Like other abolitionists Greeley sought to apply the pressure of public opinion to President Lincoln, whose gradualist approach to abolition he found troubling and quite possibly immoral. h e r n d o n , w i l l i a m h . (1818–91) was Lincoln’s law partner and posthumous biographer. An ardent abolitionist, Herndon found Lincoln’s gradualism puzzling; he later claimed that he had helped Lincoln to revise his views on slavery. As biographer, Herndon conducted extensive interviews and collected a large number of letters, legal documents, reminiscences, and other sources. He hoped to depict Lincoln’s life as that of a mortal man who was in many ways ordinary and in other respects extraordinary. Eventually overwhelmed by his sources and advancing age, Herndon sought the xliv

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.004

Biographical synopses assistance of Jesse W. Weik, with whose help he finally finished Herndon’s Lincoln: The True Story of a Great Life (1889). l e e , r o b e r t e . (1807–70) was a graduate of West Point, a career army officer, and commanding general of the Confederacy’s Army of Northern Virginia during the Civil War. Even though he opposed secession and was offered command of the Union Army by President Lincoln, Lee’s first loyalty lay with his native state of Virginia. As general, Lee favored fast and aggressive attacks on opposing forces, and early in the war he won many more battles than he lost. After the costly Union victory at the 1863 Battle of Gettysburg, the tide of war began to turn against the South. After suffering a series of defeats, Lee surrendered to General Ulysses S. Grant at Appomattox Courthouse on March 29, 1865, thereby effectively ending the Civil War. After the war Lee supported President Andrew Johnson’s plans for Reconstruction (opposing those of the Radical Republicans) and served as President of Washington and Lee University. l i n c o l n , m a ry t o d d (1818–82) was the wife of Abraham Lincoln. Born into a prominent slave-holding Kentucky family, she had all the social graces that Lincoln lacked. She spoke fluent French and had numerous suitors, including Stephen A. Douglas who proposed marriage; Mary did not accept his proposal, but at age 23 agreed to the proposal offered by an obscure but up-and-coming 33-year-old lawyer named Abraham Lincoln. She bore Lincoln four sons, two of whom died in childhood. In increasingly fragile physical and mental health, these deaths – and later Lincoln’s assassination in 1865 and the death of their third son in 1871 – took a terrible toll. After attempting suicide she was sent to a mental asylum by her oldest and now-only son Robert Todd Lincoln. Angered at this alleged “betrayal,” Mary never reconciled with her remaining son. j o h n s o n , a n d r e w (1808–75) was Abraham Lincoln’s vicepresident and, after Lincoln’s assassination, his successor as the seventeenth President of the United States. He presided over the post–Civil War Reconstruction, opposed by radical Republicans for his conciliatory policies and opposition to black enfranchisement. The House of Representatives brought a bill of impeachment against him – the first American president to be impeached – but it was turned back by the Senate by a single vote. mcl e l l a n , g e o r g e b . (1826–85) was commanding general of the Union forces, and commander of the Army of the Potomac in the early years of the Civil War. He excelled at West Point and in the Mexican War, xlv

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.004

Biographical synopses but acquitted himself less well during the Civil War. Although meticulous in training and drilling his troops, McLellan was reluctant to actually deploy them; and when he did do so, he proceeded so cautiously that he failed. After being relieved of his command by President Lincoln, McLellan became the Democratic Party’s nominee in the 1864 presidential election, which Lincoln won. s a n d f o r d, j o h n f. a . (1806–57) was the executor of the estate of John Emerson, whose slave, Dred Scott, sued for his freedom both before and after Emerson’s death. The case, Scott v. Sandford, went before the US Supreme Court, where a majority of justices (seven of nine) ruled for Sandford and against Scott. s c o t t, d r e d (1795–1858) was an American slave who sought his freedom and that of his family through the courts. Scott argued that, since they had been taken to the free state of Illinois and the free territory of Wisconsin, they were legally free. In the case of Sandford v. Scott (1857) the Supreme Court ruled that as a slave Scott had no standing; but it nevertheless took the case, ruling against Scott. Instead of calming the controversy over slavery – as Chief Justice Taney hoped – the decision further inflamed it. Among those outraged by the decision was Abraham Lincoln, soon to be a candidate for the Senate and subsequently the presidency. s e wa r d, w i l l i a m h . (1801–72) served as Secretary of State during Lincoln’s presidency; he had previously been governor of New York and a senator from that state. A leading eastern Republican, Seward expected to receive his party’s nomination for president in the 1860 election – a nomination that went instead to Abraham Lincoln. Seward served loyally and ably as Secretary of State, and was instrumental in preventing foreign powers from intervening in the Civil War by, for example, granting diplomatic recognition to the Confederacy as a sovereign nation. On the night of Lincoln’s assassination, an attempt was also made on Seward’s life, which he survived. Continuing in office during the administration of Andrew Johnson, Seward brokered a deal with Russia to buy Alaska. The acquisition of Alaska was widely derided as “Seward’s Folly” and “Seward’s Icebox.” s h e r m a n , w i l l i a m t. (1820–91) was among the most daring and determined of Union generals during the Civil War. His “march to the sea” to divide the Confederacy and capture Atlanta employed a controversial xlvi

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.004

Biographical synopses “scorched earth” policy in which all resources not required to support Union troops were destroyed. Sherman’s trail of destruction and desolation earned for him the abiding hatred of the South, and decisive military victory in the end. s p e e d, j o s h u a f. (1814–82) was Lincoln’s closest friend in Springfield, Illinois, where Speed owned and ran a general store. Lincoln rented a room above the store and was Speed’s roommate for four years. In 1840 Speed returned to his native Kentucky to run his family’s plantation and oversee its slaves. Although he and Lincoln disagreed, sometimes vehemently, over slavery, they remained friends and frequent correspondents. After Lincoln’s death Speed supplied copious information to Lincoln’s biographer and law partner William H. Herndon. s ta n t o n , e d w i n m . (1814–69) served as Secretary of War during the presidency of Abraham Lincoln. A masterful organizer and administrator, Stanton oversaw the massive Union war effort and was Lincoln’s closest wartime adviser. After the assassination Stanton single-mindedly – and sometimes illegally – sought the arrest, imprisonment, trial, and execution of suspected plotters. s t e p h e n s , a l e x a n d e r h . (1812–1883) was vice-president of the CSA; before and after that he served as congressman from Georgia in the House of Representatives, and subsequently as governor. Although initially opposed to secession, Stephens agreed to serve the newly formed CSA. In his (in)famous “Cornerstone Speech,” delivered on March 21, 1861, Stephens declared that slavery was the cornerstone of the Confederacy: “its foundations are laid, its cornerstone rests, upon the great truth and the negro is not equal to the white man; that slavery, subordination to the superior race, is his natural and normal condition.” Stephens’s speech helped put steel in the spine of Lincoln and the Republicans on the eve of civil war. s t o w e , h a r r i e t b e e c h e r (1811–96) was an abolitionist and author of the novel Uncle Tom’s Cabin (1852), which chillingly depicted the lives of slaves. The novel sold an unprecedented 300,000 copies and helped fuel the anti-slavery effort. s t u a r t, j o h n t. (1807–85) served in the Illinois state legislature where he encouraged his fellow legislator Abraham Lincoln to study law. He was Mary Todd Lincoln’s cousin and had earlier served alongside xlvii

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.004

Biographical synopses Lincoln in the Black Hawk War. In 1837 he made Lincoln a junior partner in his law practice, renaming it Stuart and Lincoln; their partnership was dissolved in 1841 after Stuart won a second term to the US House of Representatives. ta n e y, r o g e r b . (1777–1864) was Chief Justice of the United States Supreme Court from 1836 to 1864. Before that he served as Attorney General and as close adviser to President Andrew Jackson. He became best known as the author of the majority opinion in the case of Dred Scott v. Sandford (1857), which held that people of African ancestry were not and could never be citizens of the United States. t r u m b u l l , ly m a n (1813–96) was an anti-slavery Democratic senator from Illinois. He ran against Lincoln in the 1855 Senatorial election. (Before the Seventeenth Amendment [1913] senators were elected by state legislatures.) After several ballots a pro-slavery Democrat took the lead and Lincoln threw his support to Trumbull, who won. Shortly thereafter Trumbull became a Republican and a leading Lincoln ally. He was coauthor (with Senator Charles Sumner) of the Thirteenth Amendment (1865), which abolished slavery, and was instrumental in the creation of Yellowstone National Park (1872). va l l a n d i g h a m , c l e m e n t l . (1820–71) was a Democratic congressman from Ohio best known for his flagrant and public violation of President Lincoln’s Proclamation Suspending Habeas Corpus (1863). A “Peace Democrat” or “Copperhead,” Vallandigham believed that the Southern states were justified in seceding from the Union to protect the institution of slavery and that the Civil War was unconstitutional. When General Ambrose Burnside declared martial law he invoked Lincoln’s Proclamation and decreed that anyone who expressed sympathy for the enemy would be imprisoned without trial or counsel. After Vallandigham gave a speech in which he claimed that the Civil War was not being fought to save the Union but to free the slaves and that “King Lincoln” was a despot, he was arrested and imprisoned, and sentenced to two years in military prison. His case became a cause célèbre among civil libertarians and an embarrassment to the Lincoln administration, and Vallandigham was freed from prison and released behind Southern lines. From there he escaped to Canada where he campaigned – unsuccessfully – for reelection in Ohio. w h i t m a n , wa lt (1819–92), an American poet and essayist, is often called “the poet of democracy,” not only because he incorporated xlviii

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.004

Biographical synopses democratic themes into his writing but because he tried to make his poetry accessible and attractive to the common man. In the poems collected in Leaves of Grass (1855) and his extended essay Democratic Vistas (1871) Whitman spells out his view of the uncommonness of the common man. He wrote admiringly of Lincoln, the common man of uncommon courage and vision, and eulogized his death in “O Captain! My Captain” (1865).

xlix

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.004

A note on sources and abbreviations As a writer Lincoln’s only rival among American presidents is Jefferson. Like his contemporaries Emerson and Whitman he strove to speak and write in a distinctively American idiom that combined the common with the sublime. Between his 1854 speech assailing the Kansas–Nebraska Act and his 1863 Gettysburg Address and 1865 Second Inaugural Address, Lincoln’s speeches became better – leaner, more focused, attuned to the larger significance of his subject. Before becoming president Lincoln rarely wrote out his speeches in their entirety. On the stump he typically talked from notes. It was his habit to write notes for future speeches and put them in his hat. Although some of these notes survive, most have been lost. His speeches come down to us through newspapers that reprinted his (and others’) speeches verbatim. They were able to do this because their reporters recorded the speeches in the then-new system of Pitman shorthand which enabled an expert stenographer to write with remarkable rapidity and accuracy. We can attest to the accuracy in Lincoln’s case because he kept copies of the newspaper versions of his speeches to which he made only the occasional correction. As a canny practicing politician who sought ever-higher office Lincoln in his speeches tended to phrase his views in the manner least likely to offend his audience. This was especially true on the sensitive subject of slavery. Many – in Illinois in the 1850s, perhaps most – in his audience would have been racists or negrophobes who would never support any candidate who held views at odds with theirs. He had a talent, however, for subtly challenging their beliefs and attitudes with an eye to changing them. l

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784

A note on sources and abbreviations Lincoln also kept pieces of paper on which he wrote of his presumably real but guarded thoughts and feelings; some of these are reprinted in Part II of this volume under the heading “Notes and Fragments.” These often reveal a Lincoln who is rather more radical or progressive than his public pronouncements would suggest. Early editions of Lincoln’s writings and speeches often reprinted items that are either approximations of what Lincoln said or outright forgeries. For example, Lincoln’s “Lost Speech” of May 29, 1856 – in which he supposedly condemned slavery in the most blistering terms – was allegedly so spellbinding that reporters put down their pencils to listen; some forty years after the speech, a version recalled and reconstructed by Henry Clay Whitney was published in McClure’s Magazine. Although accepted at the time as authentic, it is now regarded by Lincoln scholars as a fabrication and not included in scholarly editions of Lincoln’s work. Many other sayings and aphorisms attributed to Lincoln are likewise doubtful or downright false. Lincoln the legend has an unfortunate tendency to crowd out and replace the authentic Lincoln, at least in the popular imagination. The present volume eschews the former and favors the latter. The following abbreviations are used in my introduction and explanatory notes: AL CSA CWAL

SW WHH

Abraham Lincoln Confederate States of America Collected Works of Abraham Lincoln, 9 vols, ed. Roy P. Basler (New Brunswick, NJ: Rutgers University Press, 1953–55; 1974). Abraham Lincoln: Speeches and Writings, 2 vols, ed. Don A. Fehrenbacher (New York: Library of America, 1989). William H. Herndon

Wherever possible, in my Introduction and editorial notes I have cited Fehrenbacher’s more meticulously edited volumes. The selections presented here have been checked against his edition and corrected where necessary.

li

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784

Bibliographical note The most comprehensive collection of Lincoln’s letters, speeches, and public papers is Roy P. Basler (ed.), The Collected Works of Abraham Lincoln (New Brunswick, NJ: Rutgers University Press, 1953–55; 1974), 9 vols. This replaces the rich but sometimes partisan and uneven earlier edition by two of Lincoln’s aides and confidantes, John G. Nicolay and John Hay (eds.), Complete Works of Abraham Lincoln (New York: Lincoln Memorial University, 1894). A briefer but valuable and superbly edited collection of Lincoln’s writings is Don E. Fehrenbacher (ed.), Abraham Lincoln: Speeches and Writings, 2 vols (New York: Library of America, 1989). Biographies of Lincoln include the intimate portrait drawn by his law partner, William H. Herndon, in Herndon and Jesse W. Weik, Herndon’s Lincoln: The True Story of a Great Life, ed. Paul M. Angle (1889; Greenwich: Fawcett Publications, 1961). John G. Nicolay and John Hay’s biography, Abraham Lincoln: A History, 10 vols (New York: The Century Co., 1890) is hagiography of a high order, as is Carl Sandburg’s six-volume biography Abraham Lincoln: The Prairie Years, 2 vols, and Abraham Lincoln: The War Years, 4 vols (New York, 1939). Francis B. Carpenter was a portrait painter who spent six months in the White House, painting the president and his cabinet and talking at length with Lincoln; his The Inner Life of Abraham Lincoln: Six Months at the White House (New York: Hurt and Houghton, 1967) is a delightful and readable word-portrait of President Lincoln, even though some stories may have been embellished. More recent (and reliable) biographies include David Herbert Donald, Lincoln (New York: Simon & Schuster, 1995). The best one-volume biography since Donald’s is Ronald C. White, Jr., A. Lincoln: lii

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:29, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.005

Bibliographical note A Biography (New York: Random House, 2009). An ambitious two-volume biography by Michael Burlingame, Abraham Lincoln: A Life (Baltimore, MD: Johns Hopkins University Press, 2008) is also available online at www.knox.edu/lincolnstudies which, says the author, “will be updated as mistakes are discovered and new information comes to light.” Douglas L. Wilson, Honor’s Voice: The Transformation of Abraham Lincoln (New York: Random House, 1999) traces the young Abraham Lincoln’s transformation from a rough backwoodsman to a selfeducated and largely self-made “man to be reckoned with.” Richard Hofstadter, The American Political Tradition (New York: Knopf, 1948), chapter 5 (“Abraham Lincoln and the Self-Made Myth”) offers a highly critical but sympathetic overview of Lincoln’s political career, with a particular focus on his evolving views regarding slavery. Among the best (very) brief biographies is James M. McPherson, Abraham Lincoln (Oxford University Press, 2009); a minor masterpiece of compression. In The Lincoln Anthology: Great Writers on His Life and Legacy from 1860 to Now (New York: Library of America, 2009) Harold Holzer has assembled a panoply of essays about Lincoln by contemporaries (Frederick Douglass, Walt Whitman, Karl Marx, and others) and by later writers (Theodore Roosevelt, Woodrow Wilson, Winston Churchill, and others) to show how each new generation of writers constructs “their” Lincoln. On the ways in which Americans remember, revere, and (sometimes) revile Lincoln, see Merrill D. Peterson, Lincoln in American Memory (Oxford University Press, 1994). Recent reappraisals of Lincoln include Eric Foner (ed.), Our Lincoln (New York: W.W. Norton, 2008). Lincoln first made his mark as a one-term congressman from Illinois, during which he made a controversial speech criticizing President James K. Polk for starting the Mexican War. For the broader background, see Robert W. Merry, A Country of Vast Designs: James K. Polk, the Mexican War, and the Conquest of the American Continent (New York: Simon & Schuster, 2009). On Lincoln as literary craftsman, see Douglas L. Wilson, Lincoln’s Sword: The Presidency and the Power of Words (New York: Knopf, 2006) and, more generally, Fred Kaplan, Lincoln: The Biography of a Writer (New York: HarperCollins, 2008) which traces the interactive influences of Lincoln’s reading (the Bible and Shakespeare in particular) on his writing and speechmaking. Don E. Fehrenbacher’s Lincoln in Text and Context (Stanford University Press, 1987) places Lincoln’s writings and speeches in the context of their composition and reception. liii

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:29, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.005

Bibliographical note The faithfully restored texts of the 1858 debates between Lincoln and Senator Stephen Douglas can be found in Rodney O. Davis and Douglas L. Wilson (eds), The Lincoln–Douglas Debates (Knox College Lincoln Studies Center/University of Illinois Press, 2008). Harry V. Jaffa’s Crisis of the House Divided: An Interpretation of the Lincoln–Douglas Debates (University of Chicago Press, 1959; with a new introduction by the author, 1973) offers a still-controversial interpretation of the debates’ larger significance. A more recent interpretation of the meaning and significance of those debates is Allen C. Guelzo, Lincoln and Douglas: The Debates that Defined America (New York: Simon & Schuster, 2008). Two books that examine in some detail the content, reception, and significance of Lincoln’s 1860 Cooper Union address are John A. Corry’s Lincoln at Cooper Union: The Speech that Made Him President (Philadelphia: Xlibris, 2003) and Harold Holzer’s Lincoln at Cooper Union: The Speech that Made Abraham Lincoln President (New York: Simon & Schuster, 2004); Holzer’s is the more detailed and meticulous study. On the composition, reception, and significance of Lincoln’s Gettysburg Address, see Garry Wills, Lincoln at Gettysburg: The Words That Remade America (New York: Simon & Schuster, 1992). Edmund Wilson, Patriotic Gore (New York: Farrar, Straus, and Giroux, 1962) examines the literature of and about the American Civil War and its aftermath. It also offers a controversial (and unconvincing) psychobiographical portrait of Lincoln as would-be tyrant. The “peculiar institution” of American slavery has been much studied. For Lincoln’s own changing views, see the selection of his writings and speeches in Henry Louis Gates (ed.), Lincoln on Race and Slavery (Princeton University Press, 2009). Don E. Fehrenbacher’s posthumously published The Slaveholding Republic (Oxford University Press, 2001) analyzes the tensions between the republican emphasis on liberty and the fateful fact of American slavery. He argues – contra W.E.B. DuBois and others – that the Founders did not intend the institution of slavery to become a national institution, but that powerful politicians from the South made it one. On race relations and attitudes toward slavery in Illinois and other non-slaveholding northern states, see Leon F. Litwack, North of Slavery: The Negro in the Free States, 1790–1860 (University of Chicago Press, 1961). On Lincoln’s changing view of and attitude toward slavery and abolitionism, Eric Foner’s The Fiery Trial: Abraham Lincoln and American Slavery (New York: Norton, 2010) is unsurpassed. The

liv

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:29, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.005

Bibliographical note question, “was Lincoln a racist?”, is answered negatively by James Oakes, The Radical and the Republican: Frederick Douglass, Abraham Lincoln, and the Triumph of Antislavery Politics (New York: Norton, 2007). On the oft-times cordial and sometimes troubled relationship between Douglass and Lincoln, see John Stauffer, Giants: The Parallel Lives of Frederick Douglass and Abraham Lincoln (New York: Hachette Book Group, 2008). The decade preceding the American Civil War has received intense scholarly scrutiny. Among the best studies are David M. Potter, The Impending Crisis, 1848–1861 (New York: HarperCollins, 1976) and, with particular attention to Lincoln’s role, Don E. Fehrenbacher, Prelude to Greatness: Lincoln in the 1850s (Stanford University Press, 1962). On the significance of the fateful 1857 Dred Scott decision see Don E. Fehrenbacher’s The Dred Scott Decision: Its Significance in American Law and Politics (Oxford University Press, 1978). Studies of Lincoln’s presidency continue to appear. Doris Kearns Goodwin, Team of Rivals: The Political Genius of Abraham Lincoln (New York: Simon & Schuster, 2005) describes President Lincoln’s selection of and relations with his oft-times quarrelsome and contentious cabinet. William Lee Miller’s President Lincoln: The Duty of a Statesman (New York: Knopf, 2008) details the cross-pressures under which Lincoln operated as wartime president. There are numerous histories of the Civil War era. Among the best single-volume studies is James M. Macpherson, Battle Cry of Freedom: The Civil War Era (Oxford University Press, 1988). A longer and more leisurely history is Shelby Foote, The Civil War: A Narrative (New York: Random House, 1958–74), 3 vols. Daniel Farber, Lincoln’s Constitution (University of Chicago Press, 2004) analyzes the constitutional conundrums created by the Civil War and the president’s role as commander-in-chief. The contentious issue of Lincoln and civil liberties is deftly described and analyzed in Mark E. Neely, Jr., The Fate of Liberty: Abraham Lincoln and Civil Liberties (Oxford University Press, 1991). On President Lincoln’s sometimes strained relations with the Supreme Court, see Brian McGinty, Lincoln and the Court (Cambridge, MA: Harvard University Press, 2008). The circumstances surrounding Lincoln’s assassination remain a matter of scholarly controversy. Among the more recent studies is Edward Steers, Blood on the Moon: The Assassination of Abraham Lincoln (Lexington: University Press of Kentucky, 2001); and – with particular

lv

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:29, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.005

Bibliographical note attention to possible Confederate involvement – William A. Tidwell, April ’65: Confederate Covert Action in the American Civil War (Kent, OH: Kent State University Press, 1995); and Tidwell, James O. Hall, and David Winfred Gaddy, Come Retribution: The Confederate Secret Service and the Assassination of Lincoln (Jackson: University Press of Mississippi, 1988). Lincoln’s lone assassin, John Wilkes Booth, saw his victim as a “tyrant,” a “Caesar,” a “Bonaparte,” and himself as a modern “Brutus”: see Michael W. Kauffman, American Brutus: John Wilkes Booth and the Lincoln Conspiracies (New York: Random House, 2005). Most accounts of Lincoln’s presidency focus, understandably, on his role in the Civil War. For a detailed study of another important aspect of domestic policy, see David A. Nichols, Lincoln and the Indians: Civil War Policy and Politics (Columbia, MO: University of Missouri Press, 1978). Many of the sage sayings and aphorisms attributed to Lincoln turn out, on close critical examination, to be mostly or even entirely fictional. For scholarly sleuthing that separates truth from fiction in the Lincoln legend see Don E. Fehrenbacher and Virginia Fehrenbacher, Recollected Words of Lincoln (Stanford University Press, 1996). A suggestive and readable, if necessarily speculative and not always reliable, guide to what Lincoln would do in present-day circumstances is former New York governor Mario M. Cuomo’s Why Lincoln Matters Today more than Ever (New York: Harcourt, 2004). This is merely the most recent in a very long line of such speculative exercises. For a critical if now somewhat dated survey, see the opening essay in David Herbert Donald, Lincoln Reconsidered, second edn (New York: Vintage, 1961). Finally, Gore Vidal’s Lincoln: A Novel (New York: Vintage, 1994) offers a highly readable, fictional but historically grounded narrative of Lincoln’s life and times.

lvi

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:29, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.005

I

Political Writings and Speeches

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784

1

Autobiographical sketch

Lincoln wrote the following autobiographical sketch for the 1860 Presidential campaign. It was intended to introduce him to the broad swath of the electorate who knew little or nothing about his history and background. Abraham Lincoln was born Feb. 12, 1809, then in Hardin, now in the more recently formed county of Larue, Kentucky. His father, Thomas, & grand-father, Abraham, were born in Rockingham county, Virginia, whither their ancestors had come from Berks county, Pennsylvania. His lineage has been traced no farther back than this. The family were originally quakers, though in later times they have fallen away from the peculiar habits of that people. The grandfather Abraham, had four brothers – Isaac, Jacob, John & Thomas. So far as known, the descendants of Jacob and John are still in Virginia. Isaac went to a place near where Virginia, North Carolina, and Tennessee, join; and his descendants are in that region. Thomas came to Kentucky, and after many years, died there, whence his descendants went to Missouri. Abraham, grandfather of the subject of this sketch, came to Kentucky, and was killed by indians about the year 1784. He left a widow, three sons and two daughters. The eldest son, Mordecai, remained in Kentucky till late in life, when he removed to Hancock county, Illinois, where soon after he died, and where several of his descendants still reside. The second son, Josiah, removed at an early day to a place on Blue River, now within Harrison county, Indiana; but no recent information of him, or his family, has been obtained. The eldest sister, Mary, married Ralph Crume and some of her descendants are now known to be in Breckenridge county, Kentucky. The second sister, 3

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:14, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.007

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches Nancy, married William Brumfield, and her family are not known to have left Kentucky, but there is no recent information from them. Thomas, the youngest son, and father of the present subject, by the early death of his father, and very narrow circumstances of his mother, even in childhood was a wandering laboring boy, and grew up litterally without education. He never did more in the way of writing than to bunglingly sign his own name. Before he was grown, he passed one year as a hired hand with his uncle Isaac on Wataga, a branch of the Holsteen River. Getting back into Kentucky, and having reached his 28th. year, he married Nancy Hanks – mother of the present subject – in the year 1806. She also was born in Virginia; and relatives of hers of the name of Hanks, and of other names, now reside in Coles, in Macon, and in Adams counties, Illinois, and also in Iowa. The present subject has no brother or sister of the whole or half blood. He had a sister, older than himself, who was grown and married, but died many years ago, leaving no child. Also a brother, younger than himself, who died in infancy. Before leaving Kentucky he and his sister were sent for short periods, to ABC schools, the first kept by Zachariah Riney, and the second by Caleb Hazel. At this time his father resided on Knob-creek, on the road from Bardstown, Ky. to Nashville, Tenn. at a point three, or three and a half miles South or South-West of Atherton’s ferry on the Rolling Fork. From this place he removed to what is now Spencer county, Indiana, in the autumn of 1816, A. then being in his eighth year. This removal was partly on account of slavery; but chiefly on account of the difficulty in land titles in Ky. He settled in an unbroken forest; and the clearing away of surplus wood was the great task ahead. A. though very young, was large of his age, and had an axe put into his hands at once; and from that till within his twentythird year, he was almost constantly handling that most useful instrument – less, of course, in plowing and harvesting seasons. At this place A. took an early start as a hunter, which was never much improved afterwards. (A few days before the completion of his eighth year, in the absence of his father, a flock of wild turkeys approached the new log-cabin, and A. with a rifle gun, standing inside, shot through a crack, and killed one of them. He has never since pulled a trigger on any larger game.) In the autumn of 1818 his mother died; and a year afterwards his father married Mrs. Sally Johnston, at Elizabeth-Town, Ky. – a widow, with three children of her first marriage. She proved a good and kind mother to A. and is still living in Coles co., Illinois. There were no children of this second marriage. His father’s residence continued at the same place 4

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:14, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.007

Autobiographical sketch in Indiana, till 1830. While here A. went to ABC schools by littles, kept successively by Andrew Crawford, —— Sweeney, and Azel W. Dorsey. He does not remember any other. The family of Mr. Dorsey now reside in Schuyler co., Illinois. A. now thinks that the agregate of all his schooling did not amount to one year. He was never in a college or Academy as a student; and never inside of a college or Academy building till since he had a law-license. What he has in the way of education, he has picked up. After he was twentythree, and had separated from his father, he studied English grammar, imperfectly of course, but so as to speak and write as well as he now does. He studied and nearly mastered the Six-books of Euclid, since he was a member of Congress. He regrets his want of education, and does what he can to supply the want. In his tenth year he was kicked by a horse, and apparently killed for a time. When he was nineteen, still residing in Indiana, he made his first trip upon a flat-boat to New-Orleans. He was a hired hand merely; and he and a son of the owner, without other assistance, made the trip. The nature of part of the cargo-load, as it was called – made it necessary for them to linger and trade along the Sugar coast – and one night they were attacked by seven negroes with intent to kill and rob them. They were hurt some in the melee, but succeeded in driving the negroes from the boat, and then “cut cable,” “weighed anchor” and left. March 1st, 1830 – A. having just completed his 21st year, his father and family, with the families of the two daughters and sons-in-law, of his step-mother, left the old homestead in Indiana, and came to Illinois. Their mode of conveyance was waggons drawn by ox-teams, or A. drove one of the teams. They reached the county of Macon, and stopped there some time within the same month of March. His father and family settled a new place on the North side of the Sangamon River, at the junction of the timber-land and prairie, about ten miles Westerly from Decatur. Here they built a log-cabin, into which they removed, and made sufficient of rails to fence ten acres of ground, fenced and broke the ground, and raised a crop of sown corn upon it the same year. These are, or are supposed to be, the rails about which so much is being said just now, though they are far from being the first, or only rails ever made by A. The sons-in-law, were temporarily settled at other places in the county. In the autumn all hands were greatly afflicted with augue [ague – chills and sweating] and fever, to which they had not been used, and by which they were greatly discouraged – so much so that they determined on leaving the county. They remained however, through the succeeding winter, which was the winter of the very 5

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:14, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.007

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches celebrated “deep snow” of Illinois. During that winter, A. together with his step-mother’s son, John D. Johnston, and John Hanks, yet residing in Macon county, hired themselves to one Denton Offutt, to take a flat boat from Beardstown, Illinois to New-Orleans; and for that purpose, were to join him – Offutt – at Springfield, Ills so soon as the snow should go off. When it did go off which was about the 1st of March, 1831 – the county was so flooded, as to make traveling by land impracticable; to obviate which difficulty they purchased a large canoe and came down the Sangamon River in it. This is the time and the manner of A.’s first entrance into Sangamon County. They found Offutt at Springfield, but learned from him that he had failed in getting a boat at Beardstown. This lead to their hiring themselves to him at $12, per month, each; and getting the timber out of the trees and building a boat at old Sangamon Town on the Sangamon River, seven miles N.W. of Springfield, which boat they took to New-Orleans, substantially upon the old contract. It was in connection with this boat that occurred the ludicrous incident of sewing up the hogs’ eyes. Offutt bought thirty-odd large fat live hogs, but found difficulty in driving them from where he purchased them to the boat, and thereupon conceived the whim that he could sew up their eyes and drive them where he pleased. No sooner thought of than decided, he put his hands, including A. at the job, which they completed – all but the driving. In their blind condition they could not be driven out of the lot or field they were in. This expedient failing, they were tied and hauled on carts to the boat. It was near the Sangamon River, within what is now Menard county. During this boat enterprize acquaintance with Offutt, who was previously an entire stranger, he conceved a liking for A. and believing he could turn him to account, he contracted with him to act as clerk for him, on his return from New-Orleans, in charge of a store and Mill at New-Salem, then in Sangamon, now in Menard county. Hanks had not gone to New-Orleans, but having a family, and being likely to be detained from home longer than at first expected, had turned back from St. Louis. He is the same John Hanks who now engineers the “rail enterprize” at Decatur; and is a first cousin to A’s mother. A’s father, with his own family & others mentioned, had, in pursuance of their intention, removed from Macon to Coles county. John D. Johnston, the step-mother’s son, went to them; and A. stopped indefinitely, and, for the first time, as it were, by himself at New-Salem, before mentioned. This was in July 1831. Here he rapidly made acquaintances and friends. In less than a year Offutt’s business 6

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:14, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.007

Autobiographical sketch was failing – had almost failed, – when the Black-Hawk war of 1832 – broke out. A. joined a volunteer company, and to his own surprize, was elected captain of it. He says he has not since had any success in life which gave him so much satisfaction. He went the campaign, served near three months, met the ordinary hardships of such an expedition, but was in no battle. He now owns in Iowa, the land upon which his own warrants for this service, were located. Returning from the campaign, and encouraged by his great popularity among his immediate neighbors, he, the same year, ran for the Legislature and was beaten – his own precinct, however, casting its votes 277 for and 7, against him. And this too while he was an avowed Clay man, and the precinct the autumn afterwards, giving a majority of 115 to Genl. Jackson over Mr. Clay.1 This was the only time A. was ever beaten on a direct vote of the people. He was now without means and out of business, but was anxious to remain with his friends who had treated him with so much generosity, especially as he had nothing elsewhere to go to. He studied what he should do – thought of learning the black-smith trade – thought of trying to study law – rather thought he could not succeed at that without a better education. Before long, strangely enough, a man offered to sell and did sell, to A. and another as poor as himself, an old stock of goods, upon credit. They opened as merchants; and he says that was the store. Of course they did nothing but get deeper and deeper in debt. He was appointed Postmaster at New-Salem – the office being too insignificant, to make his politics an objection. The store winked out. The Surveyor of Sangamon, offered to depute to A. that portion of his work which was within his part of the county. He accepted, procured a compass and chain, studied Flint, and Gibson a little, and went at it. This procured bread, and kept soul and body together. The election of 1834 came, and he was then elected to the Legislature by the highest vote cast for any candidate. Major John T. Stuart, then in full practice of the law, was also elected. During the canvass, in a private conversation he encouraged A. to study law. After the election he borrowed books of Stuart, took them home with him, and went at it in good earnest. He studied with nobody. He still mixed in the surveying to pay board and clothing bills. When the Legislature met, the law books were dropped, but were taken up again at the end of the session. He was re-elected in 1836, 1838, and 1844. In the autumn of 1836 he 1

In the Presidential election of 1824 Kentucky senator Henry Clay ran against Andrew Jackson, John Quincy Adams, and others, but failed to become a finalist. After Adams defeated Jackson, he appointed Clay Secretary of State.

7

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:14, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.007

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches obtained a law licence, and on April 15, 1837 removed to Springfield, and commenced the practice, his old friend, Stuart taking him into partnership. March 3rd, 1837, by a protest entered upon the Ills. House Journal of that date, at pages 817, 818, A. with Dan Stone, another representative of Sangamon, briefly defined his position on the slavery question; and so far as it goes, it was then the same that it is now. The protest is as follows – (Here insert it)2 In 1838, & 1840 Mr. L’s party in the Legislature voted for him as Speaker; but being in the minority, he was not elected. After 1840 he declined a re-election to the Legislature. He was on the Harrison electoral ticket in 1840, and on that of Clay in 1844, and spent much time and labor in both those canvasses. In Nov. 1842 he was married to Mary, daughter of Robert S. Todd, of Lexington, Kentucky. They have three living children, all sons – one born in 1843, one in 1850, and one in 1853. They lost one, who was born in 1846. In 1846, he was elected to the lower House of Congress, and served one term only, commencing in Dec. 1847 and ending with the inaugeration of Gen. Taylor, in March 1849. All the battles of the Mexican war had been fought before Mr. L. took his seat in Congress, but the American army was still in Mexico, and the treaty of peace was not fully and formally ratified till the June afterwards. Much has been said of his course in Congress in regard to this war. A careful examination of the Journals and Congressional Globe shows, that he voted for all the supply measures which came up, and for all the measures in any way favorable to the officers, soldiers, and their families, who conducted the war through; with this exception that some of these measures passed without yeas and nays, leaving no record as to how particular men voted. The Journals and Globe also show him voting that the war was unnecessarily and unconstitutionally begun by the President of the United States. This is the language of Mr. Ashmun’s amendment, for which Mr. L. and nearly or quite all, other whigs of the H.R. [US House of Representatives] voted. Mr. L’s reasons for the opinion expressed by this vote were briefly that the President had sent Gen. Taylor into an inhabited part of the country belonging to Mexico, and not to the US and thereby had provoked the first act of hostility – in fact the commencement of the war; that the place, being the country bordering on the East bank of the Rio Grande, was inhabited by native Mexicans, born there under the Mexican government; and had never submitted to, nor been conquered by Texas, or the 2

AL and Stone condemned “the institution of slavery [which] is founded on both injustice and bad policy” while blaming abolitionists for making matters worse.

8

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:14, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.007

Autobiographical sketch US nor transferred to either by treaty – that although Texas claimed the Rio Grande as her boundary, Mexico had never recognized it, the people on the ground had never recognized it, and neither Texas nor the US had ever enforced it – that there was a broad desert between that, and the country over which Texas had actual control – that the country where hostilities commenced, having once belonged to Mexico, must remain so, until it was somehow legally transferred, which had never been done. Mr. L. thought the act of sending an armed force among the Mexicans, was unnecessary, inasmuch as Mexico was in no way molesting, or menacing the US or the people thereof; and that it was unconstitutional, because the power of levying war is vested in Congress, and not in the President. He thought the principal motive for the act, was to divert public attention from the surrender of “Fifty-four, forty, or fight” to Great Brittain, on the Oregon boundary question. Mr. L. was not a candidate for re-election. This was determined upon, and declared before he went to Washington, in accordance with an understanding among whig friends, by which Col. Hardin, and Col. Baker had each previously served a single term in the same District. In 1848, during his term in Congress, he advocated Gen. Taylor’s nomination for the Presidency, in opposition to all others, and also took an active part for his election, after his nomination – speaking a few times in Maryland, near Washington, several times in Massachusetts, and canvassing quite fully his own district in Illinois, which was followed by a majority in the district of over 1,500 for Gen. Taylor. Upon his return from Congress he went to the practice of the law with greater earnestness than ever before. In 1852 he was upon the Scott electoral ticket, and did something in the way of canvassing, but owing to the hopelessness of the cause in Illinois, he did less than in previous presidential canvasses. In 1854, his profession had almost superseded the thought of politics in his mind, when the repeal of the Missouri compromise aroused him as he had never been before. In the autumn of that year he took the stump with no broader practical aim or object than to secure, if possible, the re-election of Hon. Richard Yates to Congress. His speeches at once attracted a more marked attention than they had ever before done. As the canvass proceeded, he was drawn to different parts of the state, outside of Mr. Yates’ district. He did not abandon the law, but gave his attention, by turns, to that and politics. The State agricultural fair was at Springfield that year, and Douglas was announced to speak there. 9

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:14, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.007

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches In the canvass of 1856, Mr. L. made over fifty speeches, no one of which, so far as he remembers, was put in print. One of them was made at Galena, but Mr. L. has no recollection of any part of it being printed; nor does he remember whether in that speech he said anything about a Supreme Court decision. He may have spoken upon that subject; and some of the newspapers may have reported him as saying what is now ascribed to him; but he thinks he could not have expressed himself as represented. 9 June, 1860

10

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:14, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.007

2

“The Perpetuation of Our Political Institutions”: Address to the Springfield Young Men’s Lyceum

As an up-and-coming young lawyer and aspiring politician, Lincoln was often invited to speak on topics assigned by the organization that invited him. Here he addresses the Young Men’s Lyceum of Springfield, Illinois on “the perpetuation of our political institutions.” The most precious of these institutions, says Lincoln, is the rule of law and not of the mob. The topic was not an abstract one for Lincoln and his audience, for ten weeks before Lincoln delivered this address a pro-slavery mob had lynched the abolitionist editor Elijah P. Lovejoy in nearby Alton, Illinois. As a subject for the remarks of the evening, the perpetuation of our political institutions, is selected. In the great journal of things happening under the sun, we, the American People, find our account running, under date of the nineteenth century of the Christian era. We find ourselves in the peaceful possession, of the fairest portion of the earth, as regards extent of territory, fertility of soil, and salubrity of climate. We find ourselves under the government of a system of political institutions, conducing more essentially to the ends of civil and religious liberty, than any of which the history of former times tells us. We, when mounting the stage of existence, found ourselves the legal inheritors of these fundamental blessings. We toiled not in the acquirement or establishment of them – they are a legacy bequeathed us, by a once hardy, brave, and patriotic, but now lamented and departed race of ancestors. Theirs was the task (and nobly they performed it) to possess themselves, and through themselves, us, of this goodly land; and

11

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:15, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.008

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches to uprear upon its hills and its valleys, a political edifice of liberty and equal rights; ’tis ours only, to transmit these, the former, unprofaned by the foot of an invader; the latter, undecayed by the lapse of time, and untorn by usurpation – to the latest generation that fate shall permit the world to know. This task of gratitude to our fathers, justice to ourselves, duty to posterity, and love for our species in general, all imperatively require us faithfully to perform. How, then, shall we perform it? At what point shall we expect the approach of danger? By what means shall we fortify against it? Shall we expect some transatlantic military giant, to step the Ocean, and crush us at a blow? Never! All the armies of Europe, Asia, and Africa combined, with all the treasure of the earth (our own excepted) in their military chest; with a Buonaparte for a commander, could not by force, take a drink from the Ohio, or make a track on the Blue Ridge, in a trial of a thousand years. At what point then is the approach of danger to be expected? I answer, if it ever reach us, it must spring up amongst us. It cannot come from abroad. If destruction be our lot, we must ourselves be its author and finisher. As a nation of freemen, we must live through all time, or die by suicide. I hope I am over wary; but if I am not, there is, even now, something of ill-omen amongst us. I mean the increasing disregard for law which pervades the country; the growing disposition to substitute the wild and furious passions, in lieu of the sober judgment of Courts; and the worse than savage mobs, for the executive ministers of justice. This disposition is awfully fearful in any community; and that it now exists in ours, though grating to our feelings to admit, it would be a violation of truth, and an insult to our intelligence, to deny. Accounts of outrages committed by mobs, form the every-day news of the times. They have pervaded the country, from New England to Louisiana; – they are neither peculiar to the eternal snows of the former, nor the burning suns of the latter; – they are not the creature of climate – neither are they confined to the slaveholding, or the non-slaveholding States. Alike, they spring up among the pleasure hunting masters of Southern slaves, and the order loving citizens of the land of steady habits. Whatever, then, their cause may be, it is common to the whole country. It would be tedious, as well as useless, to recount the horrors of all of them. Those happening in the State of Mississippi, and at St. Louis, are, perhaps, the most dangerous in example, and revolting to humanity. In the Mississippi case, they first commenced by hanging the regular 12

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:15, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.008

Address to the Young Men’s Lyceum gamblers: a set of men, certainly not following for a livelihood, a very useful, or very honest occupation; but one which, so far from being forbidden by the laws, was actually licensed by an act of the Legislature, passed but a single year before. Next, negroes, suspected of conspiring to raise an insurrection, were caught up and hanged in all parts of the State: then, white men, supposed to be leagued with the negroes; and finally, strangers, from neighboring States, going thither on business, were, in many instances, subjected to the same fate. Thus went on this process of hanging, from gamblers to negroes, from negroes to white citizens, and from these to strangers; till, dead men were seen literally dangling from the boughs of trees upon every road side; and in numbers almost sufficient, to rival the native Spanish moss of the country, as a drapery of the forest. Turn, then, to that horror-striking scene at St. Louis. A single victim was only sacrificed there. His story is very short; and is, perhaps, the most highly tragic, of any thing of its length, that has ever been witnessed in real life. A mulatto man, by the name of McIntosh, was seized in the street, dragged to the suburbs of the city, chained to a tree, and actually burned to death; and all within a single hour from the time he had been a freeman, attending to his own business, and at peace with the world. Such are the effects of mob law; and such are the scenes, becoming more and more frequent in this land so lately famed for love of law and order; and the stories of which, have even now grown too familiar, to attract any thing more, than an idle remark. But you are, perhaps, ready to ask, “What has this to do with the perpetuation of our political institutions?” I answer, it has much to do with it. Its direct consequences are, comparatively speaking, but a small evil; and much of its danger consists, in the proneness of our minds, to regard its direct, as its only consequences. Abstractly considered, the hanging of the gamblers at Vicksburg, was of but little consequence. They constitute a portion of population, that is worse than useless in any community; and their death, if no pernicious example be set by it, is never matter of reasonable regret with any one. If they were annually swept, from the stage of existence, by the plague or small pox, honest men would, perhaps, be much profited, by the operation. Similar too, is the correct reasoning, in regard to the burning of the negro at St. Louis. He had forfeited his life, by the perpetration of an outrageous murder, upon one of the most worthy and respectable citizens of the city; and had he not died as he did, he must have died by the sentence of the law, in a very 13

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:15, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.008

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches short time afterwards. As to him alone, it was as well the way it was, as it could otherwise have been. But the example in either case, was fearful. When men take it in their heads today, to hang gamblers, or burn murderers, they should recollect, that, in the confusion usually attending such transactions, they will be as likely to hang or burn some one, who is neither a gambler nor a murderer as one who is; and that, acting upon the example they set, the mob of to-morrow, may, and probably will, hang or burn some of them, by the very same mistake. And not only so; the innocent, those who have ever set their faces against violations of law in every shape, alike with the guilty, fall victims to the ravages of mob law; and thus it goes on, step by step, till all the walls erected for the defence of the persons and property of individuals, are trodden down, and disregarded. But all this even, is not the full extent of the evil. By such examples, by instances of the perpetrators of such acts going unpunished, the lawless in spirit, are encouraged to become lawless in practice; and having been used to no restraint, but dread of punishment, they thus become, absolutely unrestrained. Having ever regarded Government as their deadliest bane, they make a jubilee of the suspension of its operations; and pray for nothing so much, as its total annihilation. While, on the other hand, good men, men who love tranquility, who desire to abide by the laws, and enjoy their benefits, who would gladly spill their blood in the defence of their country; seeing their property destroyed; their families insulted, and their lives endangered; their persons injured; and seeing nothing in prospect that forebodes a change for the better; become tired of, and disgusted with, a Government that offers them no protection; and are not much averse to a change in which they imagine they have nothing to lose. Thus, then, by the operation of this mobocratic spirit, which all must admit, is now abroad in the land, the strongest bulwark of any Government, and particularly of those constituted like ours, may effectually be broken down and destroyed – I mean the attachment of the People. Whenever this effect shall be produced among us; whenever the vicious portion of population shall be permitted to gather in bands of hundreds and thousands, and burn churches, ravage and rob provision stores, throw printing presses into rivers, shoot editors;1 and hang and burn obnoxious persons at pleasure, and with impunity; depend on it, this Government cannot last. By such things, the feelings of the best 1

AL refers to the recent lynching of the abolitionist editor Elijah P. Lovejoy in Alton, Illinois.

14

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:15, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.008

Address to the Young Men’s Lyceum citizens will become more or less alienated from it; and thus it will be left without friends, or with too few, and those few too weak, to make their friendship effectual. At such a time and under such circumstances, men of sufficient talent and ambition will not be wanting to seize the opportunity, strike the blow, and overturn that fair fabric, which for the last half century, has been the fondest hope, of the lovers of freedom, throughout the world. I know the American People are much attached to their Government; – I know they would suffer much for its sake; – know they would endure evils long and patiently, before they would ever think of exchanging it for another. Yet, notwithstanding all this, if the laws be continually despised and disregarded, if their rights to be secure in their persons and property, are held by no better tenure than the caprice of a mob, the alienation of their affections from the Government is the natural consequence; and to that, sooner or later, it must come. Here then, is one point at which danger may be expected. The question recurs “how shall we fortify against it?” The answer is simple. Let every American, every lover of liberty, every well wisher to his posterity, swear by the blood of the Revolution, never to violate in the least particular, the laws of the country; and never to tolerate their violation by others. As the patriots of seventy-six did to the support of the Declaration of Independence, so to the support of the Constitution and Laws, let every American pledge his life, his property, and his sacred honor; – let every man remember that to violate the law, is to trample on the blood of his father, and to tear the character of his own, and his children’s liberty. Let reverence for the laws, be breathed by every American mother, to the lisping babe, that prattles on her lap – let it be taught in schools, in seminaries, and in colleges; – let it be written in Primmers, spelling books, and in Almanacs; – let it be preached from the pulpit, proclaimed in legislative halls, and enforced in courts of justice. And, in short, let it become the political religion of the nation; and let the old and the young, the rich and the poor, the grave and the gay, of all sexes and tongues, and colors and conditions, sacrifice unceasingly upon its altars. While ever a state of feeling, such as this, shall universally, or even, very generally prevail throughout the nation, vain will be every effort, and fruitless every attempt, to subvert our national freedom. When I so pressingly urge a strict observance of all the laws, let me not be understood as saying there are no bad laws, nor that grievances may not 15

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:15, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.008

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches arise, for the redress of which, no legal provisions have been made. I mean to say no such thing. But I do mean to say, that, although bad laws, if they exist, should be repealed as soon as possible, still while they continue in force, for the sake of example, they should be religiously observed. So also in unprovided cases. If such arise, let proper legal provisions be made for them with the least possible delay; but, till then, let them if not too intolerable, be borne with. There is no grievance that is a fit object of redress by mob law. In any case that arises, as for instance, the promulgation of abolitionism, one of two positions is necessarily true; that is, the thing is right within itself, and therefore deserves the protection of all law and all good citizens; or, it is wrong, and therefore proper to be prohibited by legal enactments; and in neither case, is the interposition of mob law, either necessary, justifiable, or excusable. But, it may be asked, why suppose danger to our political institutions? Have we not preserved them for more than fifty years? And why may we not for fifty times as long? We hope there is no sufficient reason. We hope all dangers may be overcome; but to conclude that no danger may ever arise, would itself be extremely dangerous. There are now, and will hereafter be, many causes, dangerous in their tendency, which have not existed heretofore; and which are not too insignificant to merit attention. That our government should have been maintained in its original form from its establishment until now, is not much to be wondered at. It had many props to support it through that period, which now are decayed, and crumbled away. Through that period, it was felt by all, to be an undecided experiment; now, it is understood to be a successful one. Then, all that sought celebrity and fame, and distinction, expected to find them in the success of that experiment. Their all was staked upon it: – their destiny was inseparably linked with it. Their ambition aspired to display before an admiring world, a practical demonstration of the truth of a proposition, which had hitherto been considered, at best no better, than problematical; namely, the capability of a people to govern themselves. If they succeeded, they were to be immortalized; their names were to be transferred to counties and cities, and rivers and mountains; and to be revered and sung, and toasted through all time. If they failed, they were to be called knaves and fools, and fanatics for a fleeting hour; then to sink and be forgotten. They succeeded. The experiment is successful; and thousands have won their deathless names in making it so. But the game is caught; 16

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:15, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.008

Address to the Young Men’s Lyceum and I believe it is true, that with the catching, end the pleasures of the chase. This field of glory is harvested, and the crop is already appropriated. But new reapers will arise, and they, too, will seek a field. It is to deny, what the history of the world tells us is true, to suppose that men of ambition and talents will not continue to spring up amongst us. And, when they do, they will as naturally seek the gratification of their ruling passion, as others have so done before them. The question then, is, can that gratification be found in supporting and maintaining an edifice that has been erected by others? Most certainly it cannot. Many great and good men sufficiently qualified for any task they should undertake, may ever be found, whose ambition would aspire to nothing beyond a seat in Congress, a gubernatorial or a presidential chair; but such belong not to the family of the lion, or the tribe of the eagle. What! think you these places would satisfy an Alexander, a Caesar, or a Napoleon? Never! Towering genius disdains a beaten path. It seeks regions hitherto unexplored. It sees no distinction in adding story to story, upon the monuments of fame, erected to the memory of others. It denies that it is glory enough to serve under any chief. It scorns to tread in the footsteps of any predecessor, however illustrious. It thirsts and burns for distinction; and, if possible, it will have it, whether at the expense of emancipating slaves, or enslaving freemen. Is it unreasonable then to expect, that some man possessed of the loftiest genius, coupled with ambition sufficient to push it to its utmost stretch, will at some time, spring up among us? And when such a one does, it will require the people to be united with each other, attached to the government and laws, and generally intelligent, to successfully frustrate his designs. Distinction will be his paramount object; and although he would as willingly, perhaps more so, acquire it by doing good as harm; yet, that opportunity being past, and nothing left to be done in the way of building up, he would set boldly to the task of pulling down. Here then, is a probable case, highly dangerous, and such a one as could not have well existed heretofore. Another reason which once was; but which, to the same extent, is now no more, has done much in maintaining our institutions thus far. I mean the powerful influence which the interesting scenes of the revolution had upon the passions of the people as distinguished from their judgment. By this influence, the jealousy, envy, and avarice, incident to our nature, and so common to a state of peace, prosperity, and conscious strength, were, for the time, in a great measure smothered and rendered inactive; while 17

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:15, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.008

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches the deep rooted principles of hate, and the powerful motive of revenge, instead of being turned against each other, were directed exclusively against the British nation. And thus, from the force of circumstances, the basest principles of our nature, were either made to lie dormant, or to become the active agents in the advancement of the noblest of cause – that of establishing and maintaining civil and religious liberty. But this state of feeling must fade, is fading, has faded, with the circumstances that produced it. I do not mean to say, that the scenes of the revolution are now or ever will be entirely forgotten; but that like every thing else, they must fade upon the memory of the world, and grow more and more dim by the lapse of time. In history, we hope, they will be read of, and recounted, so long as the bible shall be read; – but even granting that they will, their influence cannot be what it heretofore has been. Even then, they cannot be so universally known, nor so vividly felt, as they were by the generation just gone to rest. At the close of that struggle, nearly every adult male had been a participator in some of its scenes. The consequence was, that of those scenes, in the form of a husband, a father, a son, or a brother, a living history was to be found in every family – a history bearing the indubitable testimonies of its own authenticity, in the limbs mangled, in the scars of wounds received, in the midst of the very scenes related – a history, too, that could be read and understood alike by all, the wise and the ignorant, the learned and the unlearned. But those histories are gone. They can be read no more forever. They were a fortress of strength; but, what invading foemen could never do, the silent artillery of time has done; the levelling of its walls. They are gone. They were a forest of giant oaks; but the all resistless hurricane has swept over them, and left only, here and there, a lonely trunk, despoiled of its verdure, shorn of its foliage; unshading and unshaded, to murmur in a few more gentle breezes, and to combat with its mutilated limbs, a few more ruder storms, then to sink, and be no more. They were the pillars of the temple of liberty; and now, that they have crumbled away, that temple must fall, unless we, their descendants, supply their places with other pillars, hewn from the solid quarry of sober reason. Passion has helped us; but can do so no more. It will in future be our enemy. Reason, cold, calculating, unimpassioned reason, must furnish all the materials for our future support and defence. Let those materials be moulded into general intelligence, sound morality and, in particular, a reverence for the Constitution and Laws; and, that we improved to the last; that we remained free to the last; that we revered his name to the last; that, during his long sleep, we permitted no hostile foot 18

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:15, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.008

Address to the Young Men’s Lyceum to pass over or desecrate his resting place; shall be that which to learn the last trump shall awaken our Washington. Upon these let the proud fabric of freedom rest, as the rock of its basis; and as truly as has been said of the only greater institution, “the gates of hell shall not prevail against it.” 2 January 27, 1838

2

Matthew 16: 18.

19

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:15, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.008

3

Limits of Presidential Power: To William H. Herndon

William H. Herndon was Lincoln’s law partner (and posthumous biographer). During his single term as a Whig member of the US House of Representatives (1847–9) Lincoln opposed the Mexican-American War as unconstitutional. In a strongly worded speech he held President James K. Polk responsible for starting that war by abusing and overextending his presidential power as outlined in the Constitution. Herndon wrote to Lincoln to object to (as Herndon saw it) his undue restriction of presidential prerogative. Here is Lincoln’s reply. Washington, February 15, 1848 Dear William: Your letter of the 29th Jany. was received last night. Being exclusively a constitutional argument, I wish to submit some reflections upon it in the same spirit of kindness that I know actuates you. Let me first state what I understand to be your position. It is, that if it shall become necessary, to repel invasion, the President may, without violation of the Constitution, cross the line, and invade the territory of another country; and that whether such necessity exists in any given case, the President is to be the sole judge. Before going further, consider well whether this is, or is not your position. If it is, it is a position that neither the President himself, nor any friend of his, so far as I know, has ever taken. Their only positions are first, that the soil was ours where hostilities commenced, and second, that whether it was rightfully ours or not, Congress had annexed it, and the 20

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.009

Letter to W.H. Herndon President, for that reason was bound to defend it, both of which are as clearly proved to be false in fact, as you can prove that your house is not mine. That soil was not ours; and Congress did not annex or attempt to annex it. But to return to your position: Allow the President to invade a neighboring nation, whenever he shall deem it necessary to repel an invasion, and you allow him to do so, whenever he may choose to say he deems it necessary for such purpose – and you allow him to make war at pleasure. Study to see if you can fix any limit to his power in this respect, after you have given him so much as you propose. If, to-day, he should choose to say he thinks it necessary to invade Canada, to prevent the British from invading us, how could you stop him? You may say to him, “I see no probability of the British invading us,” but he will say to you “be silent; I see it, if you don’t.” The provision of the Constitution giving the war-making power to Congress,1 was dictated, as I understand it, by the following reasons. Kings had always been involving and impoverishing their people in wars, pretending generally, if not always, that the good of the people was the object. This, our Convention understood to be the most oppressive of all Kingly oppressions; and they resolved to so frame the Constitution that no one man should hold the power of bringing this oppression upon us. But your view destroys the whole matter, and places our President where kings have always stood. Write soon again. Yours truly,

1

US Constitution, Article I, section 8.

21

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.009

4

Speech on the Kansas–Nebraska Act

The Kansas–Nebraska Act of 1854, sponsored by Lincoln’s nemesis Senator Stephen A. Douglas of Illinois, repealed the Missouri Compromise of 1820 and opened the territories of Nebraska and Kansas. The residents of these territories would vote to decide whether they would be admitted as free or slave states. Leaving that momentous decision to settlers in those territories Douglas called “popular sovereignty.” In his speech at Peoria, Illinois Lincoln decried the Kansas–Nebraska Act for allowing the extension of slavery into the western territories. As Lincoln later noted in his Autobiographical Sketch (see selection 1), it was the monstrous injustice (as he saw it) of this Act that inspired him to return to politics and to join the newly formed Republican Party, the main aim of which was to stop the westward expansion of slavery. The bulk of Lincoln’s long (17,000-word) speech is devoted to a history of the Missouri Compromise and its repeal. Only a small portion is reprinted here. . . . Equal justice to the South, it is said, requires us to consent to the extending of slavery to new countries. That is to say, inasmuch as you do not object to my taking my hog to Nebraska, therefore I must not object to you taking your slave. Now, I admit this is perfectly logical, if there is no difference between hogs and negroes. But while you thus require me to deny the humanity of the negro, I wish to ask whether you of the South yourselves, have ever been willing to do as much? It is kindly provided that, of all those who come into the world, only a small percentage are natural tyrants. That percentage is no larger in the slave States than in the free. The great majority, South as well as North, have human sympathies, of which they 22

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.010

Speech on the Kansas–Nebraska Act can no more divest themselves than they can of their sensibility to physical pain. These sympathies in the bosoms of the Southern people, manifest in many ways, their sense of the wrong of slavery, and their consciousness that, after all, there is humanity in the negro. If they deny this, let me address them a few plain questions. In 1820 you joined the North, almost unanimously, in declaring the African slave trade piracy, and in annexing to it the punishment of death.1 Why did you do this? If you did not feel that it was wrong, why did you join in providing that men should be hung for it? The practice was no more than bringing wild negroes from Africa, to sell to such as would buy them. But you never thought of hanging men for catching and selling wild horses, wild buffaloes, or wild bears. Again, you have amongst you, a sneaking individual, of the class of native tyrants, known as the “Slave-Dealer.” He watches your necessities, and crawls up to buy your slave, at a speculating price. If you cannot help it, you sell to him; but if you can help it, you drive him from your door. You despise him utterly. You do not recognize him as a friend, or even as an honest man. Your children must not play with his; they may rollick freely with the little negroes, but not with the “slavedealer’s” children. If you are obliged to deal with him, you try to get through the job without so much as touching him. It is common with you to join hands with the men you meet; but with the slave dealer you avoid the ceremony – instinctively shrinking from the snaky contact. If he grows rich and retires from business, you still remember him, and still keep up the ban of non-intercourse upon him and his family. Now why is this? You do not so treat the man who deals in corn, cattle or tobacco. And yet again; there are in the United States and territories, including the District of Columbia, 433,643 free blacks. At $500 per head they are worth over two hundred millions of dollars. How comes this vast amount of property to be running about without owners? We do not see free horses or free cattle running at large. How is this? All these free blacks are the descendants of slaves, or have been slaves themselves, and they would be slaves now, but for something which has operated on their white owners, inducing them, at vast pecuniary sacrifices, to liberate them. What is that something? Is there any mistaking it? In all these cases it is your sense of justice, and human sympathy, continually telling you, that the poor negro has some natural right to himself – that those who deny it, and make mere merchandise of him, deserve kickings, contempt and death. 1

Although illegal, the foreign slave trade continued almost unabated.

23

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.010

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches And now, why will you ask us to deny the humanity of the slave? and estimate him only as the equal of the hog? Why ask us to do what you will not do yourselves? Why ask us to do for nothing, what two hundred million of dollars could not induce you to do? But one great argument in the support of the repeal of the Missouri Compromise, is still to come. That argument is “the sacred right of selfgovernment.” It seems our distinguished Senator2 has found great difficulty in getting his antagonists, even in the Senate to meet him fairly on this argument – some poet has said “Fools rush in where angels fear to tread.” 3 At the hazzard of being thought one of the fools of this quotation, I meet that argument – I rush in, I take that bull by the horns. I trust I understand, and truly estimate the right of self-government. My faith in the proposition that each man should do precisely as he pleases with all which is exclusively his own, lies at the foundation of the sense of justice there is in me. I extend the principles to communities of men, as well as to individuals. I so extend it, because it is politically wise, as well as naturally just: politically wise, in saving us from broils about matters which do not concern us. Here, or at Washington, I would not trouble myself with the oyster laws of Virginia, or the cranberry laws of Indiana. The doctrine of self-government is right – absolutely and eternally right – but it has no just application, as here attempted. Or perhaps I should rather say that whether it has such just application depends upon whether a negro is not or is a man. If he is not a man, why in that case, he who is a man may, as a matter of self-government, do just as he pleases with him. But if the negro is a man, is it not to that extent, a total destruction of self-government, to say that he too shall not govern himself ? When the white man governs himself that is self-government; but when he governs himself, and also governs another man, that is more than self-government – that is despotism. If the negro is a man, why then my ancient faith teaches me that “all men are created equal;” and that there can be no moral right in connection with one man’s making a slave of another. Judge Douglas frequently, with bitter irony and sarcasm, paraphrases our argument by saying “The white people of Nebraska are good enough 2 3

Lincoln refers to Senator Stephen A. Douglas of Illinois. Alexander Pope, An Essay on Criticism (1711), line 625.

24

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.010

Speech on the Kansas–Nebraska Act to govern themselves, but they are not good enough to govern a few miserable negroes!!” Well I doubt not that the people of Nebraska are, and will continue to be as good as the average of people elsewhere. I do not say the contrary. What I do say is, that no man is good enough to govern another man, without that other’s consent. I say this is the leading principle – the sheet anchor of American republicanism. Our Declaration of Independence says: We hold these truths to be self-evident: that all men are created equal; that they are endowed by their Creator with certain inalienable rights; that among these are life, liberty and the pursuit of happiness. That to secure these rights, governments are instituted among men, deriving their just powers from the consent of the governed.

I have quoted so much at this time merely to show that according to our ancient faith, the just powers of governments are derived from the consent of the governed. Now the relation of masters and slaves is, pro tanto, a total violation of this principle. The master not only governs the slave without his consent; but he governs him by a set of rules altogether different from those which he prescribes for himself. Allow all the governed an equal voice in the government, and that, and that only is self-government. Let it not be said I am contending for the establishment of political and social equality between the whites and blacks. I have already said the contrary. I am not now combating the argument of necessity, arising from the fact that the blacks are already amongst us; but I am combating what is set up as moral argument for allowing them to be taken where they have never yet been – arguing against the extension of a bad thing, which where it already exists, we must of necessity, manage as we best can. In support of his application of the doctrine of self-government, Senator Douglas has sought to bring to his aid the opinions and examples of our revolutionary fathers. I am glad he has done this. I love the sentiments of those old-time men; and shall be most happy to abide by their opinions. He shows us that when it was in contemplation for the colonies to break off from Great Britain, and set up a new government for themselves, several of the states instructed their delegates to go for the measure provided each state should be allowed to regulate its domestic concerns in its own way. I do not quote; but this in substance. This was right. I see nothing objectionable in it. I also think it probable that it had some reference to the existence of slavery amongst 25

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.010

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches them. I will not deny that it had. But had it, in any reference to the carrying of slavery into new countries? That is the question; and we will let the fathers themselves answer it. This same generation of men, and mostly the same individuals of the generation, who declared this principle – who declared independence – who fought the war of the revolution through – who afterwards made the constitution under which we still live – these same men passed the ordinance of ’87, declaring that slavery should never go to the north-west territory. I have no doubt Judge Douglas thinks they were very inconsistent in this. It is a question of discrimination between them and him. But there is not an inch of ground left for his claiming that their opinions – their example – their authority – are on his side in this controversy. Again, is not Nebraska, while a territory, a part of us? Do we not own the country? And if we surrender the control of it, do we not surrender the right of self-government? It is part of ourselves. If you say we shall not control it because it is only part, the same is true of every other part; and when all the parts are gone, what has become of the whole? What is then left of us? What use for the general government, when there is nothing left for it to govern? But you say this question should be left to the people of Nebraska, because they are more particularly interested. If this be the rule, you must leave it to each individual to say for himself whether he will have slaves. What better moral right have thirty-one citizens of Nebraska to say, that the thirty-second shall not hold slaves, than the people of the thirty-one States have to say that slavery shall not go into the thirty-second State at all? But if it is a sacred right for the people of Nebraska to take and hold slaves there, it is equally their sacred right to buy them where they can buy them cheapest; and that undoubtedly will be on the coast of Africa; provided you will consent to not hang them for going there to buy them. You must remove this restriction too, from the sacred right of self-government. I am aware you say that taking slaves from the States to Nebraska, does not make slaves of freemen; but the African slave-trader can say just as much. He does not catch free negroes and bring them here. He finds them already slaves in the hands of their black captors, and he honestly buys them at the rate of about a red cotton handkerchief a head. This is very cheap, and it is a great abridgement of the sacred right of self-government to hang men for engaging in this profitable trade! Another important objection to this application of the right of selfgovernment, is that it enables the first few, to deprive the succeeding 26

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.010

Speech on the Kansas–Nebraska Act many, of a free exercise of the right of self-government. The first few may get slavery in, and the subsequent many cannot easily get it out. How common is the remark now in the slave States – “If we were only clear of our slaves, how much better it would be for us.” They are actually deprived of the privilege of governing themselves as they would, by the action of a very few, in the beginning. The same thing was true of the whole nation at the time our constitution was formed. Whether slavery shall go into Nebraska, or other new territories, is not a matter of exclusive concern to the people who may go there. The whole nation is interested that the best use shall be made of these territories. We want them for the homes of free white people. This they cannot be, to any considerable extent, if slavery shall be planted within them. Slave States are places for poor white people to remove from; not to remove to. New free States are the places for poor people to go to and better their condition. For this use, the nation needs these territories. Still further; there are constitutional relations between the slave and free States, which are degrading to the latter. We are under legal obligations to catch and return their runaway slaves to them – a sort of dirty, disagreeable job, which I believe, as a general rule the slave-holders will not perform for one another. Then again, in the control of the government – the management of the partnership affairs – they have greatly the advantage of us. By the constitution, each State has two Senators – each has a number of Representatives; in proportion to the number of its people – and each has a number of Presidential electors, equal to the whole number of its Senators and Representatives together. But in ascertaining the number of the people, for this purpose, five slaves are counted as being equal to three whites.4 The slaves do not vote; they are only counted and so used, as to swell the influence of the white people’s votes. The practical effect of this is more aptly shown by a comparison of the States of South Carolina and Maine. South Carolina has six representatives, and so has Maine; South Carolina has eight Presidential electors, and so has Maine. This is precise equality so far; and, of course they are equal in Senators, each having two. Thus in the control of the government, the two States are equals precisely. But how are they in the number of their white people? Maine has 581,813 – while South Carolina has 274,567. Maine has twice as many as South Carolina, and 32,679 over. Thus each white man in South Carolina is

4

The so-called “three-fifths clause” of the US Constitution (Article I, section 2).

27

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.010

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches more than the double of any man in Maine. This is all because South Carolina, besides her free people, has 384,984 slaves. The South Carolinian has precisely the same advantage over the white man in every other free State, as well as in Maine. He is more than the double of any one of us in this crowd. The same advantage, but not to the same extent, is held by all the citizens of the slave States, over those of the free; and it is an absolute truth, without an exception, that there is no voter in any slave State, but who has more legal power in the government, than any voter in any free State. There is no instance of exact equality; and the disadvantage is against us the whole chapter through. This principle, in the aggregate, gives the slave States, in the present Congress, twenty additional representatives – being seven more than the whole majority by which they passed the Nebraska bill. Now all this is manifestly unfair; yet I do not mention it to complain of it, in so far as it is already settled. It is in the constitution; and I do not, for that cause, or any other cause, propose to destroy, or alter, or disregard the constitution. I stand to it, fairly, fully, and firmly. But when I am told I must leave it altogether to other people to say, whether new partners are to be bred up and brought into the firm, on the same degrading terms against me, I respectfully demur. I insist, that whether I shall be a whole man, or only the half of one, in comparison with others, is a question in which I am somewhat concerned; and one which no other man can have a sacred right of deciding for me. If I am wrong in this – if it really be a sacred right of self-government, in the man who shall go to Nebraska, to decide whether he will be the equal of me or the double of me, then after he shall have exercised that right, and thereby shall have reduced me to a still smaller fraction of a man than I already am, I should like for some gentleman deeply skilled in the mysteries of sacred rights, to provide himself with a microscope, and peep about, and find out, if he can, what has become of my sacred rights! They will surely be too small for detection with the naked eye. Finally, I insist, that if there is any thing which it is the duty of the whole people to never entrust to any hands but their own, that thing is the preservation and perpetuity, of their own liberties, and institutions. And if they shall think, as I do, that the extension of slavery endangers them, more than any, or all other causes, how recreant to themselves, if they submit the question, and with it, the fate of their country, to a mere hand-full of men, bent only on temporary self-interest. If this question of slavery extension were an insignificant one – one having no power to do harm – it might be shuffled aside in this way. But being, as it is, the great 28

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.010

Speech on the Kansas–Nebraska Act Behemoth of danger, shall the strong grip of the nation be loosened upon him, to entrust him to the hands of such feeble keepers? I have done with this mighty argument, of self-government. Go, sacred thing! Go in peace. But Nebraska is urged as a great Union-saving measure. Well I too, go for saving the Union. Much as I hate slavery, I would consent to the extension of it rather than see the Union dissolved, just as I would consent to any g reat evil, to avoid a g reater one. But when I go to Union saving, I must believe, at least, that the means I employ has some adaptation to the end. To my mind, Nebraska has no such adaptation. “It hath no relish of salvation in it.” 5

It is an aggravation, rather, of the only one thing which ever endangers the Union. When it came upon us, all was peace and quiet. The nation was looking to the forming of new bonds of Union; and a long course of peace and prosperity seemed to lie before us. In the whole range of possibility, there scarcely appears to me to have been any thing, out of which the slavery agitation could have been revived, except the very project of repealing the Missouri Compromise. Every inch of territory we owned, already had a definite settlement of the slavery question, and by which, all parties were pledged to abide. Indeed, there was no uninhabited country on the continent, which we could acquire; if we except some extreme northern regions, which are wholly out of the question. In this state of case, the genius of Discord himself, could scarcely have invented a way of again getting us by the ears, but by turning back and destroying the peace measures of the past. The councils of that genius seem to have prevailed, the Missouri Compromise was repealed; and here we are, in the midst of a new slavery agitation, such, I think, as we have never seen before. Who is responsible for this? Is it those who resist the measure; or those who, causelessly, brought it forward, and pressed it through, having reason to know, and, in fact, knowing it must and would be so resisted? It could not but be expected by its author, that it would be looked upon as a measure for the extension of slavery, aggravated by a gross breach of faith. Argue as you will, and long as you will, this is the naked front and aspect, of the measure. And in this aspect, it could not, but produce agitation. Slavery is founded in the selfishness of man’s nature – opposition to it, is his love of justice. These principles are an eternal antagonism; and when 5

Shakespeare, Hamlet, Act III, scene 3, line 92.

29

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.010

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches brought into collision so fiercely, as slavery extension brings them, shocks, and throes, and convulsions must ceaselessly follow. Repeal the Missouri Compromise – repeal all compromises – repeal the Declaration of Independence – repeal all past history, you still can not repeal human nature. It still will be the abundance of man’s heart, that slavery extension is wrong; and out of the abundance of his heart, his mouth will continue to speak. The structure, too, of the Nebraska bill is very peculiar. The people are to decide the question of slavery for themselves; but when they are to decide; or how they are to decide; or whether, when the question is once decided, it is to remain so, or is it to be subject to an indefinite succession of new trials, the law does not say. Is it to be decided by the first dozen settlers who arrive there? or is it to await the arrival of a hundred? Is it to be decided by a vote of the people? or a vote of the legislature? or, indeed by a vote of any sort? To these questions, the law gives no answer. There is a mystery about this; for when a member proposed to give the legislature express authority to exclude slavery, it was hooted down by the friends of the bill. This fact is worth remembering. Some yankees, in the east, are sending emigrants to Nebraska, to exclude slavery from it; and, so far as I can judge, they expect the question to be decided by voting, in some way or other. But the Missourians are awake too. They are within a stone’s throw of the contested ground. They hold meetings, and pass resolutions, in which not the slightest allusion to voting is made. They resolve that slavery already exists in the territory; that more shall go there; that they, remaining in Missouri will protect it; and that abolitionists shall be hung, or driven away. Through all this, bowie-knives and sixshooters are seen plainly enough; but never a glimpse of the ballotbox. And, really, what is to be the result of this? Each party within, having numerous and determined backers without, is it not probable that the contest will come to blows, and bloodshed? Could there be a more apt invention to bring about collision and violence, on the slavery question, than this Nebraska project is? I do not charge, or believe, that such was intended by Congress; but if they had literally formed a ring, and placed champions within it to fight out the controversy, the fight could be no more likely to come off, than it is. And if this fight should begin, is it likely to take a very peaceful, Union-saving turn? Will not the first drop of blood so shed, be the real knell of the Union? The Missouri Compromise ought to be restored. For the sake of the Union, it ought to be restored. We ought to elect a House of 30

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.010

Speech on the Kansas–Nebraska Act Representatives which will vote its restoration. If by any means, we omit to do this, what follows? Slavery may or may not be established in Nebraska. But whether it be or not, we shall have repudiated – discarded from the councils of the Nation – the spirit of compromi se; for who after this will ever trust in a national compromise? The spirit of mutual concession – that spirit which first gave us the constitution, and which has thrice saved the Union – we shall have strangled and cast from us forever. And what shall we have in lieu of it? The South flushed with triumph and tempted to excesses; the North, betrayed, as they believe, brooding on wrong and burning for revenge. One side will provoke; the other resent. The one will taunt, the other defy; one aggresses, the other retaliates. Already a few in the North defy all constitutional restraints, resist the execution of the fugitive slave law, and even menace the institution of slavery in the states where it exists. Already a few in the South claim the constitutional right to take to and hold slaves in the free states – demand the revival of the slave trade; and demand a treaty with Great Britain by which fugitive slaves may be reclaimed from Canada. As yet they are but few on either side. It is a grave question for the lovers of the Union, whether the final destruction of the Missouri Compromise, and with it the spirit of all compromise, will or will not embolden and embitter each of these, and fatally increase the numbers of both. But restore the Compromise, and what then? We thereby restore the national faith, the national confidence, the national feeling of brotherhood. We hereby reinstate the spirit of concession and compromise – that spirit which has never failed us in past perils, and which may be safely trusted for all the future. The South ought to join in doing this. The peace of the nation is as dear to them as to us. In memories of the past and hopes of the future, they share as largely as we. It would be on their part, a great act – great in its spirit, and great in its effect. It would be worth to the nation a hundred years’ purchase of peace and prosperity. And what of sacrifice would they make? They only surrender to us, what they gave us for a consideration long, long ago; what they have not now, asked for, struggled or cared for; what has been thrust upon them, not less to their own astonishment than to ours. But it is said we cannot restore it; that though we elect every member of the lower house, the Senate is still against us. It is quite true, that of the Senators who passed the Nebraska bill, a majority of the whole Senate will retain their seats in spite of the elections of this and the next year. But if at 31

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.010

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches these elections, their several constituencies shall clearly express their will against Nebraska, will these Senators disregard their will? Will they neither obey, nor make room for those who will? But even if we fail to technically restore the Compromise, it is still a great point to carry a popular vote in favor of the restoration. The moral weight of such a vote can not be estimated too highly. The authors of Nebraska are not at all satisfied with the destruction of the Compromise – an endorsement of this principle, they proclaim to be the great object. With them, Nebraska alone is a small matter – to establish a principle, for future use, is what they particularly desire. That future use is to be the planting of slavery wherever in the wide world, local and unorganized opposition can not prevent it. Now if you wish to give them this endorsement – if you wish to establish this principle – do so. I shall regret it; but it is your right. On the contrary if you are opposed to the principle – intend to give it no such endorsement – let no wheedling, no sophistry, divert you from throwing a direct vote against it. Some men, mostly whigs, who condemn the repeal of the Missouri Compromise, nevertheless hesitate to go for its restoration, lest they be thrown in company with the abolitionist. Will they allow me as an old whig to tell them good-humoredly, that I think this is very silly? Stand with anybody that stands rig ht. Stand with him while he is right and part with him when he goes wrong. Stand with the abolitionist in restoring the Missouri Compromise; and stand against him when he attempts to repeal the fugitive slave law. In the latter case you stand with the Southern disunionist. What of that? you are still right. In both cases you are right. In both cases you oppose the dangerous extremes. In both you stand on middle ground and hold the ship level and steady. In both you are national and nothing less than national. This is good old whig ground. To desert such ground, because of any company, is to be less than a whig – less than a man – less than an American. I particularly object to the new position which the avowed principle of this Nebraska law gives to slavery in the body politic. I object to it because it assumes that there can be moral rig ht in the enslaving of one man by another. I object to it as a dangerous dalliance for a free people – a sad evidence that, feeling prosperity, we forget right – that liberty, as a principle, we have ceased to revere. I object to it because the fathers of the republic eschewed, and rejected it. The argument of “Necessity” was the only argument they ever admitted in favor of slavery; and so far, and 32

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.010

Speech on the Kansas–Nebraska Act so far only as it carried them, did they ever go. They found the institution existing among us, which they could not help; and they cast blame upon the British King for having permitted its introduction.6 Before the constitution, they prohibited its introduction into the north-western Territory – the only country we owned, then free from it. At the framing and adoption of the constitution, they forbore to so much as mention the word “slave” or “slavery” in the whole instrument. In the provision for the recovery of fugitives, the slave is spoken of as a “person held to service or labor.” 7 In that prohibiting the abolition of the African slave trade for twenty years, that trade is spoken of as “The migration or importation of such persons as any of the States now exi sting, shall think proper to admit,” &c.8 These are the only provisions alluding to slavery. Thus, the thing is hid away, in the constitution, just as an afflicted man hides away a wen [cyst] or a cancer, which he dares not cut out at once, lest he bleed to death; with the promise, nevertheless, that the cutting may begin at the end of a given time.9 Less than this our fathers could not do; and more they would not do. Necessity drove them so far, and farther, they would not go. But this is not all. The earliest Congress, under the constitution, took the same view of slavery. They hedged and hemmed it in to the narrowest limits of necessity. In 1794, they prohibited an out-going slave-trade – that is, the taking of slaves from the United States to sell. In 1798, they prohibited the bringing of slaves from Africa, into the Mississippi Territory – this territory then comprising what are now the States of Mississippi and Alabama. This was ten years before they had the authority to do the same thing as to the States existing at the adoption of the constitution. In 1800 they prohibited American citizens from trading in slaves between foreign countries – as, for instance, from Africa to Brazil. In 1803 they passed a law in aid of one or two State laws, in restraint of the internal slave trade. In 1807, in apparent hot haste, they passed the law, nearly a year in advance, to take effect the first day of 1808 – the very first day the

6

7 9

In his original draft of the Declaration of Independence Thomas Jefferson blamed the British king for introducing slavery into the American colonies. Congress removed that clause from the final document. US Constitution, Article IV, section 2. 8 US Constitution, Article I, section 9. That is, 1808.

33

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.010

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches constitution would permit – prohibiting the African slave trade by heavy pecuniary and corporal penalties. In 1820, finding these provisions ineffectual, they declared the trade piracy, and annexed to it, the extreme penalty of death. While all this was passing in the general government, five or six of the original slave States had adopted systems of gradual emancipation; and by which the institution was rapidly becoming extinct within these limits. Thus we see, the plain unmistakable spirit of that age, towards slavery, was hostility to the principle, and toleration, only by necessity. But now it is to be transformed into a “sacred right.” Nebraska brings it forth, places it on the high road to extension and perpetuity; and, with a pat on its back, says to it, “Go, and God speed you.” Henceforth it is to be the chief jewel of the nation – the very figure-head of the ship of State. Little by little, but steadily as man’s march to the grave, we have been giving up the old for the new faith. Near eighty years ago we began by declaring that all men are created equal; but now from that beginning we have run down to the other declaration, that for some men to enslave others is a “sacred right of self-government.” These principles can not stand together. They are as opposite as God and mammon; and who ever holds to the one, must despise the other. When Pettit,10 in connection with his support of the Nebraska bill, called the Declaration of Independence “a self-evident lie” he only did what consistency and candor require all other Nebraska men to do. Of the forty-odd Nebraska Senators who sat present and heard him, no one rebuked him. Nor am I apprized that any Nebraska newspaper, or any Nebraska orator, in the whole nation, has ever yet rebuked him. If this had been said among Marion’s men, Southerners though they were, what would have become of the man who said it? If this had been said to the men who captured André,11 the man who said it, would probably have been hung sooner than André was. If it had been said in old Independence Hall, seventy-eight years ago, the very door-keeper would have throttled the man, and thrust him into the street. Let no one be deceived. The spirit of seventy-six and the spirit of Nebraska, are utter antagonisms; and the former is being rapidly displaced by the latter. 10

11

John Pettit was a Democratic Representative from Indiana and subsequently a Senator. Francis Marion (1732–95) led a band of guerilla fighters in South Carolina during the American Revolution. Major John André was a British spy hanged by the American revolutionaries in 1780.

34

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.010

Speech on the Kansas–Nebraska Act Fellow countrymen – Americans south, as well as north, shall we make no effort to arrest this? Already the liberal party throughout the world, express the apprehension “that the one retrograde institution in America, is undermining the principles of progress, and fatally violating the noblest political system the world ever saw.” This is not the taunt of enemies, but the warning of friends. Is it quite safe to disregard it – to despise it? Is there no danger to liberty itself, in discarding the earliest practice, and first precept of our ancient faith? In our greedy chase to make profit of the negro, let us beware, lest we “cancel and tear to pieces” even the white man’s charter of freedom. Our republican robe is soiled, and trailed in the dust. Let us repurify it. Let us turn and wash it white, in the spirit, if not the blood, of the Revolution. Let us turn slavery from its claims of “moral right,” back upon its existing legal rights, and its arguments of “necessity.” Let us return it to the position our fathers gave it; and there let it rest in peace. Let us re-adopt the Declaration of Independence, and with it, the practices, and policy, which harmonize with it. Let North and South – let all Americans – let all lovers of liberty everywhere – join in the great and good work. If we do this, we shall not only have saved the Union; but we shall have so saved it, as to make, and to keep it, forever worthy of the saving. We shall have so saved it, that the succeeding millions of free happy people, the world over, shall rise up, and call us blessed, to the latest generations . . .

35

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.010

5

To Joshua F. Speed

Joshua F. Speed was a Springfield storekeeper and Lincoln’s landlord and friend. Hailing originally from the border state of Kentucky, Speed was somewhat sympathetic to the spread of slavery and to Douglas’s doctrine of Popular Sovereignty. Here Lincoln lightly but firmly criticizes his friend’s views on these and related matters. Springfield, August 24, 1855 Dear Speed: You know what a poor correspondent I am. Ever since I received your very agreeable letter of the 22nd of May I have been intending to write you in answer to it. You suggest that in political action now, you and I would differ. I suppose we would; not quite as much, however, as you may think. You know I dislike slavery; and you fully admit the abstract wrong of it. So far there is no cause of difference. But you say that sooner than yield your legal right to the slave – especially at the bidding of those who are not themselves interested, you would see the Union dissolved. I am not aware that any one is bidding you to yield that right; very certainly I am not. I leave that matter entirely to yourself. I also acknowledge your rights and my obligations, under the constitution, in regard to your slaves. I confess I hate to see the poor creatures hunted down, and caught, and carried back to their stripes, and unrewarded toils; but I bite my lip and keep quiet. In 1841 you and I had together a tedious low-water trip, on a Steam Boat from Louisville to St. Louis. You may remember, as I well do, that from Louisville to the mouth of the Ohio there were, on board, ten or a dozen slaves, shackled together with irons. That sight was a continual 36

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.011

Letter to Joshua F. Speed torment to me; and I see something like it every time I touch the Ohio, or any other slave-border. It is hardly fair for you to assume, that I have no interest in a thing which has, and continually exercises, the power of making me miserable. You ought rather to appreciate how much the great body of the Northern people do crucify their feelings, in order to maintain their loyalty to the constitution and the Union. I do oppose the extension of slavery, because my judgment and feelings so prompt me; and I am under no obligation to the contrary. If for this you and I must differ, differ we must. You say if you were President, you would send an army and hang the leaders of the Missouri outrages upon the Kansas elections; still, if Kansas fairly votes herself a slave state, she must be admitted, or the Union must be dissolved. But how if she votes herself a slave state unfairly – that is, by the very means for which you say you would hang men? Must she still be admitted, or the Union be dissolved? That will be the phase of the question when it first becomes a practical one. In your assumption that there may be a fair decision of the slavery question in Kansas, I plainly see you and I would differ about the Nebraska-law.1 I look upon that enactment not as a law, but as violence from the beginning. It was conceived in violence, passed in violence, is maintained in violence, and is being executed in violence. I say it was conceived in violence, because the destruction of the Missouri Compromise, 2 under the circumstances, was nothing less than violence. It was passed in violence, because it could not have passed at all but for the votes of many members, in violent disregard of the known will of their constituents. It is maintained in violence because the elections since, clearly demand its repeal, and this demand is openly disregarded. You say men ought to be hung for the way they are executing that law; and I say the way it is being executed is quite as good as any of its antecedents. It is being executed in the precise way which was intended from the first; else why does no Nebraska man express astonishment or condemnation? Poor Reeder3 is the only public man who has been silly enough to believe that any thing like fairness was ever intended; and he has been bravely undeceived. 1

2

3

The Kansas–Nebraska Act of 1854, which voided the Missouri Compromise of 1820 and allowed the spread of slavery into the western territories. The Missouri Compromise (1820) was reached between pro- and anti-slavery factions in the US Congress. It forbade slavery in the territory annexed by the Louisiana Purchase (1803) north of parallel 36° 300 . Andrew H. Reeder was the first governor of the Kansas Territory. His support of free-soil (i.e., anti-slavery) settlers led to his removal from office by President Pierce.

37

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.011

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches That Kansas will form a Slave constitution, and, with it, will ask to be admitted into the Union, I take to be an already settled question; and so settled by the very means you so pointedly condemn. By every principle of law, ever held by any court, North or South, every negro taken to Kansas is free; yet in utter disregard of this – in the spirit of violence merely – that beautiful Legislature gravely passes a law to hang men who shall venture to inform a negro of his legal rights. This is the substance, and real object of the law. If, like Haman, 4 they should hang upon the gallows of their own building, I shall not be among the mourners for their fate. In my humble sphere, I shall advocate the restoration of the Missouri Compromise, so long as Kansas remains a territory; and when, by all these foul means, it seeks to come into the Union as a Slave-state, I shall oppose it. I am very loth, in any case, to withhold my assent to the enjoyment of property acquired, or located, in good faith; but I do not admit that good faith, in taking a negro to Kansas, to be held in slavery, is a possibility with any man. Any man who has sense enough to be the controller of his own property, has too much sense to misunderstand the outrageous character of this whole Nebraska business. But I digress. In my opposition to the admission of Kansas I shall have some company; but we may be beaten. If we are, I shall not, on that account, attempt to dissolve the Union. On the contrary, if we succeed, there will be enough of us to take care of the Union. I think it probable, however, we shall be beaten. Standing as a unit among yourselves, you can, directly, and indirectly, bribe enough of our men to carry the day – as you could on an open proposition to establish monarchy. Get hold of some man in the North, whose position and ability is such, that he can make the support of your measure – whatever it may be – a democratic party necessity, and the thing is done. Apropos of this, let me tell you an anecdote. Douglas introduced the Nebraska bill in January. In February afterwards, there was a call session of the Illinois Legislature. Of the one hundred members composing the two branches of that body, about seventy were democrats. These latter held a caucus, in which the Nebraska bill was talked of, if not formally discussed. It was thereby discovered that just three, and no more, were in favor of the measure.

4

Haman was a Persian nobleman who plotted to kill all the Jews in ancient Persia. After Queen Esther, herself a Jew, foiled the plot Haman was hanged on his own gallows (Esther 7: 6–10).

38

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.011

Letter to Joshua F. Speed In a day or two Douglas’ orders came on to have resolutions passed approving the bill; and they were passed by large majorities!!! The truth of this is vouched for by a bolting democratic member. The masses too, democratic as well as whig, were even, nearer unanimous against it; but as soon as the party necessity of supporting it, became apparent, the way the democracy began to see the wisdom and justice of it, was perfectly astonishing. You say if Kansas fairly votes herself a free state, as a christian you will rather rejoice at it. All decent slave-holders talk that way; and I do not doubt their candor. But they never vote that way. Although in a private letter, or conversation, you will express your preference that Kansas shall be free, you would vote for no man for Congress who would say the same thing publicly. No such man could be elected from any district in any slave-state. You think Stringfellow & Co ought to be hung;5 and yet, at the next presidential election you will vote for the exact type and representative of Stringfellow. The slave-breeders and slave-traders are a small, odious and detested class, among you; and yet in politics, they dictate the course of all of you, and are as completely your masters, as you are the masters of your own negroes. You enquire where I now stand. That is a disputed point. I think I am a whig; but others say there are no whigs, and that I am an abolitionist. When I was at Washington I voted for the Wilmot Proviso as good as forty times,6 and I never heard of any one attempting to unwhig me for that. I now do no more than oppose the extension of slavery. I am not a Know-Nothing.7 That is certain. How could I be? How can any one who abhors the oppression of negroes, be in favor of degrading classes of white people? Our progress in degeneracy appears to me to be pretty rapid. As a nation, we began by declaring that “all men are created equal.” We now practically read it “all men are created equal, except negroes.” When the Know-Nothings get control, it will read “all men are created equal, except negroes, and foreigners, and catholics.” When it comes to this I should prefer emigrating to some country where they make

5 6

7

Benjamin F. Stringfellow led a violent pro-slavery militia in the Kansas Territory. The Wilmot Proviso, first proposed in 1846 by “free-soil” Congressman David Wilmot of Pennsylvania, would outlaw slavery in all territory taken from Mexico after the Mexican-American War. The American Party, popularly known as the Know-Nothings, was an antiimmigrant, anti-Catholic, nativist party in the 1840s and 1850s.

39

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.011

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches no pretence of loving liberty – to Russia, for instance, where despotism can be taken pure, and without the base alloy of hypocrisy. Mary8 will probably pass a day or two in Louisville in October. My kindest regards to Mrs. Speed. On the leading subject of this letter, I have more of her sympathy than I have of yours. And yet let me say I am Your friend forever

8

AL’s wife, Mary Todd Lincoln.

40

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.011

6

Speech on the Dred Scott Decision

In 1857 the US Supreme Court, in the case of Scott v. Sandford, declared that no person of African ancestry is or can ever be a citizen of the United States. The case was brought by Dred Scott, a slave from Missouri who had spent time with his master in the free state of Illinois and the free territory of Minnesota. Scott argued that, since under the terms of the Missouri Compromise both were free regions, he was thus no longer a slave but a free man. The Court ruled that Scott lacked “standing” – i.e., the ability to bring this case – although, contradictorily, the Court accepted it anyway and rendered a decision. The Court also implicitly upheld the constitutionality of the Kansas–Nebraska Act by declaring that the Missouri Compromise had been unconstitutional, thus effectively opening all the western territories to slavery. Incensed, Lincoln once again mounted the rostrum to denounce the injustice of this decision. f e l l o w c i t i z e n s : – I am here to-night, partly by the invitation of some of you, and partly by my own inclination. Two weeks ago Judge Douglas1 spoke here on the several subjects of Kansas, the Dred Scott decision, and Utah. I listened to the speech at the time, and have read the report of it since. It was intended to controvert opinions which I think just, and to assail (politically, not personally) those men who, in common with me, entertain those opinions. For this reason I wished then, and still wish, to make some answer to it, which I now take the opportunity of doing. 1

AL almost always refers to Senator Stephen A. Douglas as “Judge Douglas” or “the Judge” because he had previously served as Associate Justice of the Illinois Supreme Court.

41

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:29, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.012

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches I begin with Utah. If it prove to be true, as is probable, that the people of Utah are in open rebellion to the United States, 2 then Judge Douglas is in favor of repealing their territorial organization, and attaching them to the adjoining States for judicial purposes. I say, too, if they are in rebellion, they ought to be somehow coerced to obedience; and I am not now prepared to admit or deny that the Judge’s mode of coercing them is not as good as any. The Republicans can fall in with it without taking back anything they have ever said. To be sure, it would be a considerable backing down by Judge Douglas from his much vaunted doctrine of self-government for the territories; but this is only additional proof of what was very plain from the beginning, that that doctrine was a mere deceitful pretense for the benefit of slavery. Those who could not see that much in the Nebraska act itself, which forced Governors, and Secretaries, and Judges on the people of the territories, without their choice or consent, could not be made to see, though one should rise from the dead to testify. But in all this, it is very plain the Judge evades the only question the Republicans have ever pressed upon the Democracy in regard to Utah. That question the Judge well knows to be this: “If the people of Utah shall peacefully form a State Constitution tolerating polygamy, will the Democracy admit them into the Union?” There is nothing in the United States Constitution or law against polygamy; and why is it not a part of the Judge’s “sacred right of self-government” for that people to have it, or rather to keep it, if they choose?3 These questions, so far as I know, the Judge never answers. It might involve the Democracy to answer them either way, and they go unanswered. As to Kansas. 4 The substance of the Judge’s speech on Kansas is an effort to put the free State men in the wrong for not voting at the election of delegates to the Constitutional Convention. He says: “There is every reason to hope and believe that the law will be fairly interpreted and impartially executed, so as to insure to every bona fide inhabitant the free and quiet exercise of the elective franchise.” 2

3

4

Many Mormon settlers in the Utah Territory practiced polygamy and wanted that practice protected by its state constitution when it entered the Union. AL refers to Douglas’s doctrine of “popular sovereignty,” which held that the white male residents of a territory should decide democratically whether their territory would enter the Union as a slave or a free state. Violent conflict was then raging in “bleeding Kansas” over whether it should enter the Union as a free or a slave state.

42

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:29, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.012

Speech on the Dred Scott Decision It appears extraordinary that Judge Douglas should make such a statement. He knows that, by the law, no one can vote who has not been registered; and he knows that the free State men place their refusal to vote on the ground that but few of them have been registered. It is possible this is not true, but Judge Douglas knows it is asserted to be true in letters, newspapers and public speeches, and borne by every mail, and blown by every breeze to the eyes and ears of the world. He knows it is boldly declared that the people of many whole counties, and many whole neighborhoods in others, are left unregistered; yet, he does not venture to contradict the declaration, nor to point out how they can vote without being registered; but he just slips along, not seeming to know there is any such question of fact, and complacently declares: “There is every reason to hope and believe that the law will be fairly and impartially executed, so as to insure to every bona fide inhabitant the free and quiet exercise of the elective franchise.” I readily agree that if all had a chance to vote, they ought to have voted. If, on the contrary, as they allege, and Judge Douglas ventures not to particularly contradict, few only of the free State men had a chance to vote, they were perfectly right in staying from the polls in a body. By the way since the Judge spoke, the Kansas election has come off. The Judge expressed his confidence that all the Democrats in Kansas would do their duty – including “free state Democrats” of course. The returns received here as yet are very incomplete; but so far as they go, they indicate that only about one-sixth of the registered voters have really voted; and this too, when not more, perhaps, than one-half of the rightful voters have been registered, thus showing the thing to have been altogether the most exquisite farce ever enacted. I am watching with considerable interest, to ascertain what figure the “free state Democrats” cut in the concern. Of course they voted – all democrats do their duty – and of course they did not vote for slave-state candidates. We soon shall know how many delegates they elected, how many candidates they had, pledged for a free state; and how many votes were cast for them. Allow me to barely whisper my suspicion that there were no such things in Kansas as “free state Democrats” – that they were altogether mythical, good only to figure in newspapers and speeches in the free states. If there should prove to be one real living free state Democrat in Kansas, I suggest that it might be well to catch him, and stuff and preserve his skin, as an interesting specimen of that soon to be extinct variety of the genus, Democrat. 43

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:29, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.012

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches And now as to the Dred Scott decision.5 That decision declares two propositions – first, that a negro cannot sue in the US Courts; and secondly, that Congress cannot prohibit slavery in the Territories. It was made by a divided court – dividing differently on the different points. Judge Douglas does not discuss the merits of the decision; and, in that respect, I shall follow his example, believing I could no more improve on McLean and Curtis, than he could on Taney.6 He denounces all who question the correctness of that decision, as offering violent resistance to it. But who resists it? Who has, in spite of the decision, declared Dred Scott free, and resisted the authority of his master over him? Judicial decisions have two uses – first, to absolutely determine the case decided, and secondly, to indicate to the public how other similar cases will be decided when they arise. For the latter use, they are called “precedents” and “authorities.” We believe, as much as Judge Douglas (perhaps more), in obedience to, and respect for the judicial department of government. We think its decisions on Constitutional questions, when fully settled, should control, not only the particular cases decided, but the general policy of the country, subject to be disturbed only by amendments of the Constitution as provided in that instrument itself. More than this would be revolution. But we think the Dred Scott decision is erroneous. We know the court that made it has often over-ruled its own decisions, and we shall do what we can to have it to over-rule this. We offer no resistance to it. Judicial decisions are of greater or less authority as precedents, according to circumstances. That this should be so, accords both with common sense, and the customary understanding of the legal profession. If this important decision had been made by the unanimous concurrence of the judges, and without any apparent partisan bias, and in accordance with legal public expectation, and with the steady practice of the departments throughout our history, and had been in no part based on assumed historical facts which are not really true; or, if wanting in some of these, it had been before the court more than once, and had there been 5

6

AL refers to the Supreme Court case of Scott v. Sandford (1957). Dred Scott, a slave, argued that since his master had taken him to Illinois and other free states he was a free man. The Court decided against Scott. In the Dred Scott decision (see n. 5 above) US Supreme Court justices John McLean and Benjamin R. Curtis dissented from the majority opinion written by Chief Justice Roger B. Taney.

44

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:29, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.012

Speech on the Dred Scott Decision affirmed and re-affirmed through a course of years, it then might be, perhaps would be, factious, nay, even revolutionary, to not acquiesce in it as a precedent. But when, as it is true we find it wanting in all these claims to the public confidence, it is not resistance, it is not factious, it is not even disrespectful, to treat it as not having yet quite established a settled doctrine for the country – but Judge Douglas considers this view awful. Hear him: The courts are the tribunals prescribed by the Constitution and created by the authority of the people to determine, expound and enforce the law. Hence, whoever resists the final decision of the highest judicial tribunal, aims a deadly blow to our whole republican system of government – a blow, which if successful would place all our rights and liberties at the mercy of passion, anarchy and violence. I repeat, therefore, that if resistance to the decisions of the Supreme Court of the United States, in a matter like the points decided in the Dred Scott case, clearly within their jurisdiction as defined by the Constitution, shall be forced upon the country as a political issue, it will become a distinct and naked issue between the friends and the enemies of the Constitution – the friends and the enemies of the supremacy of the laws.

Why, this same Supreme Court once decided a national bank to be constitutional; but General Jackson, as President of the United States, disregarded the decision, and vetoed a bill for a re-charter, partly on constitutional ground, declaring that each public functionary must support the Constitution, “as he understands it.” But hear the General’s own words. Here they are, taken from his veto message: It is maintained by the advocates of the bank, that its constitutionality, in all its features, ought to be considered as settled by precedent, and by the decision of the Supreme Court. To this conclusion I cannot assent. Mere precedent is a dangerous source of authority, and should not be regarded as deciding questions of constitutional power, except where the acquiescence of the people and the States can be considered as well settled. So far from this being the case on this subject, an argument against the bank might be based on precedent. One Congress in 1791, decided in favor of a bank; another in 1811, decided against it. One Congress in 1815 decided against a bank; another in 1816 decided in its favor. Prior to the present Congress, therefore the precedents drawn from that source were equal. If we resort to the States, the expressions of legislative, judicial and executive opinions against the bank have been probably to those

45

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:29, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.012

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches in its favor as four to one. There is nothing in precedent, therefore, which if its authority were admitted, ought to weigh in favor of the act before me.

I drop the quotations merely to remark that all there ever was, in the way of precedent up to the Dred Scott decision, on the points therein decided, had been against that decision. But hear General Jackson further – If the opinion of the Supreme Court covered the whole ground of this act, it ought not to control the co-ordinate authorities of this Government. The Congress, the executive and the court, must each for itself be guided by its own opinion of the Constitution. Each public officer, who takes an oath to support the Constitution, swears that he will support it as he understands it, and not as it is understood by others.

Again and again have I heard Judge Douglas denounce that bank decision, and applaud General Jackson for disregarding it. It would be interesting for him to look over his recent speech, and see how exactly his fierce philippics against us for resisting Supreme Court decisions, fall upon his own head. It will call to his mind a long and fierce political war in this country, upon an issue which, in his own language, and, of course, in his own changeless estimation, was “a distinct and naked issue between the friends and the enemies of the Constitution,” and in which war he fought in the ranks of the enemies of the Constitution. I have said, in substance, that the Dred Scott decision was, in part, based on assumed historical facts which were not really true; and I ought not to leave the subject without giving some reasons for saying this; I therefore give an instance or two, which I think fully sustain me. Chief Justice Taney, in delivering the opinion of the majority of the Court, insists at great length that negroes were no part of the people who made, or for whom was made, the Declaration of Independence, or the Constitution of the United States. On the contrary, Judge Curtis, in his dissenting opinion, shows that in five of the then thirteen states, to wit, New Hampshire, Massachusetts, New York, New Jersey, and North Carolina, free negroes were voters, and, in proportion to their numbers, had the same part in making the Constitution that the white people had. He shows this with so much particularity as to leave no doubt of its truth; and, as a sort of conclusion on that point, holds the following language: 46

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:29, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.012

Speech on the Dred Scott Decision The Constitution was ordained and established by the people of the United States, through the action, in each State, of those persons who were qualified by its laws to act thereon in behalf of themselves and all other citizens of the State. In some of the States, as we have seen, colored persons were among those qualified by law to act on the subject. These colored persons were not only included in the body of “the people of the United States,” by whom the Constitution was ordained and established; but in at least five of the States they had the power to act, and, doubtless, did act, by their suffrages, upon the question of its adoption.

Again, Chief Justice Taney says: “It is difficult, at this day to realize the state of public opinion in relation to that unfortunate race, which prevailed in the civilized and enlightened portions of the world at the time of the Declaration of Independence, and when the Constitution of the United States was framed and adopted.” And again, after quoting from the Declaration, he says: “The general words above quoted would seem to include the whole human family, and if they were used in a similar instrument at this day, would be so understood.” In these the Chief Justice does not directly assert, but plainly assumes, as a fact, that the public estimate of the black man is more favorable now than it was in the days of the Revolution. This assumption is a mistake. In some trifling particulars, the condition of that race has been ameliorated; but, as a whole, in this country, the change between then and now is decidedly the other way; and their ultimate destiny has never appeared so hopeless as in the last three or four years. In two of the five States – New Jersey and North Carolina – that then gave the free negro the right of voting, the right has since been taken away; and in a third – New York – it has been greatly abridged; while it has not been extended, so far as I know, to a single additional State, though the number of the States has more than doubled. In those days, as I understand, masters could, at their own pleasure, emancipate their slaves; but since then, such legal restraints have been made upon emancipation, as to amount almost to prohibition. In those days, Legislatures held the unquestioned power to abolish slavery in their respective States; but now it is becoming quite fashionable for State Constitutions to withhold that power from the Legislatures. In those days, by common consent, the spread of the black man’s bondage to new countries was prohibited; but now, Congress decides that it will not continue the prohibition, and the Supreme Court decides that it could not if it would. In those days, our Declaration of Independence was held 47

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:29, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.012

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches sacred by all, and thought to include all; but now, to aid in making the bondage of the negro universal and eternal, it is assailed, and sneered at, and construed, and hawked at, and torn, till, if its framers could rise from their graves, they could not at all recognize it. All the powers of earth seem rapidly combining against him. Mammon is after him; ambition follows, and philosophy follows, and the Theology of the day is fast joining the cry.7 They have him in his prison house; they have searched his person, and left no prying instrument with him. One after another they have closed the heavy iron doors upon him, and now they have him, as it were, bolted in with a lock of a hundred keys, which can never be unlocked without the concurrence of every key; the keys in the hands of a hundred different men, and they scattered to a hundred different and distant places; and they stand musing as to what invention, in all the dominions of mind and matter, can be produced to make the impossibility of his escape more complete than it is. It is grossly incorrect to say or assume, that the public estimate of the negro is more favorable now than it was at the origin of the government. Three years and a half ago, Judge Douglas brought forward his famous Nebraska bill.8 The country was at once in a blaze. He scorned all opposition, and carried it through Congress. Since then he has seen himself superseded in a Presidential nomination, by one indorsing the general doctrine of his measure, but at the same time standing clear of the odium of its untimely agitation, and its gross breach of national faith; and he has seen that successful rival Constitutionally elected, not by the strength of friends, but by the division of adversaries, being in a popular minority of nearly four hundred thousand votes. He has seen his chief aids in his own State, Shields and Richardson, politically speaking, successively tried, convicted, and executed, for an offense not their own, but his. And now he sees his own case, standing next on the docket for trial. There is a natural disgust in the minds of nearly all white people, to the idea of an indiscriminate amalgamation of the white and black races; and Judge Douglas evidently is basing his chief hope, upon the chances of being able to appropriate the benefit of this disgust to himself. If he can, by much drumming and repeating, fasten the odium of that idea upon his adversaries, he thinks he can struggle through the storm. He therefore clings to this hope, as a drowning man to the last plank. He makes an 7 8

See AL’s fragment “On Pro-Slavery Theology,” selection 39. AL refers to the bill that became the Kansas–Nebraska Act. See selection 5.

48

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:29, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.012

Speech on the Dred Scott Decision occasion for lugging it in from the opposition to the Dred Scott decision. He finds the Republicans insisting that the Declaration of Independence includes all men, black as well as white; and forthwith he boldly denies that it includes negroes at all, and proceeds to argue gravely that all who contend it does, do so only because they want to vote, and eat, and sleep, and marry with negroes! He will have it that they cannot be consistent else. Now I protest against that counterfeit logic which concludes that, because I do not want a black woman for a slave I must necessarily want her for a wife. I need not have her for either, I can just leave her alone. In some respects she certainly is not my equal; but in her natural right to eat the bread she earns with her own hands without asking leave of any one else, she is my equal, and the equal of all others. Chief Justice Taney, in his opinion in the Dred Scott case, admits that the language of the Declaration is broad enough to include the whole human family, but he and Judge Douglas argue that the authors of that instrument did not intend to include negroes, by the fact that they did not at once, actually place them on an equality with the whites. Now this grave argument comes to just nothing at all, by the other fact, that they did not at once, or ever afterwards, actually place all white people on an equality with one or another. And this is the staple argument of both the Chief Justice and the Senator, for doing this obvious violence to the plain unmistakable language of the Declaration. I think the authors of that notable instrument intended to include all men, but they did not intend to declare all men equal in all respects. They did not mean to say all were equal in color, size, intellect, moral developments, or social capacity. They defined with tolerable distinctness, in what respects they did consider all men created equal – equal in “certain inalienable rights, among which are life, liberty, and the pursuit of happiness.” This they said, and this meant. They did not mean to assert the obvious untruth, that all were then actually enjoying that equality, nor yet, that they were about to confer it immediately upon them. In fact they had no power to confer such a boon. They meant simply to declare the right, so that the enforcement of it might follow as fast as circumstances should permit. They meant to set up a standard maxim for free society, which should be familiar to all, and revered by all; constantly looked to, constantly labored for, and even though never perfectly attained, constantly approximated, and thereby constantly spreading and deepening its influence, and augmenting the happiness and value of life to all people of all colors everywhere. The assertion that “all men are created equal” 49

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:29, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.012

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches was of no practical use in effecting our separation from Great Britain; and it was placed in the Declaration, not for that, but for future use. Its authors meant it to be, thank God, it is now proving itself, a stumbling block to those who in after times might seek to turn a free people back into the hateful paths of despotism. They knew the proneness of prosperity to breed tyrants, and they meant when such should re-appear in this fair land and commence their vocation they should find left for them at least one hard nut to crack. I have now briefly expressed my view of the meaning and objects of that part of the Declaration of Independence which declares that “all men are created equal.” Now let us hear Judge Douglas’ view of the same subject, as I find it in the printed report of his late speech. Here it is: No man can vindicate the character, motives and conduct of the signers of the Declaration of Independence, except upon the hypothesis that they referred to the white race alone, and not to the African, when they declared all men to have been created equal – that they were speaking of British subjects on this continent being equal to British subjects born and residing in Great Britain – that they were entitled to the same inalienable rights, and among them were enumerated life, liberty and the pursuit of happiness. The Declaration was adopted for the purpose of justifying the colonists in the eyes of the civilized world in withdrawing their allegiance from the British crown, and dissolving their connection with the mother country.

My good friends, read that carefully over some leisure hour, and ponder well upon it – see what a mere wreck – mangled ruin – it makes of our once glorious Declaration. “They were speaking of British subjects on this continent being equal to British subjects born and residing in Great Britain!” Why, according to this, not only negroes but white people outside of Great Britain and America are not spoken of in that instrument. The English, Irish and Scotch, along with white Americans, were included to be sure, but the French, Germans and other white people of the world are all gone to pot along with the Judge’s inferior races. I had thought the Declaration promised something better than the condition of British subjects; but no, it only meant that we should be equal to them in their own oppressed and unequal condition. According to that, it gave no promise that having kicked off the King and Lords of Great Britain, we should not at once be saddled with a King and Lords of our own. 50

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:29, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.012

Speech on the Dred Scott Decision I had thought the Declaration contemplated the progressive improvement in the condition of all men everywhere; but no, it merely “was adopted for the purpose of justifying the colonists in the eyes of the civilized world in withdrawing their allegiance from the British crown, and dissolving their connection with the mother country.” Why, that object having been effected some eighty years ago, the Declaration is of no practical use now – mere rubbish – old wadding left to rot on the battle-field after the victory is won. I understand you are preparing to celebrate the “Fourth,” to-morrow week. What for? The doings of that day had no reference to the present; and quite half of you are not even descendants of those who were referred to at that day. But I suppose you will celebrate; and will even go so far as to read the Declaration. Suppose after you read it once in the old-fashioned way, you read it once more with Judge Douglas’ version. It will then run thus: “We hold these truths to be self-evident: that all British subjects who were on this continent eighty-one years ago, were created equal to all British subjects born and then residing in Great Britain.” And now I appeal to all – to Democrats as well as others – are you really willing that the Declaration shall be thus frittered away? – thus left no more at most, than an interesting memorial of the dead past? thus shorn of its vitality, and practical value; and left without the germ or even the suggestion of the individual rights of man in it? But Judge Douglas is especially horrified at the thought of the mixing blood by the white and black races: agreed for once – a thousand times agreed. There are white men enough to marry all the white women, and black men enough to marry all the black women; and so let them be married. On this point we fully agree with the Judge; and when he shall show that his policy is better adapted to prevent amalgamation than ours we shall drop ours, and adopt his. Let us see. In 1850 there were in the United States, 405,751 mulattos. Very few of these are the offspring of whites and free blacks; nearly all have sprung from black slaves and white masters. A separation of the races is the only perfect preventive of amalgamation but as an immediate separation is impossible the next best thing is to keep them apart where they are not already together. If white and black people never get together in Kansas, they will never mix blood in Kansas. That is at least one self-evident truth. A few free colored persons may get into the free States, in any event; but their number is too insignificant to amount to much in the way of mixing blood. In 1850 there 51

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:29, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.012

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches were in the free states, 56,649 mulattos; but for the most part they were not born there – they came from the slave States, ready made up. In the same year the slave States had 348,874 mulattos all of home production. The proportion of free mulattos to free blacks – the only colored classes in the free states – is much greater in the slave than in the free states. It is worthy of note, too, that among the free states those which make the colored man the nearest to equal the white, have, proportionably, the fewest mulattos the least of amalgamation. In New Hampshire, the State which goes farthest towards equality between the races, there are just 184 mulattos while there are in Virginia – how many do you think? 79,775, being 23,126 more than in all the free States together. These statistics show that slavery is the greatest source of amalgamation; and next to it, not the elevation, but the degeneration of the free blacks. Yet Judge Douglas dreads the slightest restraints on the spread of slavery, and the slightest human recognition of the negro, as tending horribly to amalgamation. This very Dred Scott case affords a strong test as to which party most favors amalgamation, the Republicans or the dear Union-saving Democracy. Dred Scott, his wife, and two daughters were all involved in the suit. We desired the court to have held that they were citizens so far at least as to entitle them to a hearing as to whether they were free or not; and then, also, that they were in fact and in law really free. Could we have had our way, the chances of these black girls ever mixing their blood with that of white people would have been diminished at least to the extent that it could not have been without their consent. But Judge Douglas is delighted to have them decided to be slaves, and not human enough to have a hearing, even if they were free, and thus left subject to the forced concubinage of their masters, and liable to become the mothers of mulattos in spite of themselves – the very state of case that produces nine-tenths of all the mulattos – all the mixing of blood in the nation. Of course, I state this case as an illustration only, not meaning to say or intimate that the master of Dred Scott and his family, or any more than a per centage of masters generally, are inclined to exercise this particular power which they hold over their female slaves. I have said that the separation of the races is the only perfect preventive of amalgamation. I have no right to say all the members of the Republican party are in favor of this, nor to say that as a party they are in favor of it. There is nothing in their platform directly on the subject. But I can say a very large proportion of its members are for it, and that the chief plank in 52

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:29, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.012

Speech on the Dred Scott Decision their platform – opposition to the spread of slavery – is most favorable to that separation. Such separation, if ever effected at all, must be effected by colonization; and no political party, as such, is now doing anything directly for colonization. Party operations at present only favor or retard colonization incidentally. The enterprise is a difficult one; but “when there is a will there is a way”; and what colonization needs most is a hearty will. Will springs from the two elements of moral sense and self-interest. Let us be brought to believe it is morally right, and, at the same time, favorable to, or, at least, not against, our interest, to transfer the African to his native clime, and we shall find a way to do it, however great the task may be. The children of Israel, to such numbers as to include four hundred thousand fighting men, went out of Egyptian bondage in a body. How differently the respective courses of the Democratic and Republican parties incidentally bear on the question of forming a will – a public sentiment – for colonization, is easy to see. The Republicans inculcate, with whatever of ability they can, that the negro is a man; that his bondage is cruelly wrong, and that the field of his oppression ought not to be enlarged. The Democrats deny his manhood; deny, or dwarf to insignificance, the wrong of his bondage; so far as possible, crush all sympathy for him, and cultivate and excite hatred and disgust against him; compliment themselves as Union-savers for doing so; and call the indefinite outspreading of his bondage “a sacred right of selfgovernment.” The plainest print cannot be read through a gold eagle [coin]; and it will be ever hard to find many men who will send a slave to Liberia, and pay his passage while they can send him to a new country, Kansas for instance, and sell him for fifteen hundred dollars, and the rise. June 26, 1857

53

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:29, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.012

7

“A House Divided” Speech

In accepting the Republican nomination for the US Senate in 1858 Lincoln presented a particularly eloquent version of the Republican argument against the extension of slavery. Once again he makes the case against the argument advanced by his opponent, Senator Stephen A. Douglas, that the people (i.e., enfranchised white males) should decide democratically whether their state will enter the Union as a free or a slave state. In practice, Douglas’s doctrine of Popular Sovereignty would perpetuate the primary division within the “house” that is the American republic, and “a house divided against itself cannot stand.” Mr. President and Gentlemen of the Convention, If we could first know where we are, and whither we are tending, we could then better judge what to do, and how to do it. We are now far into the fifth year, since a policy was initiated, with the avowed object, and confident promise, of putting an end to slavery agitation. Under the operation of that policy, that agitation has not only, not ceased, but has constantly augmented. In my opinion, it will not cease, until a crisis shall have been reached, and passed. A house divided against itself cannot stand.1

I believe this government cannot endure, permanently half slave and half free. 1

Matthew 12: 25; Mark 3: 25.

54

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.013

“A House Divided” Speech I do not expect the Union to be dissolved – I do not expect the house to fall – but I do expect it will cease to be divided. It will become all one thing, or all the other. Either the opponents of slavery will arrest the further spread of it, and place it where the public mind shall rest in the belief that it is in course of ultimate extinction; or its advocates will push it forward, till it shall become alike lawful in all the States, old as well as new – North as well as South. Have we no tendency to the latter condition? Let any one who doubts, carefully contemplate that now almost complete legal combination – piece of machinery so to speak – compounded of the Nebraska doctrine, 2 and the Dred Scott decision.3 Let him consider not only what work the machinery is adapted to do, and how well adapted; but also, let him study the history of its construction, and trace, if he can, or rather fail, if he can, to trace the evidences of design, and concert of action, among its chief bosses, from the beginning. The new year of 1854 found slavery excluded from more than half the States by State Constitutions, and from most of the national territory by Congressional prohibition. Four days later, commenced the struggle, which ended in repealing that Congressional prohibition. 4 This opened all the national territory to slavery; and was the first point gained. But, so far, Congress only, had acted; and an indorsement by the people, real or apparent, was indispensable, to save the point already gained, and give chance for more. This necessity had not been overlooked; but had been provided for, as well as might be, in the notable argument of “squatter sovereignty,” 5 otherwise called “sacred right of self government,” which latter phrase, though expressive of the only rightful basis of any government, was so perverted in this attempted use of it as to amount to just this: That if any one man, choose to enslave another, no third man shall be allowed to object.

2

3 5

AL refers to Senator Douglas’s doctrine of “popular sovereignty,” enshrined in the Kansas–Nebraska Act of 1854. See selection 5, n. 1 and selection 6, n. 3. 4 See selection 6, n. 5. See selection 5, n. 2. AL’s derogatory term for Senator Douglas’s doctrine of “popular sovereignty.” See selection 6, n. 3.

55

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.013

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches That argument was incorporated into the Nebraska bill itself, in the language which follows: It being the true intent and meaning of this act not to legislate slavery into any Territory or state, nor to exclude it therefrom; but to leave the people thereof perfectly free to form and regulate their domestic institutions in their own way, subject only to the Constitution of the United States.

Then opened the roar of loose declamation in favor of “Squatter Sovereignty,” and “Sacred right of self-government.” “But,” said opposition members, “let us be more specific – let us amend the bill so as to expressly declare that the people of the territory may exclude slavery.” “Not we,” said the friends of the measure; and down they voted the amendment. While the Nebraska bill was passing through Congress, a law case, involving the question of a negro’s freedom, by reason of his owner having voluntarily taken him first into a free state and then a territory covered by the Congressional prohibition, and held him as a slave, for a long time in each, was passing through the US Circuit Court for the District of Missouri; and both Nebraska bill and law suit were brought to a decision in the same month of May, 1854. The negro’s name was “Dred Scott,” which name now designates the decision finally made in the case. Before the then next Presidential election, the law case came to, and was argued in the Supreme Court of the United States; but the decision of it was deferred until after the election. Still, before the election, Senator Trumbull, on the floor of the Senate, requests the leading advocate of the Nebraska bill to state his opinion whether the people of a territory can constitutionally exclude slavery from their limits; and the latter answers, “That is a question for the Supreme Court.” The election came. Mr. Buchanan was elected, and the indorsement, such as it was, secured. That was the second point gained. The indorsement, however, fell short of a clear popular majority by nearly four hundred thousand votes, and so, perhaps, was not overwhelmingly reliable and satisfactory. The outgoing President, in his last annual message, as impressively as possible echoed back upon the people the weight and authority of the indorsement. The Supreme Court met again; did not announce their decision, but ordered a re-argument. 56

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.013

“A House Divided” Speech The Presidential inauguration came, and still no decision of the court; but the incoming President, in his inaugural address, fervently exhorted the people to abide by the forthcoming decision, whatever it might be. Then, in a few days, came the decision. The reputed author of the Nebraska bill finds an early occasion to make a speech at this capitol indorsing the Dred Scott decision,6 and vehemently denouncing all opposition to it. The new President, too, seizes the early occasion of the Silliman letter7 to indorse and strongly construe that decision, and to express his astonishment that any different view had ever been entertained. At length a squabble springs up between the President and the author of the Nebraska bill, on the mere question of fact, whether the Lecompton constitution8 was or was not, in any just sense, made by the people of Kansas; and in that squabble the latter declares that all he wants is a fair vote for the people, and that he cares not whether slavery be voted down or voted up. I do not understand his declaration that he cares not whether slavery be voted down or voted up, to be intended by him other than as an apt definition of the policy he would impress upon the public mind – the principle for which he declares he has suffered much, and is ready to suffer to the end. And well may he cling to that principle. If he has any parental feeling, well may he cling to it. That principle is the only shred left of his original Nebraska doctrine. Under the Dred Scott decision, “squatter sovereignty” squatted out of existence, tumbled down like temporary scaffolding – like the mould at the foundry served through one blast and fell back into loose sand – helped to carry an election, and then was kicked to the winds. His late joint struggle with the Republicans, against the Lecompton Constitution, involves nothing of the original Nebraska doctrine. That struggle was made on a point, the right of a people to make their own constitution, upon which he and the Republicans have never differed. 6 7

8

See selection 5, n. 1 and selection 6, n. 8. On September 3, 1857 Benjamin Silliman (1779–1864) and 42 prominent anti-slavery citizens of Connecticut published an open letter to President James Buchanan complaining that the governor of the Kansas Territory was taking the side of pro-slavery forces, and asking the President to intervene. Denying the charge, the President replied in an open letter of his own, “The President’s Letter to Professor Silliman,” New York Daily Times, September 4, 1857, p. 4. The Lecompton Constitution was drafted by the pro-slavery Kansas territorial legislature in 1857 to ensure that Kansas would enter the Union as a slave state.

57

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.013

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches The several points of the Dred Scott decision, in connection with Senator Douglas’s “care not” policy, constitute the piece of machinery, in its present state of advancement. This was the third point gained. The working points of that machinery are: First, that no negro slave, imported as such from Africa, and no descendant of such slave, can ever be a citizen of any State, in the sense of that term as used in the Constitution of the United States. This point is made in order to deprive the negro, in every possible event, of the benefit of this provision of the United States Constitution, which declares that – The citizens of each State shall be entitled to all privileges and immunities of citizens in the several States.

Secondly, that “subject to the Constitution of the United States,” neither Congress nor a Territorial Legislature can exclude slavery from any United States territory. This point is made in order that individual men may fill up the territories with slaves, without danger of losing them as property, and thus to enhance the chances of permanency to the institution through all the future. Thirdly, that whether the holding a negro in actual slavery in a free State, makes him free, as against the holder, the United States courts will not decide, but will leave to be decided by the courts of any slave State the negro may be forced into by the master. This point is made, not to be pressed immediately; but, if acquiesced in for a while, and apparently indorsed by the people at an election, then to sustain the logical conclusion that what Dred Scott’s master might lawfully do with Dred Scott, in the free State of Illinois, every other master may lawfully do with any other one, or one thousand slaves, in Illinois, or in any other free State. Auxiliary to all this, and working hand in hand with it, the Nebraska doctrine, or what is left of it, is to educate and mould public opinion, at least Northern public opinion, to not care whether slavery is voted down or voted up. This shows exactly where we now are; and partially also, whither we are tending. It will throw additional light on the latter, to go back, and run the mind over the string of historical facts already stated. Several things will now appear less dark and mysterious than they did when they were transpiring. The people were to be left “perfectly free” “subject only to the 58

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.013

“A House Divided” Speech Constitution.” What the Constitution had to do with it, outsiders could not then see. Plainly enough now, it was an exactly fitted niche, for the Dred Scott decision to afterwards come in, and declare the perfect freedom of the people, to be just no freedom at all. Why was the amendment, expressly declaring the right of the people to exclude slavery, voted down? Plainly enough now, the adoption of it, would have spoiled the niche for the Dred Scott decision. Why was the court decision held up? Why, even a Senator’s individual opinion withheld, till after the Presidential election? Plainly enough now, the speaking out then would have damaged the “perfectly free” argument upon which the election was to be carried. Why the outgoing President’s felicitation on the indorsement? Why the delay of a reargument? Why the incoming President’s advance exhortation in favor of the decision? These things look like the cautious patting and petting a spirited horse, preparatory to mounting him, when it is dreaded that he may give the rider a fall. And why the hasty after-indorsements of the decision by the President and others? We can not absolutely know that all these exact adaptations are the result of preconcert. But when we see a lot of framed timbers, different portions of which we know have been gotten out at different times and places and by different workmen – Stephen, Franklin, Roger and James,9 for instance – and when we see these timbers joined together, and see they exactly make the frame of a house or a mill, all the tenons and mortices exactly fitting, and all the lengths and proportions of the different pieces exactly adapted to their respective places, and not a piece too many or too few – not omitting even scaffolding – or, if a single piece be lacking, we can see the place in the frame exactly fitted and prepared to yet bring such piece in – in such a case, we find it impossible to not believe that Stephen and Franklin and Roger and James all understood one another from the beginning, and all worked upon a common plan or draft drawn up before the first lick was struck. It should not be overlooked that, by the Nebraska bill, the people of a State as well as Territory, were to be left “perfectly free” “subject only to the Constitution.” 9

Senator Stephen A. Douglas, President Franklin Pierce, Chief Justice Roger B. Taney, and President James Buchanan.

59

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.013

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches Why mention a state? They were legislating for territories, and not for or about states. Certainly the people of a state are and ought to be subject to the Constitution of the United States; but why is mention of this lugged into this merely territorial law? Why are the people of a territory and the people of a state therein lumped together, and their relation to the Constitution therein treated as being precisely the same? While the opinion of the Court, by Chief Justice Taney, in the Dred Scott case, and the separate opinions of all the concurring Judges, expressly declare that the Constitution of the United States neither permits Congress nor a Territorial legislature to exclude slavery from any United States territory, they all omit to declare whether or not the same Constitution permits a state, or the people of a state, to exclude it. Possibly, this was a mere omission; but who can be quite sure, if McLean or Curtis10 had sought to get into the opinion a declaration of unlimited power in the people of a state to exclude slavery from their limits, just as Chase and Macy sought to get such declaration, in behalf of the people of a territory, into the Nebraska bill – I ask, who can be quite sure that it would not have been voted down, in the one case, as it had been in the other. The nearest approach to the point of declaring the power of a state over slavery, is made by Judge Nelson.11 He approaches it more than once, using the precise idea, and almost the language too, of the Nebraska act. On one occasion his exact language is, “except in cases where the power is restrained by the Constitution of the United States, the law of the state is supreme over the subject of slavery within its jurisdiction.” In what cases the power of the states is so restrained by the US Constitution, is left an open question, precisely as the same question, as to the restraint on the power of the Territories was left open in the Nebraska act. Put that and that together, and we have another nice little niche, which we may, ere long, see filled with another Supreme Court decision, declaring that the Constitution of the United States does not permit a state to exclude slavery from its limits. And this may especially be expected if the doctrine of “care not whether slavery be voted down or voted up,” shall gain upon the public

10 11

See selection 6, n. 6. Associate Justice Samuel Nelson drafted a decision against Dred Scott that was less radical and sweeping than that written by Chief Justice Taney.

60

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.013

“A House Divided” Speech mind sufficiently to give promise that such a decision can be maintained when made. Such a decision is all that slavery now lacks of being alike lawful in all the states. Welcome or unwelcome, such decision is probably coming, and will soon be upon us, unless the power of the present political dynasty shall be met and overthrown. We shall lie down pleasantly dreaming that the people of Missouri are on the verge of making their state free; and we shall awake to the reality, instead, that the Supreme Court has made Illinois a slave state. To meet and overthrow the power of that dynasty, is the work now before all those who would prevent that consummation. That is what we have to do. But how can we best do it? There are those who denounce us openly to their own friends, and yet whisper us softly, that Senator Douglas is the aptest instrument there is, with which to effect that object. They do not tell us, nor has he told us, that he wishes any such object to be effected. They wish us to infer all, from the facts, that he now has a little quarrel with the present head of the dynasty; and that he has regularly voted with us, on a single point, upon which, he and we, have never differed. They remind us that he is a very great man, and that the largest of us are very small ones. Let this be granted. But “a living dog is better than a dead lion.” 12 Judge Douglas, if not a dead lion for this work, is at least a caged and toothless one. How can he oppose the advances of slavery? He don’t care anything about it. His avowed mission is impressing the “public heart” to care nothing about it. A leading Douglas Democratic newspaper thinks Douglas’s superior talent will be needed to resist the revival of the African slave trade. Does Douglas believe an effort to revive that trade is approaching? He has not said so. Does he really think so? But if it is, how can he resist it? For years he has labored to prove it a sacred right of white men to take negro slaves into the new territories. Can he possibly show that it is less a sacred right to buy them where they can be bought cheapest? And, unquestionably they can be bought cheaper in Africa than in Virginia. He has done all in his power to reduce the whole question of slavery to one of a mere right of property; and as such, how can he oppose the foreign 12

Ecclesiastes 9: 4.

61

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.013

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches slave trade – how can he refuse that trade in that “property” shall be “perfectly free” – unless he does it as a protection to the home production? And as the home producers will probably not ask the protection, he will be wholly without a ground of opposition. Senator Douglas holds, we know, that a man may rightfully be wiser to-day than he was yesterday – that he may rightfully change when he finds himself wrong. But can we, for that reason, run ahead, and infer that he will make any particular change, of which he, himself, has given no intimation? Can we safely base our action upon any such vague inference? Now, as ever, I wish to not misrepresent Judge Douglas’s position, question his motives, or do ought that can be personally offensive to him. Whenever, if ever, he and we can come together on principle so that our great cause may have assistance from his great ability, I hope to have interposed no adventitious obstacle. But clearly, he is not now with us – he does not pretend to be – he does not promise to ever be. Our cause, then, must be intrusted to, and conducted by its own undoubted friends – those whose hands are free, whose hearts are in the work – who do care for the result. Two years ago the Republicans of the nation mustered over thirteen hundred thousand strong. We did this under the single impulse of resistance to a common danger, with every external circumstance against us. Of strange, discordant, and even hostile elements, we gathered from the four winds, and formed and fought the battle through, under the constant hot fire of a disciplined, proud, and pampered enemy. Did we brave all then, to falter now? – now – when that same enemy is wavering, dissevered and belligerent? The result is not doubtful. We shall not fail – if we stand firm, we shall not fail. Wise councils may accelerate or mistakes delay it, but, sooner or later the victory is sure to come. June 16, 1858

62

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.013

8

Portion of a Speech at Edwardsville, Illinois

In this speech in the 1858 senatorial campaign, Lincoln goes on the offensive against Douglas and the Dred Scott decision of the preceding year. He draws a sharp contrast between Douglas’s professed indifference to the expansion of slavery and his own view that “slavery [is] a moral, social and political wrong.” To allow the extension of this wrong – as the Kansas–Nebraska Act (1854) and the Dred Scott decision (1857) do – is to aid and abet evil. I have been requested to give a concise statement, as I understand it, of the difference between the Democratic and the Republican parties on the leading issues of this campaign. The question has just been put to me by a gentleman whom I do not know. I do not even know whether he is a friend of mine or a supporter of Judge Douglas in this contest; nor does that make any difference. His question is a pertinent one and, though it has not been asked me anywhere in the State before, I am very glad that my attention has been called to it to-day. Lest I should forget it, I will give you my answer before proceeding with the line of argument I had marked out for this discussion. The difference between the Republican and the Democratic parties on the leading issue of this contest, as I understand it, is, that the former consider slavery a moral, social and political wrong, while the latter do not consider it either a moral, social or political wrong; and the action of each, as respects the growth of the country and the expansion of our population, is squared to meet these views. I will not allege that the Democratic party consider slavery morally, socially and politically right; though their tendency to that view has, in my opinion, been constant and unmistakable for 63

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:18, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.014

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches the past five years. I prefer to take, as the accepted maxim of the party, the idea put forth by Judge Douglas, that he “don’t care whether slavery is voted down or voted up.” I am quite willing to believe that many Democrats would prefer that slavery be always voted down, and I am sure that some prefer that it be always “voted up”; but I have a right to insist that their action, especially if it be their constant and unvarying action, shall determine their ideas and preferences on the subject. Every measure of the Democratic party of late years, bearing directly or indirectly on the slavery question, has corresponded with this notion of utter indifference whether slavery or freedom shall outrun in the race of empire across the Pacific – every measure, I say, up to the Dred Scott decision,1 where, it seems to me, the idea is boldly suggested that slavery is better than freedom. The Republican party, on the contrary, hold that this government was instituted to secure the blessings of freedom, and that slavery is an unqualified evil to the negro, to the white man, to the soil, and to the State. Regarding it an evil, they will not molest it in the States where it exists; they will not overlook the constitutional guards which our forefathers have placed around it; they will do nothing which can give proper offense to those who hold slaves by legal sanction; but they will use every constitutional method to prevent the evil from becoming larger and involving more negroes, more white men, more soil, and more States in its deplorable consequences. They will, if possible, place it where the public mind shall rest in the belief that it is in course of ultimate peaceable extinction, in God’s own good time. And to this end they will, if possible, restore the government to the policy of the fathers – the policy of preserving the new territories from the baneful influence of human bondage, as the Northwestern territories were sought to be preserved by the ordinance of 1787 and the Compromise act of 1820. They will oppose, in all its length and breadth, the modern Democratic idea that slavery is as good as freedom, and ought to have room for expansion all over the continent, if people can be found to carry it. All, or very nearly all, of Judge Douglas’s arguments about “Popular Sovereignty,” 2 as he calls it, are logical if you admit that slavery is as good and as right as freedom; and not one of them is worth a rush if you deny it. This is the difference, as I understand it, between the Republican and the Democratic parties; and I ask the gentleman, and all of you, whether his question is not satisfactorily answered. [Cries of “Yes, yes.”] 1

See selection 6, n. 5.

2

See selection 6, n. 3.

64

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:18, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.014

Speech at Edwardsville, Illinois

o p i n i o n s o f h e n ry c l ay In this connection let me read to you the opinions of our old leader Henry Clay,3 on the question of whether slavery is as good as freedom. The extract which I propose to read is contained in a letter written by Mr. Clay in his old age, as late as 1849. The circumstances which called it forth were these. A convention had been called to form a new constitution for the State of Kentucky. The old Constitution had been adopted in the year 1799 – half a century before, when Mr. Clay was a young man just rising into public notice. As long ago as the adoption of the old Constitution, Mr. Clay had been the earnest advocate of a system of gradual emancipation and colonization of the state of Kentucky. And again in his old age, in the maturity of his great mind, we find the same wise project still uppermost in his thoughts. Let me read a few passages from his letter of 1849: I know there are those who draw an argument in favor of slavery from the alleged intellectual inferiority of the black race. Whether this argument is founded in fact or not, I will not now stop to inquire, but merely say that if it proves anything at all, it proves too much. It proves that among the white races of the world any one might properly be enslaved by any other which had made greater advances in civilization. And, if this rule applies to nations there is no reason why it should not apply to individuals; and it might easily be proved that the wisest man in the world could rightfully reduce all other men and women to bondage, etc., etc. [Mr. Lincoln read at considerable length from Mr. Clay’s letter – earnestly pressing the material advantages and moral considerations in favor of gradual emancipation in Kentucky.]

p o p u l a r s o v e r e i g n t y : w h at d i d d o u g l a s r e a l ly i n v e n t? Let us inquire, what Douglas really invented, when he introduced, and drove through Congress, the Nebraska bill. 4 He called it “Popular Sovereignty.” What does Popular Sovereignty mean? Strictly and literally it means the sovereignty of the people over their own affairs – in other 3 4

Senator Henry Clay of Kentucky. See selection 1, n. 1. The bill that became the Kansas–Nebraska Act. See selection 5, n. 1.

65

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:18, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.014

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches words, the right of the people of every nation and community to govern themselves. Did Mr. Douglas invent this? Not quite. The idea of Popular Sovereignty was floating about the world several ages before the author of the Nebraska bill saw daylight – indeed before Columbus set foot on the American continent. In the year 1776 it took tangible form in the noble words which you are all familiar with: “We hold these truths to be self-evident: That all men are created equal; That they are endowed by their Creator with certain inalienable rights; That among these are life, liberty and the pursuit of happiness; That to secure these rights governments are instituted among men, deriving their just powers from the consent of the governed.” Was not this the origin of Popular Sovereignty as applied to the American people? Here we are told that Governments are instituted among men to secure certain rights, and that they derive their just powers from the consent of the governed. If that is not Popular Sovereignty, then I have no conception of the meaning of words. Then, if Mr. Douglas did not invent this kind of sovereignty, let us pursue the inquiry and find out what the invention really was. Was it the right of emigrants in Kansas and Nebraska to govern themselves and a gang of niggers too, if they wanted them? Clearly this was no invention of his, because Gen[eral] Cass put forth the same doctrine in 1848, in his so-called Nicholson letter – six whole years before Douglas thought of such a thing. Gen[eral] Cass could have taken out a patent for the idea, if he had chosen to do so, and have prevented his Illinois rival from reaping a particle of benefit from it. Then what was it, I ask again, that this “Little Giant” 5 invented? It never occurred to Gen[eral] Cass to call his discovery by the odd name of “Popular Sovereignty.” He had not the impudence to say that the right of people to govern niggers was the right of people to govern themselves. His notions of the fitness of things were not moulded to the brazen degree of calling the right to put a hundred niggers through under the lash in Nebraska, a “sacred right of self-government.” And here, I submit to this intelligent audience and the whole world, was Judge Douglas’s discovery, and the whole of it. He invented a name for Gen[eral] Cass’s old Nicholson letter dogma. He discovered that the right of the white man to breed and flog niggers in Nebraska was Popular Sovereig nty! [Great applause and laughter.]

5

Senator Douglas’s nickname, given because he was short of stature but a powerful politician and public speaker.

66

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:18, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.014

Speech at Edwardsville, Illinois

w h at m ay w e l o o k f o r a f t e r t h e n e xt d r e d s c ot t d e c i s i o n ? My friends, I have endeavored to show you the logical consequences of the Dred Scott decision, which holds that the people of a Territory cannot prevent the establishment of Slavery in their midst. I have stated what cannot be gainsayed – that the grounds upon which this decision is made are equally applicable to the Free States as to the Free Territories, and that the peculiar reasons put forth by Judge Douglas for endorsing this decision, commit him in advance to the next decision, and to all other decisions emanating from the same source. Now, when by all these means you have succeeded in dehumanizing the negro; when you have put him down, and made it forever impossible for him to be but as the beasts of the field; when you have extinguished his soul, and placed him where the ray of hope is blown out in darkness like that which broods over the spirits of the damned; are you quite sure the demon which you have roused will not turn and rend you? What constitutes the bulwark of our own liberty and independence? It is not our frowning battlements, our bristling sea coasts, the guns of our war steamers, or the strength of our gallant and disciplined army. These are not our reliance against a resumption of tyranny in our fair land. All of them may be turned against our liberties, without making us stronger or weaker for the struggle. Our reliance is in the love of liberty which God has planted in our bosoms. Our defense is in the preservation of the spirit which prizes liberty as the heritage of all men, in all lands, everywhere. Destroy this spirit, and you have planted the seeds of despotism around your own doors. Familiarize yourselves with the chains of bondage, and you are preparing you own limbs to wear them. Accustomed to trample on the rights of those around you, you have lost the genius of your own independence, and become the fit subjects of the first cunning tyrant who rises. And let me tell you, all these things are prepared for you with the logic of history, if the elections shall promise that the next Dred Scott decision and all future decisions will be quietly acquiesced in by the people. – [Loud applause.] September 11, 1858

67

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:18, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.014

9

Seventh Lincoln–Douglas Debate Mr. Lincoln’s Reply In the seventh and final of his debates with Douglas, Lincoln replies to Douglas’s repeated assertion that “all men” in the Declaration of Independence means that “all white men” are created equal and endowed by their Creator with certain inalienable rights, and that non-whites are not so created and so endowed. Lincoln reiterates his oft-repeated view that the Declaration refers to rights shared by all men, regardless of race. Slavery is, he says, a cancer in the American body politic, and its westward extension is tantamount to the spread of the cancer that will kill the body. On being introduced to the audience, after the cheering had subsided Mr. Lincoln said: ladie s a n d g e ntle m e n: . . . So far as Judge Douglas addressed his speech to me, or so far as it was about me, it is my business to pay some attention to it. I have heard the Judge state two or three times what he has stated to-day – that in a speech which I made at Springfield, Illinois, I had in a very especial manner, complained that the Supreme Court in the Dred Scott case had decided that a negro could never be a citizen of the United States. I have omitted by some accident heretofore to analyze this statement, and it is required of me to notice it now. In point of fact it is untrue. I never have complained especially of the Dred Scott decision because it held that a negro could not be a citizen, and the Judge is always wrong when he says I ever did so complain of it. I have the speech here, and I will thank him or any of his friends to show where I said that a negro should be a citizen, and complained especially of the Dred Scott decision because it declared he could not be one. I have

68

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

Seventh Lincoln–Douglas Debate done no such thing, and Judge Douglas’s so persistently insisting that I have done so, has strongly impressed me with the belief of a predetermination on his part to misrepresent me. He could not get his foundation for insisting that I was in favor of this negro equality anywhere else as well as he could by assuming that untrue proposition. Let me tell this audience what is true in regard to that matter; and the means by which they may correct me if I do not tell them truly is by a recurrence to the speech itself. I spoke of the Dred Scott decision in my Springfield speech, and I was then endeavoring to prove that the Dred Scott decision was a portion of a system or scheme to make slavery national in this country. I pointed out what things had been decided by the court. I mentioned as a fact that they had decided that a negro could not be a citizen – that they had done so, as I supposed, to deprive the negro, under all circumstances, of the remotest possibility of ever becoming a citizen and claiming the rights of a citizen of the United States under a certain clause of the Constitution. I stated that, without making any complaint of it at all. I then went on and stated the other points decided in the case, namely: that the bringing of a negro into the State of Illinois and holding him in slavery for two years here was a matter in regard to which they would not decide whether it made him free or not; that they decided the further point that taking him into a United States Territory where slavery was prohibited by act of Congress, did not make him free because that act of Congress as they held was unconstitutional. I mentioned these three things as making up the points decided in that case. I mentioned them in a lump taken in connection with the introduction of the Nebraska bill, and the amendment of Chase,1 offered at the time, declaratory of the right of the people of the Territories to exclude slavery, which was voted down by the friends of the bill. I mentioned all these things together, as evidence tending to prove a combination and conspiracy to make the institution of slavery national. In that connection and in that way I mentioned the decision on the point that a negro could not be a citizen, and in no other connection. Out of this, Judge Douglas builds up his beautiful fabrication – of my purpose to introduce a perfect, social, and political equality between the white and black races. His assertion that I made an “especial objection” 1

Senator Salmon P. Chase of Ohio. He later served as Secretary of the Treasury in Lincoln’s cabinet.

69

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches (that is his exact language) to the decision on this account, is untrue in point of fact. Now, while I am upon this subject, and as Henry Clay has been alluded to, I desire to place myself, in connection with Mr. Clay, as nearly right before this people as may be. I am quite aware what the Judge’s object is here by all these allusions. He knows that we are before an audience, having strong sympathies southward by relationship, place of birth, and so on. He desires to place me in an extremely Abolition attitude. He read upon a former occasion, and alludes without reading to-day, to a portion of a speech which I delivered in Chicago. In his quotations from that speech as he has made them upon former occasions, the extracts were taken in such a way, as I suppose, brings them within the definition of what is called garbling – taking portions of a speech which, when taken by themselves, do not present the entire sense of the speaker as expressed at the time. I propose, therefore, out of that same speech, to show how one portion of it which he skipped over (taking an extract before and an extract after) will give a different idea and the true idea I intended to convey. It will take me some little time to read it, but I believe I will occupy the time in that way. You have heard him frequently allude to my controversy with him in regard to the Declaration of Independence. I confess that I have had a struggle with Judge Douglas on that matter, and I will try briefly to place myself right in regard to it on this occasion. I said – and it is between the extracts Judge Douglas has taken from this speech, and put in his published speeches – It may be argued that there are certain conditions that make necessities and impose them upon us, and to the extent that a necessity is imposed upon a man he must submit to it. I think that was the condition in which we found ourselves when we established this Government. We had slaves among us, we could not get our Constitution unless we permitted them to remain in slavery, we could not secure the good we did secure if we grasped for more; and having by necessity submitted to that much, it does not destroy the principle that is the charter of our liberties. Let that charter remain as our standard.

Now I have upon all occasions declared as strongly as Judge Douglas against the disposition to interfere with the existing institution of slavery. You hear me read it from the same speech from which he takes garbled extracts for the purpose of proving upon me a disposition to interfere with 70

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

Seventh Lincoln–Douglas Debate the institution of slavery, and establish a perfect social and political equality between negroes and white people. Allow me while upon this subject briefly to present one other extract from a speech of mine, more than a year ago, at Springfield, in discussing this very same question, soon after Judge Douglas took his ground that negroes were not included in the Declaration of Independence: I think the authors of that notable instrument intended to include all men, but they did not mean to declare all men equal in all respects. They did not mean to say all men were equal in color, size, intellect, moral development or social capacity. They defined with tolerable distinctness in what they did consider all men created equal – equal in certain inalienable rights, among which are life, liberty and the pursuit of happiness. This they said, and this they meant. They did not mean to assert the obvious untruth, that all were then actually enjoying that equality, nor yet, that they were about to confer it immediately upon them. In fact they had no power to confer such a boon. They meant simply to declare the right so that the enforcement of it might follow as fast as circumstances should permit. They meant to set up a standard maxim for free society which should be familiar to all: constantly looked to, constantly labored for, and even though never perfectly attained, constantly approximated and thereby constantly spreading and deepening its influence and augmenting the happiness and value of life to all people, of all colors, everywhere.

There again are the sentiments I have expressed in regard to the Declaration of Independence upon a former occasion – sentiments which have been put in print and read wherever anybody cared to know what so humble an individual as myself chose to say in regard to it. At Galesburg the other day, I said in answer to Judge Douglas, that three years ago there never had been a man, so far as I knew or believed, in the whole world, who had said that the Declaration of Independence did not include negroes in the term “all men.” I re-assert it to-day. I assert that Judge Douglas and all his friends may search the whole records of the country, and it will be a matter of great astonishment to me if they shall be able to find that one human being three years ago had ever uttered the astounding sentiment that the term “all men” in the Declaration did not include the negro. Do not let me be misunderstood. I know that more than three years ago there were men who, finding this assertion constantly in the way of their schemes to bring about the ascendancy and perpetuation of slavery, denied the truth of it. I know that 71

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches Mr. Calhoun2 and all the politicians of his school denied the truth of the Declaration. I know that it ran along in the mouths of some Southern men for a period of years, ending at last in that shameful though rather forcible declaration of Pettit of Indiana,3 upon the floor of the United States Senate, that the Declaration of Independence was in that respect “a self-evident lie,” rather than a self-evident truth. But I say, with a perfect knowledge of all this hawking at the Declaration without directly attacking it, that three years ago there never had lived a man who had ventured to assail it in the sneaking way of pretending to believe it and then asserting it did not include the negro. [Cheers.] I believe the first man who ever said it was Chief Justice Taney in the Dred Scott case, and the next to him was our friend Stephen A. Douglas. [Cheers and laughter.] And now it has become the catch-word of the entire party. I would like to call upon his friends everywhere to consider how they have come in so short a time to view this matter in a way so entirely different from their former belief? to ask whether they are not being borne along by an irresistible current – whither, they know not? [Great applause.] In answer to my proposition at Galesburg last week, I see that some man in Chicago has got up a letter addressed to the Chicago Times, to show as he professes that somebody had said so before; and he signs himself “An Old Line Whig,” if I remember correctly. In the first place I would say he was not an Old Line Whig. I am somewhat acquainted with Old Line Whigs. I was with the Old Line Whigs from the origin to the end of that party; I became pretty well acquainted with them, and I know they always had some sense, whatever else you could ascribe to them. [Great laughter.] I know there never was one who had not more sense than to try to show by the evidence he produces that some man had, prior to the time I named, said that negroes were not included in the term “all men” in the Declaration of Independence. What is the evidence he produces? I will bring forward his evidence and let you see what he offers by way of showing that somebody more than three years ago had said negroes were not included in the Declaration. He brings forward part of a speech from Henry Clay – the part of the speech of Henry Clay which I used to bring forward to prove precisely the contrary. [Laughter.] I guess we are surrounded to some extent to-day, by the old friends of Mr. Clay, and they will be glad to hear anything from that authority. While he was in Indiana a man presented him a petition to liberate his negroes, and he (Mr. Clay) made a speech in 2

Senator John C. Calhoun of South Carolina.

3

Senator John Pettit of Indiana.

72

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

Seventh Lincoln–Douglas Debate answer to it, which I suppose he carefully wrote out himself and caused to be published. I have before me an extract from that speech which constitutes the evidence this pretended “Old Line Whig” at Chicago brought forward to show that Mr. Clay didn’t suppose the negro was included in the Declaration of Independence. Hear what Mr. Clay said: And what is the foundation of this appeal to me in Indiana, to liberate the slaves under my care in Kentucky? It is a general declaration in the act announcing to the world the independence of the thirteen American colonies, that all men are created equal. Now, as an abstract principle, there is no doubt of the truth of that declaration; and it is desirable in the original construction of society, and in organized societies, to keep it in view as a great fundamental principle. But, then, I apprehend that in no society that ever did exist, or ever shall be formed, was or can the equality asserted among the members of the human race be practically enforced and carried out. There are portions, large portions, women, minors, insane, culprits, transient sojourners, that will always probably remain subject to the government of another portion of the community. That declaration whatever may be the extent of its import, was made by the delegations of the thirteen States. In most of them slavery existed, and had long existed, and was established by law. It was introduced and forced upon the colonies by the paramount law of England. Do you believe, that in making that Declaration the States that concurred in it intended that it should be tortured into a virtual emancipation of all the slaves within their respective limits? Would Virginia and other Southern States have ever united in a declaration which was to be interpreted into an abolition of slavery among them? Did any one of the thirteen colonies entertain such a design or expectation? To impute such a secret and unavowed purpose would be to charge a political fraud upon the noblest band of patriots that ever assembled in council; a fraud upon the confederacy of the Revolution; a fraud upon the union of those States whose constitution not only recognized the lawfulness of slavery, but permitted the importation of slaves from Africa until the year 1808.

This is the entire quotation brought forward to prove that somebody previous to three years ago had said the negro was not included in the term “all men” in the Declaration. How does it do so? In what way has it a tendency to prove that? Mr. Clay says it is true as an abstract principle that all men are created equal, but that we cannot practically apply it in all cases. He illustrates this by bringing forward the cases of females, minors 73

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches and insane persons with whom it cannot be enforced; but he says it is true as an abstract principle in the organization of society as well as in organized society, and it should be kept in view as a fundamental principle. Let me read a few words more before I add some comments of my own. Mr. Clay says a little further on: I desire no concealment of my opinions in regard to the institution of slavery. I look upon it as a great evil; and deeply lament that we have derived it from the parental Government; and from our ancestors. But here they are and the question is, how can they be best dealt with? If a state of nature existed and we were about to lay the foundations of society, no man would be more strongly opposed than I should be, to incorporating the institution of slavery among its elements.

Now here in this same book – in this same speech – is this same extract brought forward to prove that Mr. Clay held that the negro was not included in the Declaration of Independence – no such statement on his part, but the declaration that it is a great fundamental truth, which should be constantly kept in view in the organization of society and in societies already organized. But if I say a word about it – if I attempt, as Mr. Clay said all good men ought to do, to keep it in view – if, in this “organized society,” I ask to have the public eye turned upon it – if I ask, in relation to the organization of new Territories that the public eye should be turned upon it – forthwith I am vilified as you hear me to-day. What have I done, that I have not the license of Henry Clay’s illustrious example here in doing? Have I done aught that I have not his authority for, while maintaining that in organizing new Territories and societies this fundamental principle should be regarded, and in organized society holding it up to the public view and recognizing what he recognized as the great principle of free government? [Great applause, and cries of “Hurrah for Lincoln.”] And when this new principle – this new proposition that no human being ever thought of three years ago – is brought forward, I combat it as having an evil tendency, if not an evil design; I combat it as having a tendency to dehumanize the negro – to take away from him the right of ever striving to be a man. I combat it as being one of the thousand things constantly done in these days to prepare the public mind to make property, and nothing but property of the negro in all the States of this Union. [Tremendous applause. “Hurrah for Lincoln.” “Hurrah for Trumbull.”] . . . The principle upon which I have insisted in this canvass, is in relation to laying the foundations of new societies. I have never sought to apply 74

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

Seventh Lincoln–Douglas Debate these principles to the old States for the purpose of abolishing slavery in those States. It is nothing but a miserable perversion of what I have said, to assume that I have declared Missouri, or any other slave State shall emancipate her slaves: I have proposed no such thing. But when Mr. Clay says that in laying the foundations of societies in our Territories where it does not exist he would be opposed to the introduction of slavery as an element, I insist that we have his warrant – his license for insisting upon the exclusion of that element, which he declared in such strong and emphatic language was most hateful to him. [Loud applause.] Judge Douglas has again referred to a Springfield speech in which I said “a house divided against itself cannot stand.” The Judge has so often made the entire quotation from that speech that I can make it from memory. I used this language: We are now far into the fifth year since a policy was initiated with the avowed object and confident promise of putting an end to the slavery agitation. Under the operation of this policy, that agitation has not only not ceased but has constantly augmented. In my opinion it will not cease until a crisis shall have been reached and passed. “A house divided against itself cannot stand.” I believe this government cannot endure permanently half slave and half free. I do not expect the house to fall – but I do expect it will cease to be divided. It will become all one thing, or all the other. Either the opponents of Slavery will arrest the further spread of it, and place it where the public mind shall rest in the belief that it is in the course of ultimate extinction, or its advocates will push it forward till it shall become alike lawful in all the States – old as well as new, North as well as South.

That extract and the sentiments expressed in it, have been extremely offensive to Judge Douglas. He has warred upon them as Satan does upon the Bible. [Laughter.] His perversions upon it are endless. Here now are my views upon it in brief. I said we were now far into the fifth year since a policy was initiated with the avowed object and confident promise of putting an end to the slavery agitation. Is it not so? When that Nebraska bill was brought forward four years ago last January, was it not for the “avowed object” of putting an end to the slavery agitation? We were to have no more agitation in Congress; it was all to be banished to the Territories. By the way, I will remark here that, as Judge Douglas is very fond of complimenting Mr. Crittenden4 in these days, 4

Senator John J. Crittenden of Kentucky.

75

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches Mr. Crittenden has said there was a falsehood in that whole business, for there was no slavery agitation at that time to allay. We were for a little while quiet on the troublesome thing and that very allaying plaster of Judge Douglas’s, stirred it up again. [Applause and laughter.] But was it not understood or intimated with the “confident promise” of putting an end to the slavery agitation? Surely it was. In every speech you heard Judge Douglas make, until he got into this “imbroglio,” as they call it, with the Administration about the Lecompton Constitution,5 every speech on that Nebraska bill was full of his felicitations that we were just at the end of the slavery agitation. The last tip of the last joint of the old serpent’s tail was just drawing out of view. [Cheers and laughter.] But has it proved so? I have asserted that under that policy that agitation “has not only not ceased, but has constantly augmented.” When was there ever a greater agitation in Congress than last winter? When was it as great in the country as to-day? There was a collateral object in the introduction of that Nebraska policy which was to clothe the people of the Territories with a superior degree of self-government, beyond what they had ever had before. The first object and the main one of conferring upon the people a higher degree of “selfgovernment,” is a question of fact to be determined by you in answer to a single question. Have you ever heard or known of a people any where on earth who had as little to do, as, in the first instance of its use, the people of Kansas had with this same right of “self-government”? [Loud applause.] In its main policy, and in its collateral object, it has been nothing but a living, creeping lie from the time of its introduction, till to-day. [Loud cheers.] I have intimated that I thought the agitation would not cease until a crisis should have been reached and passed. I have stated in what way I thought it would be reached and passed. I have said that it might go one way or the other. We might, by arresting the further spread of it and placing it where the fathers originally placed it, put it where the public mind should rest in the belief that it was in the course of ultimate extinction. Thus the agitation may cease. It may be pushed forward until it shall become alike lawful in all the States, old as well as new, North as well as South. I have said, and I repeat, my wish is that the further spread of it may be arrested, and that it may be placed where the public mind shall rest in the belief that it is in the course of ultimate extinction. [Great applause.] I have expressed that as my wish. I entertain the opinion upon evidence sufficient to my mind, that the fathers of this 5

See selection 7, n. 7.

76

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

Seventh Lincoln–Douglas Debate Government placed that institution where the public mind did rest in the belief that it was in the course of ultimate extinction. Let me ask why they made provision that the source of slavery – the African slave trade – should be cut off at the end of twenty years? Why did they make provision that in all the new territory we owned at that time slavery should be forever inhibited? Why stop its spread in one direction and cut off its source in another, if they did not look to its being placed in the course of ultimate extinction? Again; the institution of slavery is only mentioned in the Constitution of the United States two or three times, and in neither of these cases does the word “slavery” or “negro race” occur; but covert language is used each time, and for a purpose full of significance. What is the language in regard to the prohibition of the African slave trade? It runs in about this way: “The migration or importation of such persons as any of the States now existing shall think proper to admit, shall not be prohibited by the Congress prior to the year one thousand eight hundred and eight.” 6 The next allusion in the Constitution to the question of slavery and the black race, is on the subject of the basis of representation, and there the language used is, “Representatives and direct taxes shall be apportioned among the several States which may be included within this Union, according to their respective numbers, which shall be determined by adding to the whole number of free persons, including those bound to service for a term of years, and excluding Indians not taxed – three-fifths of all other persons.” 7 It says “persons,” not slaves, not negroes; but this “three-fifths” can be applied to no other class among us than the negroes. Lastly, in the provision for the reclamation of fugitive slaves it is said: “No person held to service or labor in one State under the laws thereof escaping into another, shall in consequence of any law or regulation therein, be discharged from such service or labor, but shall be delivered up, on claim of the party to whom such service or labor may be due.” 8 There again there is no mention of the word “negro” or of slavery. In all three of these places, being the only allusions to slavery in the instrument, covert language is used. Language is used not suggesting that slavery existed or that the black race were among us. And I understand the contemporaneous history of those times to be that covert language was 6 8

US Constitution, Article I, section 9. US Constitution, Article I, section 2.

7

US Constitution, Article I, section 2.

77

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches used with a purpose, and that purpose was that in our Constitution, which it was hoped and is still hoped will endure forever – when it should be read by intelligent and patriotic men, after the institution of slavery had passed from among us – there should be nothing on the face of the great charter of liberty suggesting that such a thing as negro slavery had ever existed among us. [Enthusiastic applause.] This is part of the evidence that the fathers of the Government expected and intended the institution of slavery to come to an end. They expected and intended that it should be in the course of ultimate extinction. And when I say that I desire to see the further spread of it arrested I only say I desire to see that done which the fathers have first done. When I say I desire to see it placed where the public mind will rest in the belief that it is in the course of ultimate extinction, I only say I desire to see it placed where they placed it. It is not true that our fathers, as Judge Douglas assumes, made this government part slave and part free. Understand the sense in which he puts it. He assumes that slavery is a rightful thing within itself – was introduced by the framers of the Constitution. The exact truth is, that they found the institution existing among us, and they left it as they found it. But in making the government they left this institution with many clear marks of disapprobation upon it. They found slavery among them and they left it among them because of the difficulty – the absolute impossibility of its immediate removal. And when Judge Douglas asks me why we cannot let it remain part slave and part free as the fathers of the government made, he asks a question based upon an assumption which is itself a falsehood; and I turn upon him and ask him the question, when the policy that the fathers of the government had adopted in relation to this element among us was the best policy in the world – the only wise policy – the only policy that we can ever safely continue upon – that will ever give us peace unless this dangerous element masters us all and becomes a national institution – I turn upon him and ask him why he could not let it alone? [Great and prolonged cheering.] I turn and ask him why he was driven to the necessity of introducing a new policy in regard to it? He has himself said he introduced a new policy. He said so in his speech on the 22nd of March of the present year, 1858. I ask him why he could not let it remain where our fathers placed it? I ask too of Judge Douglas and his friends why we shall not again place this institution upon the basis on which the fathers left it? I ask you when he infers that I am in favor of setting the free and slave States at war, when the institution was placed in that attitude by those who made the constitution, did they make any war? [“No,” “no,” 78

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

Seventh Lincoln–Douglas Debate and cheers.] If we had no war out of it when thus placed, wherein is the ground of belief that we shall have war out of it if we return to that policy? Have we had any peace upon this matter springing from any other basis? [“No, no.”] I maintain that we have not. I have proposed nothing more than a return to the policy of the fathers. I confess, when I propose a certain measure of policy, it is not enough for me that I do not intend anything evil in the result, but it is incumbent on me to show that it has not a tendency to that result. I have met Judge Douglas in that point of view. I have not only made the declaration that I do not mean to produce a conflict between the States, but I have tried to show by fair reasoning, and I think I have shown to the minds of fair men, that I propose nothing but what has a most peaceful tendency. The quotation that I happened to make in that Springfield speech, that “a house divided against itself cannot stand,” and which has proved so offensive to the Judge, was part and parcel of the same thing. He tries to show that variety in the domestic institutions of the different States is necessary and indispensable. I do not dispute it. I have no controversy with Judge Douglas about that. I shall very readily agree with him that it would be foolish for us to insist upon having a cranberry law here, in Illinois, where we have no cranberries, because they have a cranberry law in Indiana, where they have cranberries. [Laughter, “good, good.”] I should insist that it would be exceedingly wrong in us to deny to Virginia the right to enact oyster laws where they have oysters, because we want no such laws here. [Renewed laughter.] I understand, I hope, quite as well as Judge Douglas or anybody else, that the variety in the soil and climate and face of the country, and consequent variety in the industrial pursuits and productions of a country, require systems of law conforming to this variety in the natural features of the country. I understand quite as well as Judge Douglas, that if we here raise a barrel of flour more than we want, and the Louisianians raise a barrel of sugar more than they want, it is of mutual advantage to exchange. That produces commerce, brings us together, and makes us better friends. We like one another the more for it. And I understand as well as Judge Douglas, or anybody else, that these mutual accommodations are the cements which bind together the different parts of this Union – that instead of being a thing to “divide the house” – figuratively expressing the Union – they tend to sustain it; they are the props of the house tending always to hold it up. But when I have admitted all this, I ask if there is any parallel between these things and this institution of slavery? I do not see that there is any parallel at all between them. Consider it. When have we had any difficulty 79

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches or quarrel amongst ourselves about the cranberry laws of Indiana, or the oyster laws of Virginia, or the pine lumber laws of Maine, or the fact that Louisiana produces sugar, and Illinois flour? When have we had any quarrels over these things? When have we had perfect peace in regard to this thing which I say is an element of discord in this Union? We have sometimes had peace, but when was it? It was when the institution of slavery remained quiet where it was. We have had difficulty and turmoil whenever it has made a struggle to spread itself where it was not. I ask then, if experience does not speak in thunder tones, telling us that the policy which has given peace to the country heretofore, being returned to, gives the greatest promise of peace again. [“Yes;” “yes;” “yes.”] You may say and Judge Douglas has intimated the same thing, that all this difficulty in regard to the institution of slavery is the mere agitation of office seekers and ambitious Northern politicians. He thinks we want to get “his place,” I suppose. [Cheers and laughter.] I agree that there are office seekers amongst us. The Bible says somewhere that we are desperately selfish. I think we would have discovered that fact without the Bible. I do not claim that I am any less so than the average of men, but I do claim that I am not more selfish than Judge Douglas. [Roars of laughter and applause.] But is it true that all the difficulty and agitation we have in regard to this institution of slavery springs from office seeking – from the mere ambition of politicians? Is that the truth? How many times have we had danger from this question? Go back to the day of the Missouri Compromise. Go back to the Nullification question,9 at the bottom of which lay this same slavery question. Go back to the time of the Annexation of Texas.10 Go back to the troubles that led to the Compromise of 1850.11 You will find that every time, with the single exception of the Nullification question, they sprung from an endeavor to spread this institution. There never was a party in the history of this country, and there probably never will be of sufficient strength to disturb the general peace of the country. Parties themselves may be divided and quarrel on minor questions, yet it extends not beyond the parties themselves. But does not this question make a disturbance outside of political circles? Does it not enter into the churches and rend 9

10 11

The question whether a state may negate or “nullify” federal legislation that it considers inimical to its interests. In 1845 the independent Republic of Texas joined the Union as a state. The Compromise of 1850 temporarily settled disputes between slave and free states over whether territory annexed after the Mexican-American War (1846–8) would become free or slave states.

80

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

Seventh Lincoln–Douglas Debate them asunder? What divided the great Methodist Church into two parts, North and South? What has raised this constant disturbance in every Presbyterian General Assembly that meets? What disturbed the Unitarian Church in this very city two years ago? What has jarred and shaken the great American Tract Society recently, not yet splitting it, but sure to divide it in the end? Is it not this same mighty, deep-seated power that somehow operates on the minds of men, exciting and stirring them up in every avenue of society – in politics, in religion, in literature, in morals, in all the manifold relations of life? [Applause.] Is this the work of politicians? Is that irresistible power which for fifty years has shaken the government and agitated the people to be stilled and subdued by pretending that it is an exceedingly simple thing, and we ought not to talk about it? [Great cheers and laughter.] If you will get everybody else to stop talking about it, I assure I will quit before they have half done so. [Renewed laughter.] But where is the philosophy or statesmanship which assumes that you can quiet that disturbing element in our society which has disturbed us for more than half a century, which has been the only serious danger that has threatened our institutions – I say, where is the philosophy or the statesmanship based on the assumption that we are to quit talking about it [applause], and that the public mind is all at once to cease being agitated by it? Yet this is the policy here in the North that Douglas is advocating – that we are to care nothing about it! I ask you if it is not a false philosophy? Is it not a false statesmanship that undertakes to build up a system of policy upon the basis of caring nothing about the very thing that every body does care the most about? [“Yes, yes,” and applause] – a thing which all experience has shown we care a very great deal about? [Laughter and applause.] The Judge alludes very often in the course of his remarks to the exclusive right which the States have to decide the whole thing for themselves. I agree with him very readily that the different States have that right. He is but fighting a man of straw when he assumes that I am contending against the right of the States to do as they please about it. Our controversy with him is in regard to the new Territories. We agree that when the States come in as States they have the right and the power to do as they please. We have no power as citizens of the free States or in our federal capacity as members of the Federal Union through the general government, to disturb slavery in the States where it exists. We profess constantly that we have no more inclination than belief in the power of the Government to disturb it; yet we are driven constantly to defend 81

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches ourselves from the assumption that we are warring upon the rights of the States. What I insist upon is, that the new Territories shall be kept free from it while in the Territorial condition. Judge Douglas assumes that we have no interest in them – that we have no right whatever to interfere. I think we have some interest. I think that as white men we have. Do we not wish for an outlet for our surplus population, if I may so express myself? Do we not feel an interest in getting to that outlet with such institutions as we would like to have prevail there? If you go to the Territory opposed to slavery and another man comes upon the same ground with his slave, upon the assumption that the things are equal, it turns out that he has the equal right all his way and you have no part of it your way. If he goes in and makes it a slave Territory, and by consequence a slave State, is it not time that those who desire to have it a free State were on equal ground? Let me suggest it in a different way. How many Democrats are there about here [“a thousand”] who have left slave States and come into the free State of Illinois to get rid of the institution of slavery? [Another voice – “a thousand and one.”] I reckon there are a thousand and one. [Laughter.] I will ask you, if the policy you are now advocating had prevailed when this country was in a Territorial condition, where would you have gone to get rid of it? [Applause.] Where would you have found your free State or Territory to go to? And when hereafter, for any cause, the people in this place shall desire to find new homes, if they wish to be rid of the institution, where will they find the place to go to? [Loud cheers.] Now irrespective of the moral aspect of this question as to whether there is a right or wrong in enslaving a negro, I am still in favor of our new Territories being in such a condition that white men may find a home – may find some spot where they can better their condition – where they can settle upon new soil and better their condition in life. [Great and continued cheering.] I am in favor of this not merely (I must say it here as I have elsewhere) for our own people who are born amongst us, but as an outlet for free white people everywhere, the world over – in which Hans and Baptiste and Patrick, and all other men from all the world, may find new homes and better their conditions in life. [Loud and long continued applause.] I have stated upon former occasions, and I may as well state again, what I understand to be the real issue in this controversy between Judge Douglas and myself. On the point of my wanting to make war between the free and the slave States, there has been no issue between us. So, too, when he assumes that I am in favor of introducing a perfect social and political equality between the white and black races. These are false issues, 82

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

Seventh Lincoln–Douglas Debate upon which Judge Douglas has tried to force the controversy. There is no foundation in truth for the charge that I maintain either of these propositions. The real issue in this controversy – the one pressing upon every mind – is the sentiment on the part of one class that looks upon the institution of slavery as a wrong, and of another class that does not look upon it as a wrong. The sentiment that contemplates the institution of slavery in this country as a wrong is the sentiment of the Republican party. It is the sentiment around which all their actions – all their arguments circle – from which all their propositions radiate. They look upon it as being a moral, social and political wrong; and while they contemplate it as such, they nevertheless have due regard for its actual existence among us, and the difficulties of getting rid of it in any satisfactory way and to all the constitutional obligations thrown about it. Yet having a due regard for these, they desire a policy in regard to it that looks to its not creating any more danger. They insist that it should as far as may be, be treated as a wrong, and one of the methods of treating it as a wrong is to make provision that it shall grow no larger. [Loud applause.] They also desire a policy that looks to a peaceful end of slavery at some time, as being wrong. These are the views they entertain in regard to it as I understand them; and all their sentiments – all their arguments and propositions are brought within this range. I have said and I repeat it here, that if there be a man amongst us who does not think that the institution of slavery is wrong in any one of the aspects of which I have spoken, he is misplaced and ought not to be with us. And if there be a man amongst us who is so impatient of it as a wrong as to disregard its actual presence among us and the difficulty of getting rid of it suddenly in a satisfactory way, and to disregard the constitutional obligations thrown about it, that man is misplaced if he is on our platform. We disclaim sympathy with him in practical action. He is not placed properly with us. On this subject of treating it as a wrong, and limiting its spread, let me say a word. Has any thing ever threatened the existence of this Union save and except this very institution of Slavery? What is it that we hold most dear amongst us? Our own liberty and prosperity. What has ever threatened our liberty and prosperity save and except this institution of Slavery? If this is true, how do you propose to improve the condition of things by enlarging Slavery – by spreading it out and making it bigger? You may have a wen [cyst] or a cancer upon your person and not be able to cut it out lest you bleed to death; but surely it is no way to cure it, to engraft it and spread it over your whole body. That is no proper way of 83

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches treating what you regard a wrong. You see this peaceful way of dealing with it as a wrong – restricting the spread of it, and not allowing it to go into new countries where it has not already existed. That is the peaceful way, the old-fashioned way, the way in which the fathers themselves set us the example. On the other hand, I have said there is a sentiment which treats it as not being wrong. That is the Democratic sentiment of this day. I do not mean to say that every man who stands within that range positively asserts that it is right. That class will include all who positively assert that it is right, and all who like Judge Douglas treat it as indifferent and do not say it is either right or wrong. These two classes of men fall within the general class of those who do not look upon it as a wrong. And if there be among you anybody who supposes that he, as a Democrat, can consider himself “as much opposed to slavery as anybody,” I would like to reason with him. You never treat it as a wrong. What other thing that you consider as a wrong, do you deal with as you deal with that? Perhaps you say it is wrong, but your leader never does, and you quarrel with anybody who says it is wrong. Although you pretend to say so yourself you can find no fit place to deal with it as a wrong. You must not say anything about it in the free States, because it is not here. You must not say anything about it in the slave States, because it is there. You must not say anything about it in the pulpit, because that is religion and has nothing to do with it. You must not say anything about it in politics, because that will disturb the security of “my place.” [Shouts of laughter and cheers.] There is no place to talk about it as being a wrong, although you say yourself it is a wrong. But finally you will screw yourself up to the belief that if the people of the slave States should adopt a system of gradual emancipation on the slavery question, you would be in favor of it. You would be in favor of it. You say that is getting it in the right place, and you would be glad to see it succeed. But you are deceiving yourself. You all know that Frank Blair and Gratz Brown, down there in St. Louis, undertook to introduce that system in Missouri. They fought as valiantly as they could for the system of gradual emancipation which you pretend you would be glad to see succeed. Now I will bring you to the test. After a hard fight they were beaten, and when the news came over here you threw up your hats and hurrahed for Democracy. [Great applause and laughter.] More than that, take all the argument made in favor of the system you have proposed, and it carefully excludes the idea that there is anything wrong in the institution of slavery. The arguments to sustain that policy carefully excluded it. Even here to-day you heard Judge 84

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

Seventh Lincoln–Douglas Debate Douglas quarrel with me because I uttered a wish that it might sometime come to an end. Although Henry Clay could say he wished every slave in the United States was in the country of his ancestors, I am denounced by those pretending to respect Henry Clay for uttering a wish that it might sometime, in some peaceful way, come to an end. The Democratic policy in regard to that institution will not tolerate the merest breath, the slightest hint, of the least degree of wrong about it. Try it by some of Judge Douglas’s arguments. He says he “don’t care whether it is voted up or voted down” in the Territories. I do not care myself in dealing with that expression, whether it is intended to be expressive of his individual sentiments on the subject, or only of the national policy he desires to have established. It is alike valuable for my purpose. Any man can say that who does not see anything wrong in slavery, but no man can logically say it who does see a wrong in it; because no man can logically say he don’t care whether a wrong is voted up or voted down. He may say he don’t care whether an indifferent thing is voted up or down, but he must logically have a choice between a right thing and a wrong thing. He contends that whatever community wants slaves has a right to have them. So they have if it is not a wrong. But if it is a wrong, he cannot say people have a right to do wrong. He says that upon the score of equality, slaves should be allowed to go in a new Territory, like other property. This is strictly logical if there is no difference between it and other property. If it and other property are equal, his argument is entirely logical. But if you insist that one is wrong and the other right, there is no use to institute a comparison between right and wrong. You may turn over everything in the Democratic policy from beginning to end, whether in the shape it takes on the statute book, in the shape it takes in the Dred Scott decision, in the shape it takes in conversation or the shape it takes in short maxim-like arguments – it everywhere carefully excludes the idea that there is anything wrong in it. That is the real issue. That is the issue that will continue in this country when these poor tongues of Judge Douglas and myself shall be silent. It is the eternal struggle between these two principles – right and wrong – throughout the world. They are the two principles that have stood face to face from the beginning of time; and will ever continue to struggle. The one is the common right of humanity and the other the divine right of kings. It is the same principle in whatever shape it develops itself. It is the same spirit that says, “You work and toil and earn bread, and I’ll eat it.” [Loud applause.] No matter in what shape it comes, whether from the 85

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches mouth of a king who seeks to bestride the people of his own nation and live by the fruit of their labor, or from one race of men as an apology for enslaving another race, it is the same tyrannical principle. I was glad to express my gratitude at Quincy, and I re-express it here to Judge Douglas – that he looks to no end of the institution of slavery. That will help the people to see where the struggle really is. It will hereafter place with us all men who really do wish the wrong may have an end. And whenever we can get rid of the fog which obscures the real question – when we can get Judge Douglas and his friends to avow a policy looking to its perpetuation – we can get out from among them that class of men and bring them to the side of those who treat it as a wrong. Then there will soon be an end of it, and that end will be its “ultimate extinction.” Whenever the issue can be distinctly made, and all extraneous matter thrown out so that men can fairly see the real difference between the parties, this controversy will soon be settled, and it will be done peaceably too. There will be no war, no violence. It will be placed again where the wisest and best men of the world, placed it. Brooks of South Carolina once declared that when this Constitution was framed, its framers did not look to the institution existing until this day. When he said this, I think he stated a fact that is fully borne out by the history of the times. But he also said they were better and wiser men than the men of these days; yet the men of these days had experience which they had not, and by the invention of the cotton gin it became a necessity in this country that slavery should be perpetual. I now say that willingly or unwillingly, purposely or without purpose, Judge Douglas has been the most prominent instrument in changing the position of the institution of slavery which the fathers of the government expected to come to an end ere this – and putting it upon Brooks’ cotton gin basis, [great applause] – placing it where he openly confesses he has no desire there shall ever be an end of it. [Renewed applause.] I understand I have ten minutes yet. I will employ it in saying something about this argument Judge Douglas uses, while he sustains the Dred Scott decision, that the people of the Territories can still somehow exclude slavery. The first thing I ask attention to is the fact that Judge Douglas constantly said, before the decision, that whether they could or not, was a question for the Supreme Court. [Cheers.] But after the Court has made the decision he virtually says it is not a question for the Supreme Court, but for the people. [Renewed applause.] And how is it he tells us they can exclude it? He says it needs “police regulations,” and that admits 86

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

Seventh Lincoln–Douglas Debate of “unfriendly legislation.” Although it is a right established by the Constitution of the United States to take a slave into a Territory of the United States and hold him as property, yet unless the Territorial Legislature will give friendly legislation, and, more especially, if they adopt unfriendly legislation, they can practically exclude him. Now, without meeting this proposition as a matter of fact, I pass to consider the real constitutional obligation. Let me take the gentleman who looks me in the face before me, and let us suppose that he is a member of the Territorial Legislature. The first thing he will do will be to swear that he will support the Constitution of the United States. His neighbor by his side in the Territory has slaves and needs Territorial legislation to enable him to enjoy that constitutional right. Can he withhold the legislation which his neighbor needs for the enjoyment of a right which is fixed in his favor in the Constitution of the United States which he has sworn to support? Can he withhold it without violating his oath? And more especially, can he pass unfriendly legislation to violate his oath? Why this is a monstrous sort of talk about the Constitution of the United States! [Great applause.] There has never been as outlandish or lawless a doctrine from the mouth of any respectable man on earth. [Tremendous cheers.] I do not believe it is a constitutional right to hold slaves in a Territory of the United States. I believe the decision was improperly made and I go for reversing it. Judge Douglas is furious against those who go for reversing a decision. But he is for legislating it out of all force while the law itself stands. I repeat that there has never been so monstrous a doctrine uttered from the mouth of a respectable man. [Loud cheers.] I suppose most of us (I know it of myself ) believe that the people of the Southern States are entitled to a Congressional fugitive slave law – that it is a right fixed in the Constitution. But it cannot be made available to them without Congressional legislation. In the Judge’s language, it is a “barren right” which needs legislation before it can become efficient and valuable to the persons to whom it is guaranteed. And as the right is constitutional I agree that the legislation shall be granted to it – and that not that we like the institution of slavery. We profess to have no taste for running and catching niggers – at least I profess no taste for that job at all. Why then do I yield support to a fugitive slave law? Because I do not understand that the Constitution, which guarantees that right, can be supported without it. And if I believed that the right to hold a slave in a Territory was equally fixed in the Constitution with the right to reclaim fugitives, I should be bound to give it the legislation necessary to support it. I say that no man 87

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches can deny his obligation to give the necessary legislation to support slavery in a Territory, who believes it is a constitutional right to have it there. No man can, who does not give the Abolitionist an argument to deny the obligation enjoined by the constitution to enact a fugitive slave law. Try it now. It is the strongest abolition argument ever made. I say if that Dred Scott decision is correct then the right to hold slaves in a Territory is equally a constitutional right with the right of a slaveholder to have his runaway returned. No one can show the distinction between them. The one is express, so that we cannot deny it. The other is construed to be in the constitution, so that he who believes the decision to be correct believes in the right. And the man who argues that by unfriendly legislation, in spite of that constitutional right, slavery may be driven from the Territories, cannot avoid furnishing an argument by which Abolitionists may deny the obligation to return fugitives, and claim the power to pass laws unfriendly to the right of the slaveholder to reclaim his fugitive. I do not know how such an argument may strike a popular assembly like this, but I defy anybody to go before a body of men whose minds are educated to estimating evidence and reasoning, and show that there is an iota of difference between the constitutional right to reclaim a fugitive, and the constitutional right to hold a slave, in a Territory, provided this Dred Scott decision is correct. [Cheers.] I defy any man to make an argument that will justify unfriendly legislation to deprive a slaveholder of his right to hold his slave in a Territory, that will not equally, in all its length, breadth and thickness furnish an argument for nullifying the fugitive slave law. Why there is not such an Abolitionist in the nation as Douglas, after all. [Loud and enthusiastic applause.] October 15, 1858

88

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.015

10

On Thomas Jefferson: To Henry L. Pierce and Others

Lincoln was an ardent admirer of Thomas Jefferson. Here he pays tribute to the man whose “principles … are the definitions and axioms of free society.” Jefferson’s Declaration remains “a rebuke and a stumbling-block” to those who would enslave and oppress other human beings. Messrs. Henry L. Pierce, & others.

Springfield, Ills. April 6, 1859

Gentlemen Your kind note inviting me to attend a Festival in Boston, on the 13th Inst. in honor of the birth-day of Thomas Jefferson, was duly received. My engagements are such that I cannot attend. Bearing in mind that about seventy years ago, two great political parties were first formed in this country, that Thomas Jefferson was the head of one of them, and Boston the headquarters of the other, it is both curious and interesting that those supposed to descend politically from the party opposed to Jefferson, should now be celebrating his birth-day in their own original seat of empire, while those claiming political descent from him have nearly ceased to breathe his name everywhere. Remembering too, that the Jefferson party were formed upon their supposed superior devotion to the personal rights of men, holding the rights of property to be secondary only, and greatly inferior, and then assuming that the so-called democracy of to-day, are the Jefferson, and their opponents, the anti-Jefferson parties, it will be equally interesting to

89

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.016

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches note how completely the two have changed hands as to the principle upon which they were originally supposed to be divided. The democracy of to-day hold the liberty of one man to be absolutely nothing, when in conflict with another man’s right of property. Republicans, on the contrary, are for both the man and the dollar; but in cases of conflict, the man before the dollar. I remember once being much amused at seeing two partially intoxicated men engage in a fight with their great-coats on, which fight, after a long, and rather harmless contest, ended in each having fought himself out of his own coat, and into that of the other. If the two leading parties of this day are really identical with the two in the days of Jefferson and Adams, they have performed about the same feat as the two drunken men. But soberly, it is now no child’s play to save the principles of Jefferson from total overthrow in this nation. One would start with great confidence that he could convince any sane child that the simpler propositions of Euclid are true; but, nevertheless, he would fail, utterly, with one who should deny the definitions and axioms. The principles of Jefferson are the definitions and axioms of free society. And yet they are denied, and evaded, with no small show of success. One dashingly calls them “glittering generalities”; another bluntly calls them “self-evident lies”; and still others insidiously argue that they apply only to “superior races.” 1 These expressions, differing in form, are identical in object and effect – the supplanting the principles of free government, and restoring those of classification, caste, and legitimacy. They would delight a convocation of crowned heads, plotting against the people. They are the vanguard – the miners, and sappers – of returning despotism. We must repulse them, or they will subjugate us. This is a world of compensations; and he who would be no slave, must consent to have no slave. Those who deny freedom to others, deserve it not for themselves; and, under a just God, cannot long retain it. All honor to Jefferson – to the man who, in the concrete pressure of a struggle for national independence by a single people, had the coolness, forecast, and capacity to introduce into a merely revolutionary document, 1

AL refers to views voiced by the Massachusetts Whig Rufus Choate, Indiana Senator John Pettit, and South Carolina Senator John C. Calhoun (among many others), respectively. See selection 9, nn 2 and 3.

90

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.016

On Thomas Jefferson an abstract truth, applicable to all men and all times, and so to embalm it there, that to-day, and in all coming days, it shall be a rebuke and a stumbling-block to the very harbingers of re-appearing tyrany and oppression. Your obedient Servant

91

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.016

11

Cooper Union Address

When Lincoln spoke at the Cooper Union for the Advancement of Science and Art in New York City, he had not yet secured the Republican presidential nomination. Speaking to a skeptical eastern audience for the first time, Lincoln made a historically informed and legally learned case for the Republican view that in drafting the Constitution the Founders had not intended to protect the institution of slavery in perpetuity, but looked forward to its demise. In adhering to the original intention of the Founders, the Republican Party was – contrary to its critics’ charges of sectionalism, radicalism, and revolt – the truly national and conservative party devoted to conserving the Union. Lincoln’s hugely successful speech was instrumental in securing his nomination for the presidency. Mr. President and Fellow-Citizens of New York: The facts with which I shall deal this evening are mainly old and familiar; nor is there anything new in the general use I shall make of them. If there shall be any novelty, it will be in the mode of presenting the facts, and the inferences and observations following that presentation. In his speech last autumn, at Columbus, Ohio, as reported in The New York Times, Senator Douglas said: Our fathers, when they framed the Government under which we live, understood this question just as well, and even better, than we do now.

I fully indorse this, and I adopt it as a text for this discourse. I so adopt it because it furnishes a precise and an agreed starting point for a discussion between Republicans and that wing of the Democracy headed by Senator 92

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.017

Cooper Union Address Douglas. It simply leaves the inquiry: “What was the understanding those fathers had of the question mentioned? ” What is the frame of Government under which we live? The answer must be: “The Constitution of the United States.” That Constitution consists of the original, framed in 1787 (and under which the present government first went into operation), and twelve subsequently framed amendments, the first ten of which were framed in 1789.1 Who were our fathers that framed the Constitution? I suppose the “thirtynine” who signed the original instrument may be fairly called our fathers who framed that part of the present Government. It is almost exactly true to say they framed it, and it is altogether true to say they fairly represented the opinion and sentiment of the whole nation at that time. Their names, being familiar to nearly all, and accessible to quite all, need not now be repeated. I take these “thirty-nine” for the present, as being “our fathers who framed the Government under which we live.” What is the question which, according to the text, those fathers understood “just as well, and even better than we do now?” It is this: Does the proper division of local from federal authority, or anything in the Constitution, forbid our Federal Government to control as to slavery in our Federal Territories? Upon this, Senator Douglas holds the affirmative, and Republicans the negative. This affirmation and denial form an issue; and this issue – this question – is precisely what the text declares our fathers understood “better than we.” Let us now inquire whether the “thirty-nine,” or any of them, ever acted upon this question; and if they did, how they acted upon it – how they expressed that better understanding? In 1784, three years before the Constitution – the United States then owning the Northwestern Territory, and no other, the Congress of the Confederation had before them the question of prohibiting slavery in that Territory; and four of the “thirty-nine,” who afterward framed the Constitution, were in that Congress, and voted on that question. Of these, Roger Sherman, Thomas Mifflin, and Hugh Williamson voted for the prohibition, thus showing that, in their understanding, no line dividing local from federal authority, nor anything else, properly forbade 1

The first ten amendments to the US Constitution, known collectively as the Bill of Rights, were proposed in 1789 and ratified en bloc in 1791.

93

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.017

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches the Federal Government to control as to slavery in federal territory. The other of the four – James M’Henry – voted against the prohibition, showing that, for some cause, he thought it improper to vote for it. In 1787, still before the Constitution, but while the Convention was in session framing it, and while the Northwestern Territory still was the only territory owned by the United States, the same question of prohibiting slavery in the territory again came before the Congress of the Confederation; and two more of the “thirty-nine” who afterward signed the Constitution, were in that Congress, and voted on the question. They were William Blount and William Few; and they both voted for the prohibition – thus showing that, in their understanding, no line dividing local from federal authority, nor anything else, properly forbade the Federal Government to control as to slavery in federal territory. This time the prohibition became a law, being part of what is now well known as the Ordinance of ’87. The question of federal control of slavery in the territories, seems not to have been directly before the Convention which framed the original Constitution; and hence it is not recorded that the “thirty-nine,” or any of them, while engaged on that instrument, expressed any opinion of that precise question. In 1789, by the first Congress which sat under the Constitution, an act was passed to enforce the Ordinance of ’87, including the prohibition of slavery in the Northwestern Territory. 2 The bill for this act was reported by one of the “thirty-nine,” Thomas Fitzsimmons, then a member of the House of Representatives from Pennsylvania. It went through all its stages without a word of opposition, and finally passed both branches without yeas and nays, which is equivalent to an unanimous passage. In this Congress there were sixteen of the thirty-nine fathers who framed the original Constitution. They were John Langdon, Nicholas Gilman, Wm. S. Johnson, Roger Sherman, Robert Morris, Thos. Fitzsimmons, William Few, Abraham Baldwin, Rufus King, William Paterson, George Clymer, Richard Bassett, George Read, Pierce Butler, Daniel Carroll, James Madison. This shows that, in their understanding, no line dividing local from federal authority, nor anything in the Constitution, properly forbade Congress to prohibit slavery in the federal territory; else both their fidelity 2

The Northwestern Territory comprised the present-day states of Ohio, Indiana, Illinois, Michigan, and Wisconsin, and eastern Minnesota.

94

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.017

Cooper Union Address to correct principle, and their oath to support the Constitution, would have constrained them to oppose the prohibition. Again, George Washington, another of the “thirty-nine,” was then President of the United States, and, as such, approved and signed the bill; thus completing its validity as a law, and thus showing that, in his understanding, no line dividing local from federal authority, nor anything in the Constitution, forbade the Federal Government, to control as to slavery in federal territory. No great while after the adoption of the original Constitution, North Carolina ceded to the Federal Government the country now constituting the State of Tennessee; and a few years later Georgia ceded that which now constitutes the States of Mississippi and Alabama. In both deeds of cession it was made a condition by the ceding States that the Federal Government should not prohibit slavery in the ceded country. Besides this, slavery was then actually in the ceded country. Under these circumstances, Congress, on taking charge of these countries, did not absolutely prohibit slavery within them. But they did interfere with it – take control of it – even there, to a certain extent. In 1798, Congress organized the Territory of Mississippi. In the act of organization, they prohibited the bringing of slaves into the Territory, from any place without the United States, by fine, and giving freedom to slaves so brought. This act passed both branches of Congress without yeas and nays. In that Congress were three of the “thirty-nine” who framed the original Constitution. They were John Langdon, George Read and Abraham Baldwin. They all, probably, voted for it. Certainly they would have placed their opposition to it upon record, if, in their understanding, any line dividing local from federal authority, or anything in the Constitution, properly forbade the Federal Government to control as to slavery in federal territory. In 1803, the Federal Government purchased the Louisiana country.3 Our former territorial acquisitions came from certain of our own States; but this Louisiana country was acquired from a foreign nation. In 1804, Congress gave a territorial organization to that part of it which now constitutes the State of Louisiana. New Orleans, lying within that part, was an old and comparatively large city. There were other considerable towns and settlements, and slavery was extensively and thoroughly intermingled with the people. Congress did not, in the Territorial Act, 3

In the Louisiana Purchase (1803) President Thomas Jefferson bought from France the vast territory that stretches from present-day Louisiana to Oregon.

95

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.017

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches prohibit slavery; but they did interfere with it – take control of it – in a more marked and extensive way than they did in the case of Mississippi. The substance of the provision therein made, in relation to slaves, was: First. That no slave should be imported into the territory from foreign parts. Second. That no slave should be carried into it who had been imported into the United States since the first day of May, 1798. Third. That no slave should be carried into it, except by the owner, and for his own use as a settler; the penalty in all the cases being a fine upon the violator of the law, and freedom to the slave. This act also was passed without yeas and nays. In the Congress which passed it, there were two of the “thirty-nine.” They were Abraham Baldwin and Jonathan Dayton. As stated in the case of Mississippi, it is probable they both voted for it. They would not have allowed it to pass without recording their opposition to it, if, in their understanding, it violated either the line properly dividing local from federal authority, or any provision of the Constitution. In 1819–20, came and passed the Missouri question. 4 Many votes were taken, by yeas and nays, in both branches of Congress, upon the various phases of the general question. Two of the “thirty-nine” – Rufus King and Charles Pinckney – were members of that Congress. Mr. King steadily voted for slavery prohibition and against all compromises, while Mr. Pinckney as steadily voted against slavery prohibition and against all compromises. By this, Mr. King showed that, in his understanding, no line dividing local from federal authority, nor anything in the Constitution, was violated by Congress prohibiting slavery in federal territory; while Mr. Pinckney, by his votes, showed that, in his understanding, there was some sufficient reason for opposing such prohibition in that case. The cases I have mentioned are the only acts of the “thirty-nine,” or of any of them, upon the direct issue, which I have been able to discover. To enumerate the persons who thus acted, as being four in 1784, two in 1787, seventeen in 1789, three in 1798, two in 1804, and two in 1819–20 – there would be thirty of them. But this would be counting John 4

That is, the question whether Missouri would enter the Union as a free or a slave state. The “Missouri question” was more broadly concerned with slavery in the western territories annexed by the Louisiana Purchase.

96

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.017

Cooper Union Address Langdon, Roger Sherman, William Few, Rufus King, and George Read, each twice, and Abraham Baldwin, three times. The true number of those of the “thirty-nine” whom I have shown to have acted upon the question, which, by the text, they understood better than we, is twentythree, leaving sixteen not shown to have acted upon it in any way. Here, then, we have twenty-three out of our thirty-nine fathers “who framed the Government under which we live,” who have, upon their official responsibility and their corporal oaths, acted upon the very question which the text affirms they “understood just as well, and even better than we do now”; and twenty-one of them – a clear majority of the whole “thirty-nine” – so acting upon it as to make them guilty of gross political impropriety and wilful perjury, if, in their understanding, any proper division between local and federal authority, or anything in the Constitution they had made themselves, and sworn to support, forbade the Federal Government to control as to slavery in the federal territories. Thus the twenty-one acted; and, as actions speak louder than words, so actions, under such responsibility, speak still louder. Two of the twenty-three voted against Congressional prohibition of slavery in the federal territories, in the instances in which they acted upon the question. But for what reasons they so voted is not known. They may have done so because they thought a proper division of local from federal authority, or some provision or principle of the Constitution, stood in the way; or they may, without any such question, have voted against the prohibition, on what appeared to them to be sufficient grounds of expediency. No one who has sworn to support the Constitution, can conscientiously vote for what he understands to be an unconstitutional measure, however expedient he may think it; but one may and ought to vote against a measure which he deems constitutional, if, at the same time, he deems it inexpedient. It, therefore, would be unsafe to set down even the two who voted against the prohibition, as having done so because, in their understanding, any proper division of local from federal authority, or anything in the Constitution, forbade the Federal Government to control as to slavery in federal territory. The remaining sixteen of the “thirty-nine,” so far as I have discovered, have left no record of their understanding upon the direct question of federal control of slavery in the federal territories. But there is much reason to believe that their understanding upon that question would not have appeared different from that of their twenty-three compeers, had it been manifested at all. 97

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.017

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches For the purpose of adhering rigidly to the text, I have purposely omitted whatever understanding may have been manifested by any person, however distinguished, other than the thirty-nine fathers who framed the original Constitution; and, for the same reason, I have also omitted whatever understanding may have been manifested by any of the “thirty-nine” even, on any other phase of the general question of slavery. If we should look into their acts and declarations on those other phases, as the foreign slave trade, and the morality and policy of slavery generally, it would appear to us that on the direct question of federal control of slavery in federal territories, the sixteen, if they had acted at all, would probably have acted just as the twenty-three did. Among that sixteen were several of the most noted anti-slavery men of those times – as Dr. Franklin, Alexander Hamilton and Gouverneur Morris – while there was not one now known to have been otherwise, unless it may be John Rutledge, of South Carolina. The sum of the whole is, that of our thirty-nine fathers who framed the original Constitution, twenty-one – a clear majority of the whole – certainly understood that no proper division of local from federal authority, nor any part of the Constitution, forbade the Federal Government to control slavery in the federal territories; while all the rest probably had the same understanding. Such, unquestionably, was the understanding of our fathers who framed the original Constitution; and the text affirms that they understood the question “better than we.” But, so far, I have been considering the understanding of the question manifested by the framers of the original Constitution. In and by the original instrument, a mode was provided for amending it; and, as I have already stated, the present frame of “the Government under which we live” consists of that original, and twelve amendatory articles framed and adopted since. Those who now insist that federal control of slavery in federal territories violates the Constitution, point us to the provisions which they suppose it thus violates; and, as I understand, they all fix upon provisions in these amendatory articles, and not in the original instrument. The Supreme Court, in the Dred Scott case, plant themselves upon the fifth amendment, which provides that no person shall be deprived of “life, liberty or property without due process of law;” while Senator Douglas and his peculiar adherents plant themselves upon the tenth amendment, providing that “the powers not delegated to the United States by the Constitution,” “are reserved to the States respectively, or to the people.” 98

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.017

Cooper Union Address Now, it so happens that these amendments were framed by the first Congress which sat under the Constitution – the identical Congress which passed the act already mentioned, enforcing the prohibition of slavery in the Northwestern Territory. Not only was it the same Congress, but they were the identical, same individual men who, at the same session, and at the same time within the session, had under consideration, and in progress toward maturity, these Constitutional amendments, and this act prohibiting slavery in all the territory the nation then owned. The Constitutional amendments were introduced before, and passed after the act enforcing the Ordinance of ’87; so that, during the whole pendency of the act to enforce the Ordinance, the Constitutional amendments were also pending. The seventy-six members of that Congress, including sixteen of the framers of the original Constitution, as before stated, were preeminently our fathers who framed that part of “the Government under which we live,” which is now claimed as forbidding the Federal Government to control slavery in the federal territories. Is it not a little presumptuous in any one at this day to affirm that the two things which that Congress deliberately framed, and carried to maturity at the same time, are absolutely inconsistent with each other? And does not such affirmation become impudently absurd when coupled with the other affirmation from the same mouth, that those who did the two things, alleged to be inconsistent, understood whether they really were inconsistent better than we – better than he who affirms that they are inconsistent? It is surely safe to assume that the thirty-nine framers of the original Constitution, and the seventy-six members of the Congress which framed the amendments thereto, taken together, do certainly include those who may be fairly called “our fathers who framed the Government under which we live.” And so assuming, I defy any man to show that any one of them ever, in his whole life, declared that, in his understanding, any proper division of local from federal authority, or any part of the Constitution, forbade the Federal Government to control as to slavery in the federal territories. I go a step further. I defy any one to show that any living man in the whole world ever did, prior to the beginning of the present century (and I might almost say prior to the beginning of the last half of the present century), declare that, in his understanding, any proper division of local from federal authority, or any part of the Constitution, forbade the Federal Government to control as to slavery in the federal 99

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.017

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches territories. To those who now so declare, I give, not only “our fathers who framed the Government under which we live,” but with them all other living men within the century in which it was framed, among whom to search, and they shall not be able to find the evidence of a single man agreeing with them. Now, and here, let me guard a little against being misunderstood. I do not mean to say we are bound to follow implicitly in whatever our fathers did. To do so, would be to discard all the lights of current experience – to reject all progress – all improvement. What I do say is, that if we would supplant the opinions and policy of our fathers in any case, we should do so upon evidence so conclusive, and argument so clear, that even their great authority, fairly considered and weighed, cannot stand; and most surely not in a case whereof we ourselves declare they understood the question better than we. If any man at this day sincerely believes that a proper division of local from federal authority, or any part of the Constitution, forbids the Federal Government to control as to slavery in the federal territories, he is right to say so, and to enforce his position by all truthful evidence and fair argument which he can. But he has no right to mislead others, who have less access to history, and less leisure to study it, into the false belief that “our fathers, who framed the Government under which we live,” were of the same opinion – thus substituting falsehood and deception for truthful evidence and fair argument. If any man at this day sincerely believes “our fathers who framed the Government under which we live,” used and applied principles, in other cases, which ought to have led them to understand that a proper division of local from federal authority or some part of the Constitution, forbids the Federal Government to control as to slavery in the federal territories, he is right to say so. But he should, at the same time, brave the responsibility of declaring that, in his opinion, he understands their principles better than they did themselves; and especially should he not shirk that responsibility by asserting that they “understood the question just as well, and even better, than we do now.” But enough! Let all who believe that “our fathers, who framed the Government under which we live, understood this question just as well, and even better, than we do now,” speak as they spoke, and act as they acted upon it. This is all Republicans ask – all Republicans desire – in relation to slavery. As those fathers marked it, so let it be again marked, as an evil not to be extended, but to be tolerated and protected only because of and so far as its actual presence among us makes that toleration and protection a necessity. 100

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.017

Cooper Union Address Let all the guaranties those fathers gave it, be, not grudgingly, but fully and fairly maintained. For this Republicans contend, and with this, so far as I know or believe, they will be content. And now, if they would listen – as I suppose they will not – I would address a few words to the Southern people. I would say to them: You consider yourselves a reasonable and a just people; and I consider that in the general qualities of reason and justice you are not inferior to any other people. Still, when you speak of us Republicans, you do so only to denounce us as reptiles, or, at the best, as no better than outlaws. You will grant a hearing to pirates or murderers, but nothing like it to “Black Republicans.” In all your contentions with one another, each of you deems an unconditional condemnation of “Black Republicanism” as the first thing to be attended to. Indeed, such condemnation of us seems to be an indispensable prerequisite – license, so to speak – among you to be admitted or permitted to speak at all. Now, can you, or not, be prevailed upon to pause and to consider whether this is quite just to us, or even to yourselves? Bring forward your charges and specifications, and then be patient long enough to hear us deny or justify. You say we are sectional. We deny it. That makes an issue; and the burden of proof is upon you. You produce your proof; and what is it? Why, that our party has no existence in your section – gets no votes in your section. The fact is substantially true; but does it prove the issue? If it does, then in case we should, without change of principle, begin to get votes in your section, we should thereby cease to be sectional. You cannot escape this conclusion; and yet, are you willing to abide by it? If you are, you will probably soon find that we have ceased to be sectional, for we shall get votes in your section this very year. You will then begin to discover, as the truth plainly is, that your proof does not touch the issue. The fact that we get no votes in your section, is a fact of your making, and not of ours. And if there be fault in that fact, that fault is primarily yours, and remains so until you show that we repel you by some wrong principle or practice. If we do repel you by any wrong principle or practice, the fault is ours; but this brings you to where you ought to have started – to a discussion of the right or wrong of our principle. If our principle, put in practice, would wrong your section for the benefit of ours, or for any other object, then our principle, and we with it, are sectional, and are justly opposed and denounced as such. Meet us, then, on the question of whether our principle, put in practice, would wrong your section; and so meet us as if it were possible that something may be said on our side. 101

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.017

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches Do you accept the challenge? No! Then you really believe that the principle which “our fathers who framed the Government under which we live” thought so clearly right as to adopt it, and indorse it again and again, upon their official oaths, is in fact so clearly wrong as to demand your condemnation without a moment’s consideration. Some of you delight to flaunt in our faces the warning against sectional parties given by Washington in his Farewell Address. Less than eight years before Washington gave that warning, he had, as President of the United States, approved and signed an act of Congress, enforcing the prohibition of slavery in the Northwestern Territory, which act embodied the policy of the Government upon that subject up to and at the very moment he penned that warning; and about one year after he penned it, he wrote La Fayette that he considered that prohibition a wise measure,5 expressing in the same connection his hope that we should at some time have a confederacy of free States. Bearing this in mind, and seeing that sectionalism has since arisen upon this same subject, is that warning a weapon in your hands against us, or in our hands against you? Could Washington himself speak, would he cast the blame of that sectionalism upon us, who sustain his policy, or upon you who repudiate it? We respect that warning of Washington, and we commend it to you, together with his example pointing to the right application of it. But you say you are conservative – eminently conservative – while we are revolutionary, destructive, or something of the sort. What is conservatism? Is it not adherence to the old and tried, against the new and untried? We stick to, contend for, the identical old policy on the point in controversy which was adopted by “our fathers who framed the Government under which we live”; while you with one accord reject, and scout, and spit upon that old policy, and insist upon substituting something new. True, you disagree among yourselves as to what that substitute shall be. You are divided on new propositions and plans, but you are unanimous in rejecting and denouncing the old policy of the fathers. Some of you are for reviving the foreign slave trade; some for a Congressional Slave-Code for the Territories; some for Congress forbidding the Territories to prohibit Slavery within their limits; some for maintaining Slavery in the Territories through the judiciary; some for 5

The Marquis de Lafayette (1757–1834), French hero and fervent supporter of the American Revolution.

102

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.017

Cooper Union Address the “gur-reat pur-rinciple” that “if one man would enslave another, no third man should object,” fantastically called “Popular Sovereignty”; 6 but never a man among you is in favor of federal prohibition of slavery in federal territories, according to the practice of “our fathers who framed the Government under which we live.” Not one of all your various plans can show a precedent or an advocate in the century within which our Government originated. Consider, then, whether your claim of conservatism for yourselves, and your charge of destructiveness against us, are based on the most clear and stable foundations. Again, you say we have made the slavery question more prominent than it formerly was. We deny it. We admit that it is more prominent, but we deny that we made it so. It was not we, but you, who discarded the old policy of the fathers. We resisted, and still resist, your innovation; and thence comes the greater prominence of the question. Would you have that question reduced to its former proportions? Go back to that old policy. What has been will be again, under the same conditions. If you would have the peace of the old times, readopt the precepts and policy of the old times. You charge that we stir up insurrections among your slaves. We deny it; and what is your proof? Harper’s Ferry! John Brown!! 7 John Brown was no Republican; and you have failed to implicate a single Republican in his Harper’s Ferry enterprise. If any member of our party is guilty in that matter, you know it or you do not know it. If you do know it, you are inexcusable for not designating the man and proving the fact. If you do not know it, you are inexcusable for asserting it, and especially for persisting in the assertion after you have tried and failed to make the proof. You need not be told that persisting in a charge which one does not know to be true, is simply malicious slander. Some of you admit that no Republican designedly aided or encouraged the Harper’s Ferry affair; but still insist that our doctrines and declarations necessarily lead to such results. We do not believe it. We know we hold to no doctrine, and make no declaration, which were not held to and made by “our fathers who framed the Government under which we live.” You never dealt fairly by us in relation to this affair. When it occurred,

6 7

See selection 6, n. 3. John Brown was an ardent abolitionist who, hoping to foment a slave revolt, led an ill-fated raid on the federal arsenal at Harpers Ferry, Virginia in 1859, for which he was hanged and became a martyr for the abolitionist cause.

103

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.017

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches some important State elections were near at hand, and you were in evident glee with the belief that, by charging the blame upon us, you could get an advantage of us in those elections. The elections came, and your expectations were not quite fulfilled. Every Republican man knew that, as to himself at least, your charge was a slander, and he was not much inclined by it to cast his vote in your favor. Republican doctrines and declarations are accompanied with a continual protest against any interference whatever with your slaves, or with you about your slaves. Surely, this does not encourage them to revolt. True, we do, in common with “our fathers, who framed the Government under which we live,” declare our belief that slavery is wrong; but the slaves do not hear us declare even this. For anything we say or do, the slaves would scarcely know there is a Republican party. I believe they would not, in fact, generally know it but for your misrepresentations of us, in their hearing. In your political contests among yourselves, each faction charges the other with sympathy with Black Republicanism; and then, to give point to the charge, defines Black Republicanism to simply be insurrection, blood and thunder among the slaves. Slave insurrections are no more common now than they were before the Republican party was organized. What induced the Southampton insurrection,8 twenty-eight years ago, in which, at least, three times as many lives were lost as at Harper’s Ferry? You can scarcely stretch your very elastic fancy to the conclusion that Southampton was “got up by Black Republicanism.” In the present state of things in the United States, I do not think a general, or even a very extensive slave insurrection, is possible. The indispensable concert of action cannot be attained. The slaves have no means of rapid communication; nor can incendiary freemen, black or white, supply it. The explosive materials are everywhere in parcels; but there neither are, nor can be supplied, the indispensable connecting trains. Much is said by Southern people about the affection of slaves for their masters and mistresses; and a part of it, at least, is true. A plot for an uprising could scarcely be devised and communicated to twenty individuals before some one of them, to save the life of a favorite master or mistress, would divulge it. This is the rule; and the slave revolution in 8

AL refers to the slave revolt led by Nat Turner in Virginia (August 21–24, 1831) in which some sixty white men, women and children were killed. The revolt was ferociously suppressed and Turner and other leaders were hanged.

104

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.017

Cooper Union Address Haiti was not an exception to it,9 but a case occurring under peculiar circumstances. The gunpowder plot of British history,10 though not connected with slaves, was more in point. In that case, only about twenty were admitted to the secret; and yet one of them, in his anxiety to save a friend, betrayed the plot to that friend, and, by consequence, averted the calamity. Occasional poisonings from the kitchen, and open or stealthy assassinations in the field, and local revolts extending to a score or so, will continue to occur as the natural results of slavery; but no general insurrection of slaves, as I think, can happen in this country for a long time. Whoever much fears, or much hopes for such an event, will be alike disappointed. In the language of Mr. Jefferson, uttered many years ago, It is still in our power to direct the process of emancipation, and deportation, peaceably, and in such slow degrees, as that the evil will wear off insensibly; and their places be, pari passu, filled up by free white laborers. If, on the contrary, it is left to force itself on, human nature must shudder at the prospect held up.11

Mr. Jefferson did not mean to say, nor do I, that the power of emancipation is in the Federal Government. He spoke of Virginia; and, as to the power of emancipation, I speak of the slaveholding States only. The Federal Government, however, as we insist, has the power of restraining the extension of the institution – the power to insure that a slave insurrection shall never occur on any American soil which is now free from slavery. John Brown’s effort was peculiar. It was not a slave insurrection. It was an attempt by white men to get up a revolt among slaves, in which the slaves refused to participate. In fact, it was so absurd that the slaves, with all their ignorance, saw plainly enough it could not succeed. That affair, in its philosophy, corresponds with the many attempts, related in history, at the assassination of kings and emperors. An enthusiast broods over the oppression of a people till he fancies himself commissioned by Heaven to liberate them. He ventures the attempt, which ends in little else than his

9

10

11

In 1791–1804 slaves in Haiti (then the French colony of Saint-Domingue) revolted and subsequently established the first republic ruled by citizens of African ancestry. The unsuccessful attempt by a cabal of British Catholics to assassinate King James I on November 5, 1605. AL quotes from Jefferson’s unfinished and posthumously published Autobiography.

105

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.017

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches own execution. Orsini’s attempt on Louis Napoleon,12 and John Brown’s attempt at Harper’s Ferry were, in their philosophy, precisely the same. The eagerness to cast blame on old England in the one case, and on New England in the other, does not disprove the sameness of the two things. And how much would it avail you, if you could, by the use of John Brown, Helper’s Book,13 and the like, break up the Republican organization? Human action can be modified to some extent, but human nature cannot be changed. There is a judgment and a feeling against slavery in this nation, which cast at least a million and a half of votes. You cannot destroy that judgment and feeling – that sentiment – by breaking up the political organization which rallies around it. You can scarcely scatter and disperse an army which has been formed into order in the face of your heaviest fire; but if you could, how much would you gain by forcing the sentiment which created it out of the peaceful channel of the ballot-box, into some other channel? What would that other channel probably be? Would the number of John Browns be lessened or enlarged by the operation? But you will break up the Union rather than submit to a denial of your Constitutional rights. That has a somewhat reckless sound; but it would be palliated, if not fully justified, were we proposing, by the mere force of numbers, to deprive you of some right, plainly written down in the Constitution. But we are proposing no such thing. When you make these declarations, you have a specific and wellunderstood allusion to an assumed Constitutional right of yours, to take slaves into the federal territories, and to hold them there as property. But no such right is specifically written in the Constitution. That instrument is literally silent about any such right. We, on the contrary, deny that such a right has any existence in the Constitution, even by implication. Your purpose, then, plainly stated, is, that you will destroy the Government, unless you be allowed to construe and enforce the Constitution as you please, on all points in dispute between you and us. You will rule or ruin in all events.

12

13

The militant Italian nationalist Felice Orsini (1819–58) made an unsuccessful attempt to assassinate the French emperor Napoleon III in 1858. Hinton R. Helper, The Impending Crisis of the South: How to Meet It (1857) argued that slavery was inimical to the economic interests of non-slaveholding white southerners.

106

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.017

Cooper Union Address This, plainly stated, is your language. Perhaps you will say the Supreme Court has decided the disputed Constitutional question in your favor. Not quite so. But waiving the lawyer’s distinction between dictum and decision, the Court have decided the question for you in a sort of way. The Court have substantially said, it is your Constitutional right to take slaves into the federal territories, and to hold them there as property.14 When I say the decision was made in a sort of way, I mean it was made in a divided Court, by a bare majority of the Judges, and they not quite agreeing with one another in the reasons for making it; that it is so made as that its avowed supporters disagree with one another about its meaning, and that it was mainly based upon a mistaken statement of fact – the statement in the opinion that “the right of property in a slave is distinctly and expressly affirmed in the Constitution.” An inspection of the Constitution will show that the right of property in a slave is not “distinctly and expressly affirmed” in it. Bear in mind, the Judges do not pledge their judicial opinion that such right is impliedly affirmed in the Constitution; but they pledge their veracity that it is “distinctly and expressly” affirmed there – “distinctly,” that is, not mingled with anything else – “expressly,” that is, in words meaning just that, without the aid of any inference, and susceptible of no other meaning. If they had only pledged their judicial opinion that such right is affirmed in the instrument by implication, it would be open to others to show that neither the word “slave” nor “slavery” is to be found in the Constitution, nor the word “property” even, in any connection with language alluding to the things slave, or slavery, and that wherever in that instrument the slave is alluded to, he is called a “person”, – and wherever his master’s legal right in relation to him is alluded to, it is spoken of as “service or labor which may be due,” – as a debt payable in service or labor. Also, it would be open to show, by contemporaneous history, that this mode of alluding to slaves and slavery, instead of speaking of them, was employed on purpose to exclude from the Constitution the idea that there could be property in man. To show all this, is easy and certain. When this obvious mistake of the Judges shall be brought to their notice, is it not reasonable to expect that they will withdraw the mistaken statement, and reconsider the conclusion based upon it? 14

AL refers to the Supreme Court’s decision in the 1857 Dred Scott case. See selection 6, n. 5.

107

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.017

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches And then it is to be remembered that “our fathers, who framed the Government under which we live” – the men who made the Constitution – decided this same Constitutional question in our favor, long ago – decided it without division among themselves, when making the decision; without division among themselves about the meaning of it after it was made, and, so far as any evidence is left, without basing it upon any mistaken statement of facts. Under all these circumstances, do you really feel yourselves justified to break up this Government, unless such a court decision as yours is, shall be at once submitted to as a conclusive and final rule of political action? But you will not abide the election of a Republican President! In that supposed event, you say, you will destroy the Union; and then, you say, the great crime of having destroyed it will be upon us! That is cool. A highwayman holds a pistol to my ear, and mutters through his teeth, “Stand and deliver, or I shall kill you, and then you will be a murderer!” To be sure, what the robber demanded of me – my money – was my own; and I had a clear right to keep it; but it was no more my own than my vote is my own; and the threat of death to me, to extort my money, and the threat of destruction to the Union, to extort my vote, can scarcely be distinguished in principle. A few words now to Republicans. It is exceedingly desirable that all parts of this great Confederacy shall be at peace, and in harmony, one with another. Let us Republicans do our part to have it so. Even though much provoked, let us do nothing through passion and ill temper. Even though the Southern people will not so much as listen to us, let us calmly consider their demands, and yield to them if, in our deliberate view of our duty, we possibly can. Judging by all they say and do, and by the subject and nature of their controversy with us, let us determine, if we can, what will satisfy them. Will they be satisfied if the Territories be unconditionally surrendered to them? We know they will not. In all their present complaints against us, the Territories are scarcely mentioned. Invasions and insurrections are the rage now. Will it satisfy them, if, in the future, we have nothing to do with invasions and insurrections? We know it will not. We so know, because we know we never had anything to do with invasions and insurrections; and yet this total abstaining does not exempt us from the charge and the denunciation. The question recurs, what will satisfy them? Simply this: We must not only let them alone, but we must, somehow, convince them that we do let 108

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.017

Cooper Union Address them alone. This, we know by experience, is no easy task. We have been so trying to convince them from the very beginning of our organization, but with no success. In all our platforms and speeches we have constantly protested our purpose to let them alone; but this has had no tendency to convince them. Alike unavailing to convince them, is the fact that they have never detected a man of us in any attempt to disturb them. These natural, and apparently adequate means all failing, what will convince them? This, and this only: Cease to call slavery wrong, and join them in calling it right. And this must be done thoroughly – done in acts as well as in words. Silence will not be tolerated – we must place ourselves avowedly with them. Senator Douglas’s new sedition law must be enacted and enforced,15 suppressing all declarations that slavery is wrong, whether made in politics, in presses, in pulpits, or in private. We must arrest and return their fugitive slaves with greedy pleasure. We must pull down our Free State constitutions. The whole atmosphere must be disinfected from all taint of opposition to slavery, before they will cease to believe that all their troubles proceed from us. I am quite aware they do not state their case precisely in this way. Most of them would probably say to us, “Let us alone, do nothing to us, and say what you please about slavery.” But we do let them alone – have never disturbed them – so that, after all, it is what we say, which dissatisfies them. They will continue to accuse us of doing, until we cease saying. I am also aware they have not, as yet, in terms, demanded the overthrow of our Free-State Constitutions. Yet those Constitutions declare the wrong of slavery, with more solemn emphasis, than do all other sayings against it; and when all these other sayings shall have been silenced, the overthrow of these Constitutions will be demanded, and nothing be left to resist the demand. It is nothing to the contrary, that they do not demand the whole of this just now. Demanding what they do, and for the reason they do, they can voluntarily stop nowhere short of this consummation. Holding, as they do, that slavery is morally right, and socially elevating, they cannot cease to demand a full national recognition of it, as a legal right, and a social blessing. Nor can we justifiably withhold this, on any ground save our conviction that slavery is wrong. If slavery is right, all words, acts, laws, and constitutions against it, are themselves wrong, and should be silenced, and swept away. If it is 15

Senator Douglas had recently proposed legislation to use the sedition law to prosecute and punish anyone writing and speaking against slavery. This was meant to bring a measure of calm by silencing abolitionist “agitators.”

109

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.017

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches right, we cannot justly object to its nationality – its universality; if it is wrong, they cannot justly insist upon its extension – its enlargement. All they ask, we could readily grant, if we thought slavery right; all we ask, they could as readily grant, if they thought it wrong. Their thinking it right, and our thinking it wrong, is the precise fact upon which depends the whole controversy. Thinking it right, as they do, they are not to blame for desiring its full recognition, as being right; but, thinking it wrong, as we do, can we yield to them? Can we cast our votes with their view, and against our own? In view of our moral, social, and political responsibilities, can we do this? Wrong as we think slavery is, we can yet afford to let it alone where it is, because that much is due to the necessity arising from its actual presence in the nation; but can we, while our votes will prevent it, allow it to spread into the National Territories, and to overrun us here in these Free States? If our sense of duty forbids this, then let us stand by our duty, fearlessly and effectively. Let us be diverted by none of those sophistical contrivances wherewith we are so industriously plied and belabored – contrivances such as groping for some middle ground between the right and the wrong, vain as the search for a man who should be neither a living man nor a dead man – such as a policy of “don’t care” on a question about which all true men do care – such as Union appeals beseeching true Union men to yield to Disunionists, reversing the divine rule, and calling, not the sinners, but the righteous to repentance – such as invocations to Washington, imploring men to unsay what Washington said, and undo what Washington did. Neither let us be slandered from our duty by false accusations against us, nor frightened from it by menaces of destruction to the Government nor of dungeons to ourselves. Let us have faith that rig ht makes mig ht, and in that faith, let us, to the end, dare to do our duty as we understand it. February 27, 1860

110

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.017

12

Speech at Indianapolis, Indiana

En route to Washington, DC to take the presidential oath of office, Presidentelect Lincoln spoke briefly to an audience in Indianapolis about the threat of several Southern states to secede from the Union. Lincoln denied that they had the right to do this.

It is not possible, in my journey to the national capital, to address assemblies like this which may do me the great honor to meet me as you have done, but very briefly. I should be entirely worn out if I were to attempt it. I appear before you now to thank you for this very magnificent welcome which you have given me, and still more for the very generous support which your State recently gave to the political cause of the whole country, and the whole world. [Applause.] Solomon has said, that there is a time to keep silence. [Renewed and deafening applause.] * * * * * We know certain that they mean the same thing while using the same words now, and it perhaps would be as well if they would keep silence. The words “coercion” and “invasion” are in great use about these days. Suppose we were simply to try if we can, and ascertain what, is the meaning of these words. Let us get, if we can, the exact definitions of these words – not from dictionaries, but from the men who constantly repeat them – what things they mean to express by the words. What, then, is “coercion”? What is “invasion”? Would the marching of an army into South Carolina, for instance, without the consent of her people, and in hostility against them, be coercion or invasion? I very frankly say, I think it would be invasion, and it would be coercion too, if the people of that country were forced to submit. But if the Government, for instance, but simply insists upon holding its own forts, or retaking those forts which belong to it, [cheers] or the 111

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:27, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.018

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches enforcement of the laws of the United States in the collection of duties upon foreign importations, [renewed cheers] or even the withdrawal of the mails from those portions of the country where the mails themselves are habitually violated; would any or all of these things be coercion? Do the lovers of the Union contend that they will resist coercion or invasion of any State, understanding that any or all of these would be coercing or invading a State? If they do, then it occurs to me that the means for the preservation of the Union they so greatly love, in their own estimation, is of a very thin and airy character. [Applause] If sick, they would consider the little pills of the homoeopathist as already too large for them to swallow. In their view, the Union, as a family relation, would not be anything like a regular marriage at all, but only as a sort of free-love arrangement, [laughter,] to be maintained on what that sect calls passionate attraction. [Continued laughter.] But, my friends, enough of this. What is the particular sacredness of a State? I speak not of that position which is given to a State in and by the Constitution of the United States, for that all of us agree to – we abide by; but that position assumed, that a State can carry with it out of the Union that which it holds in sacredness by virtue of its connection with the Union. I am speaking of that assumed right of a State, as a primary principle, that the Constitution should rule all that is less than itself, and ruin all that is bigger than itself. [Laughter] But, I ask, wherein does consist that right? If a State, in one instance, and a county in another, should be equal in extent of territory, and equal in the number of people, wherein is that State any better than the county? Can a change of name change the right? By what principle of original right is it that one-fiftieth or one-ninetieth of a great nation, by calling themselves a State, have the right to break up and ruin that nation as a matter of original principle? Now, I ask the question – I am not deciding anything [laughter,] and with the request that you will think somewhat upon that subject and decide for yourselves, if you choose, when you get ready – where is the mysterious, original right, from principle, for a certain district of country with inhabitants, by merely being called a State, to play tyrant over all its own citizens, and deny the authority of everything greater than itself? [Laughter] I say I am deciding nothing, but simply giving something for you to reflect upon; and, with having said this much, and having declared, in the start, that I will make no long speeches, I thank you again for this magnificent welcome, and bid you an affectionate farewell. [Cheers] February 11, 1861

112

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:27, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.018

13

Speech at Independence Hall, Philadelphia, Pennsylvania

On his way to Washington, DC, President-elect Lincoln spoke at Independence Hall in Philadelphia, where the Declaration of Independence had been signed eighty-five years earlier. An ardent admirer of Jefferson and the Declaration, Lincoln said, “I have never had a feeling politically that did not spring from the sentiments embodied in the Declaration of Independence.” Mr. Cuyler: I am filled with deep emotion at finding myself standing here in the place where were collected together the wisdom, the patriotism, the devotion to principle, from which sprang the institutions under which we live. You have kindly suggested to me that in my hands is the task of restoring peace to our distracted country. I can say in return, sir, that all the political sentiments I entertain have been drawn, so far as I have been able to draw them, from the sentiments which originated, and were given to the world from this hall in which we stand. I have never had a feeling politically that did not spring from the sentiments embodied in the Declaration of Independence. (Great cheering) I have often pondered over the dangers which were incurred by the men who assembled here and adopted that Declaration of Independence – I have pondered over the toils that were endured by the officers and soldiers of the army, who achieved that Independence. (Applause) I have often inquired of myself, what great principle or idea it was that kept this Confederacy1 so long together. It was not the mere matter of the separation of the colonies from 1

The United States.

113

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:29, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.019

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches the mother land; but something in that Declaration giving liberty, not alone to the people of this country, but hope to the world for all future time. (Great applause) It was that which gave promise that in due time the weights should be lifted from the shoulders of all men, and that all should have an equal chance. (Cheers) This is the sentiment embodied in that Declaration of Independence. Now, my friends, can this country be saved upon that basis? If it can, I will consider myself one of the happiest men in the world if I can help to save it. If it can’t be saved upon that principle, it will be truly awful. But, if this country cannot be saved without giving up that principle – I was about to say I would rather be assassinated on this spot than to surrender it. (Applause) Now, in my view of the present aspect of affairs, there is no need of bloodshed and war. There is no necessity for it. I am not in favor of such a course, and I may say in advance, there will be no blood shed unless it be forced upon the Government. The Government will not use force unless force is used against it. (Prolonged applause and cries of “That’s the proper sentiment.”) My friends, this is a wholly unprepared speech. I did not expect to be called upon to say a word when I came here – I supposed I was merely to do something towards raising a flag. I may, therefore, have said something indiscreet, (cries of “no, no”) but I have said nothing but what I am willing to live by, and, in the pleasure of Almighty God, die by. February 22, 1861

114

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:29, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.019

14

First Inaugural Address

By the time Lincoln took the oath of office on March 4, 1861 seven Southern states had already seceded from the Union (their number would soon swell to eleven). In his First Inaugural Address Lincoln attempted to soothe Southern anger without abandoning his firm commitment to the unbreakable solidarity of the Union. As president he had sworn to uphold the Constitution, and that document, on Lincoln’s reading, forbids any state to secede from the Union of states. Fellow citizens of the United States: In compliance with a custom as old as the government itself, I appear before you to address you briefly, and to take, in your presence, the oath prescribed by the Constitution of the United States, to be taken by the President “before he enters on the execution of his office.” I do not consider it necessary, at present, for me to discuss those matters of administration about which there is no special anxiety, or excitement. Apprehension seems to exist among the people of the Southern States, that by the accession of a Republican Administration, their property, and their peace, and personal security, are to be endangered. There has never been any reasonable cause for such apprehension. Indeed, the most ample evidence to the contrary has all the while existed, and been open to their inspection. It is found in nearly all the published speeches of him who now addresses you. I do but quote from one of those speeches when I declare that “I have no purpose, directly or indirectly, to interfere with the institution of slavery in the States where it exists. I believe I have no lawful right to do so, and I have no inclination to do so.” Those who nominated and elected me did so with full knowledge that I had made this, and many 115

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:15, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.020

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches similar declarations, and had never recanted them. And more than this, they placed in the platform, for my acceptance, and as a law to themselves, and to me, the clear and emphatic resolution which I now read: Resolved, That the maintenance inviolate of the rights of the States, and especially the right of each State to order and control its own domestic institutions according to its own judgment exclusively, is essential to that balance of power on which the perfection and endurance of our political fabric depend; and we denounce the lawless invasion by armed force of the soil of any State or Territory, no matter under what pretext, as among the gravest of crimes.

I now reiterate these sentiments: and in doing so, I only press upon the public attention the most conclusive evidence of which the case is susceptible, that the property, peace and security of no section are to be in anywise endangered by the now incoming Administration. I add too, that all the protection which, consistently with the Constitution and the laws, can be given, will be cheerfully given to all the States when lawfully demanded, for whatever cause – as cheerfully to one section, as to another. There is much controversy about the delivering up of fugitives from service or labor. The clause I now read is as plainly written in the Constitution as any other of its provisions: No person held to service or labor in one State, under the laws thereof, escaping into another, shall, in consequence of any law or regulation therein, be discharged from such service or labor, but shall be delivered up on claim of the party to whom such service or labor may be due.1

It is scarcely questioned that this provision was intended by those who made it, for the reclaiming of what we call fugitive slaves; and the intention of the law-giver is the law. All members of Congress swear their support to the whole Constitution – to this provision as much as to any other. To the proposition, then, that slaves whose cases come within the terms of this clause, “shall be delivered up,” their oaths are unanimous. Now, if they would make the effort in good temper, could they not, with nearly equal unanimity, frame and pass a law, by means of which to keep good that unanimous oath?

1

US Constitution, Article IV, section 2.

116

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:15, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.020

First Inaugural Address There is some difference of opinion whether this clause should be enforced by national or by state authority; but surely that difference is not a very material one. If the slave is to be surrendered, it can be of but little consequence to him, or to others, by which authority it is done. And should any one, in any case, be content that his oath shall go unkept, on a merely unsubstantial controversy as to how it shall be kept? Again, in any law upon this subject, ought not all the safeguards of liberty known in civilized and humane jurisprudence to be introduced, so that a free man be not, in any case, surrendered as a slave? And might it not be well, at the same time, to provide by law for the enforcement of that clause in the Constitution which guaranties that “The citizens of each State shall be entitled to all privileges and immunities of citizens in the several States?” 2 I take the official oath to-day, with no mental reservations, and with no purpose to construe the Constitution or laws, by any hypercritical rules. And while I do not choose now to specify particular acts of Congress as proper to be enforced, I do suggest, that it will be much safer for all, both in official and private stations, to conform to, and abide by, all those acts which stand unrepealed, than to violate any of them, trusting to find impunity in having them held to be unconstitutional. It is seventy-two years since the first inauguration of a President under our national Constitution. During that period fifteen different and greatly distinguished citizens, have, in succession, administered the executive branch of the government. They have conducted it through many perils; and, generally, with great success. Yet, with all this scope for precedent, I now enter upon the same task for the brief constitutional terms of four years, under great and peculiar difficulty. A disruption of the Federal Union heretofore only menaced, is now formidably attempted. I hold, that in contemplation of universal law, and of the Constitution, the Union of these States is perpetual. Perpetuity is implied, if not expressed, in the fundamental law of all national governments. It is safe to assert that no government proper, ever had a provision in its organic law for its own termination. Continue to execute all the express provisions of our national Constitution, and the Union will endure forever – it being impossible to destroy it, except by some action not provided for in the instrument itself.

2

US Constitution, Article IV, section 2.

117

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:15, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.020

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches Again, if the United States be not a government proper, but an association of States in the nature of contract merely, can it, as a contract, be peaceably unmade, by less than all the parties who made it? One party to a contract may violate – break it, so to speak; but does it not require all to lawfully rescind it? Descending from these general principles, we find the proposition that, in legal contemplation, the Union is perpetual, confirmed by the history of the Union itself. The Union is much older than the Constitution. It was formed in fact, by the Articles of Association in 1774. It was matured and continued by the Declaration of Independence in 1776. It was further matured and the faith of all the then thirteen States expressly plighted and engaged that it should be perpetual, by the Articles of Confederation in 1778. And finally, in 1787, one of the declared objects for ordaining and establishing the Constitution, was “to form a more perfect union.” But if destruction of the Union, by one, or by a part only, of the States, be lawfully possible, the Union is less perfect than before the Constitution, having lost the vital element of perpetuity. It follows from these views that no State, upon its own mere motion, can lawfully get out of the Union – that resolves and ordinances to that effect are legally void; and that acts of violence, within any State or States, against the authority of the United States, are insurrectionary or revolutionary, according to circumstances. I therefore consider that, in view of the Constitution and the laws, the Union is unbroken; and, to the extent of my ability, I shall take care, as the Constitution itself expressly enjoins upon me, that the laws of the Union be faithfully executed in all the States. Doing this I deem to be only a simple duty on my part; and I shall perform it, so far as practicable, unless my rightful masters, the American people, shall withhold the requisite means, or, in some authoritative manner, direct the contrary. I trust this will not be regarded as a menace, but only as the declared purpose of the Union that it will constitutionally defend, and maintain itself. In doing this there needs to be no bloodshed or violence; and there shall be none, unless it be forced upon the national authority. The power confided to me, will be used to hold, occupy, and possess the property, and places belonging to the government, and to collect the duties and imposts; but beyond what may be necessary for these objects, there will be no invasion – no using of force against, or among the people anywhere. Where hostility to the United States, in any interior locality, shall be so great and so universal, as to prevent competent resident citizens from 118

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:15, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.020

First Inaugural Address holding the Federal offices, there will be no attempt to force obnoxious strangers among the people for that object. While the strict legal right may exist in the government to enforce the exercise of these offices, the attempt to do so would be so irritating, and so nearly impracticable with all, that I deem it better to forego, for the time, the uses of such offices. The mails, unless repelled, will continue to be furnished in all parts of the Union. So far as possible, the people everywhere shall have that sense of perfect security which is most favorable to calm thought and reflection. The course here indicated will be followed, unless current events, and experience, shall show a modification, or change, to be proper; and in every case and exigency, my best discretion will be exercised, according to circumstances actually existing, and with a view and a hope of a peaceful solution of the national troubles, and the restoration of fraternal sympathies and affections. That there are persons in one section or another who seek to destroy the Union at all events, and are glad of any pretext to do it, I will neither affirm or deny; but if there be such, I need address no word to them. To those, however, who really love the Union, may I not speak? Before entering upon so grave a matter as the destruction of our national fabric, with all its benefits, its memories, and its hopes, would it not be wise to ascertain precisely why we do it? Will you hazard so desperate a step, while there is any possibility that any portion of the ills you fly from, have no real existence? Will you, while the certain ills you fly to, are greater than all the real ones you fly from? Will you risk the commission of so fearful a mistake? All profess to be content in the Union, if all constitutional rights can be maintained. Is it true, then, that any right, plainly written in the Constitution, has been denied? I think not. Happily the human mind is so constituted, that no party can reach to the audacity of doing this. Think, if you can, of a single instance in which a plainly written provision of the Constitution has ever been denied. If, by the mere force of numbers, a majority should deprive a minority of any clearly written constitutional right, it might, in a moral point of view, justify revolution – certainly would, if such right were a vital one. But such is not our case. All the vital rights of minorities, and of individuals, are so plainly assured to them, by affirmations and negations, guaranties and prohibitions, in the Constitution, that controversies never arise concerning them. But no organic law can ever be framed with a provision specifically applicable to every question which may occur in practical administration. No 119

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:15, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.020

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches foresight can anticipate, nor any document of reasonable length contain express provisions for all possible questions. Shall fugitives from labor be surrendered by national or by State authority? The Constitution does not expressly say. May Congress prohibit slavery in the territories? The Constitution does not expressly say. Must Congress protect slavery in the territories? The Constitution does not expressly say. From questions of this class spring all our constitutional controversies, and we divide upon them into majorities and minorities. If the minority will not acquiesce, the majority must, or the government must cease. There is no other alternative; for continuing the government, is acquiescence on one side or the other. If a minority, in such case, will secede rather than acquiesce, they make a precedent which, in turn, will divide and ruin them; for a minority of their own will secede from them, whenever a majority refuses to be controlled by such minority. For instance, why may not any portion of a new confederacy, a year or two hence, arbitrarily secede again, precisely as portions of the present Union now claim to secede from it? All who cherish disunion sentiments, are now being educated to the exact temper of doing this. Is there such perfect identity of interests among the States to compose a new Union, as to produce harmony only, and prevent renewed secession? Plainly, the central idea of secession, is the essence of anarchy. A majority, held in restraint by constitutional checks, and limitations, and always changing easily, with deliberate changes of popular opinions and sentiments, is the only true sovereign of a free people. Whoever rejects it, does, of necessity, fly to anarchy or to despotism. Unanimity is impossible; the rule of a minority, as a permanent arrangement, is wholly inadmissible; so that, rejecting the majority principle, anarchy, or despotism in some form, is all that is left. I do not forget the position assumed by some, that constitutional questions are to be decided by the Supreme Court; nor do I deny that such decisions must be binding in any case, upon the parties to a suit, as to the object of that suit, while they are also entitled to very high respect and consideration, in all parallel cases, by all other departments of the government. And while it is obviously possible that such decision may be erroneous in any given case, still the evil effect following it, being limited to that particular case, with the chance that it may be over-ruled, and never become a precedent for other cases, can better be borne than could the evils of a different practice. At the same time the candid citizen must confess that if the policy of the government, upon vital questions, 120

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:15, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.020

First Inaugural Address affecting the whole people, is to be irrevocably fixed by decisions of the Supreme Court, the instant they are made, in ordinary litigation between parties, in personal actions, the people will have ceased to be their own rulers, having, to that extent, practically resigned their government, into the hands of that eminent tribunal. Nor is there, in this view, any assault upon the court, or the judges. It is a duty, from which they may not shrink, to decide cases properly brought before them; and it is no fault of theirs, if others seek to turn their decisions to political purposes. One section of our country believes slavery is right, and ought to be extended, while the other believes it is wrong, and ought not to be extended. This is the only substantial dispute. The fugitive slave clause of the Constitution,3 and the law for the suppression of the foreign slave trade, 4 are each as well enforced, perhaps, as any law can ever be in a community where the moral sense of the people imperfectly supports the law itself. The great body of the people abide by the dry legal obligation in both cases, and a few break over in each. This, I think, cannot be perfectly cured; and it would be worse in both cases after the separation of the sections, than before. The foreign slave trade, now imperfectly suppressed, would be ultimately revived without restriction, in one section; while fugitive slaves, now only partially surrendered, would not be surrendered at all, by the other. Physically speaking, we cannot separate. We cannot remove our respective sections from each other, nor build an impassable wall between them. A husband and wife may be divorced, and go out of the presence, and beyond the reach of each other; but the different parts of our country cannot do this. They cannot but remain face to face; and intercourse, either amicable or hostile, must continue between them. Is it possible then to make that intercourse more advantageous, or more satisfactory, after separation than before? Can aliens make treaties easier than friends can make laws? Can treaties be more faithfully enforced between aliens, than laws can among friends? Suppose you go to war, you cannot fight always; and when, after much loss on both sides, and no gain on either, you cease fighting, the identical old questions, as to terms of intercourse, are again upon you.

3 4

US Constitution, Article IV, section 2. The US Constitution (Article I, section 9) stipulated that Congress might not outlaw the trade in foreign slaves before 1808. Congress passed legislation outlawing the trade, taking effect on January 1, 1808. In 1820 it made the importing of slaves a capital offense.

121

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:15, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.020

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches This country, with its institutions, belongs to the people who inhabit it. Whenever they shall grow weary of the existing government, they can exercise their constitutional right of amending it, or their revolutionary right to dismember, or overthrow it. I cannot be ignorant of the fact that many worthy, and patriotic citizens are desirous of having the national constitution amended. While I make no recommendation of amendments, I fully recognize the rightful authority of the people over the whole subject, to be exercised in either of the modes prescribed in the instrument itself; and I should, under existing circumstances, favor, rather than oppose, a fair opportunity being afforded the people to act upon it. I will venture to add that, to me, the convention mode seems preferable, in that it allows amendments to originate with the people themselves, instead of only permitting them to take, or reject, propositions, originated by others, not especially chosen for the purpose, and which might not be precisely such, as they would wish to either accept or refuse. I understand a proposed amendment to the Constitution – which amendment, however, I have not seen – has passed Congress, to the effect that the federal government, shall never interfere with the domestic institutions of the States, including that of persons held to service. To avoid misconstruction of what I have said, I depart from my purpose not to speak of particular amendments, so far as to say that, holding such a provision to now be implied constitutional law, I have no objection to its being made express, and irrevocable. The Chief Magistrate5 derives all his authority from the people, and they have conferred none upon him to fix terms for the separation of the States. The people themselves can do this also if they choose; but the executive, as such, has nothing to do with it. His duty is to administer the present government, as it came to his hands, and to transmit it, unimpaired by him, to his successor. Why should there not be a patient confidence in the ultimate justice of the people? Is there any better, or equal hope, in the world? In our present differences, is either party without faith of being in the right? If the Almighty Ruler of nations, with his eternal truth and justice, be on your side of the North, or on yours of the South, that truth, and that justice, will surely prevail, by the judgment of this great tribunal, the American people.

5

The President of the United States.

122

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:15, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.020

First Inaugural Address By the frame of the government under which we live, this same people have wisely given their public servants but little power for mischief; and have, with equal wisdom, provided for the return of that little to their own hands at very short intervals. While the people retain their virtue, and vigilance, no administration, by any extreme of wickedness or folly, can very seriously injure the government, in the short space of four years. My countrymen, one and all, think calmly and well, upon this whole subject. Nothing valuable can be lost by taking time. If there be an object to hurry any of you, in hot haste, to a step which you would never take deliberately, that object will be frustrated by taking time; but no good object can be frustrated by it. Such of you as are now dissatisfied, still have the old Constitution unimpaired, and, on the sensitive point, the laws of your own framing under it; while the new administration will have no immediate power, if it would, to change either. If it were admitted that you who are dissatisfied, hold the right side in the dispute, there still is no single good reason for precipitate action. Intelligence, patriotism, Christianity, and a firm reliance on Him, who has never yet forsaken this favored land, are still competent to adjust, in the best way, all our present difficulty. In your hands, my dissatisfied fellow countrymen, and not in mine, is the momentous issue of civil war. The government will not assail you. You can have no conflict, without being yourselves the aggressors. You have no oath registered in Heaven to destroy the government, while I shall have the most solemn one to “preserve, protect and defend” it. I am loth to close. We are not enemies, but friends. We must not be enemies. Though passion may have strained, it must not break our bonds of affection. The mystic chords of memory, stretching from every battle-field, and patriot grave, to every living heart and hearthstone, all over this broad land, will yet swell the chorus of the Union, when again touched, as surely they will be, by the better angels of our nature. March 4, 1861

123

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:15, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.020

15

Message to Congress in Special Session

Five weeks after assuming the presidency Lincoln learned that the federal garrison at Fort Sumter in South Carolina had been shelled by Confederate batteries. This attack was both figuratively and literally the opening salvo of the Civil War. In this special message to Congress Lincoln traces the history of the conflict, and outlines and justifies his proposals for ending it. Fellow-citizens of the Senate and House of Representatives: Having been convened on an extraordinary occasion, as authorized by the Constitution, your attention is not called to any ordinary subject of legislation. At the beginning of the present Presidential term, four months ago, the functions of the Federal Government were found to be generally suspended within the several States of South Carolina, Georgia, Alabama, Mississippi, Louisiana, and Florida, excepting only those of the Post Office Department. Within these States, all the Forts, Arsenals, Dock-yards, Customhouses, and the like, including the movable and stationary property in, and about them, had been seized, and were held in open hostility to this Government, excepting only Forts Pickens, Taylor, and Jefferson, on, and near the Florida coast, and Fort Sumter, in Charleston harbor, South Carolina. The Forts thus seized had been put in improved condition; new ones had been built; and armed forces had been organized, and were organizing, all avowedly with the same hostile purpose. The Forts remaining in the possession of the Federal government, in, and near, these States, were either besieged or menaced by warlike preparations; and especially Fort Sumter was nearly surrounded by 124

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.021

Message to Congress in Special Session well-protected hostile batteries, with guns equal in quality to the best of its own, and outnumbering the latter as perhaps ten to one. A disproportionate share, of the Federal muskets and rifles, had somehow found their way into these States, and had been seized, to be used against the government. Accumulations of the public revenue, lying within them, had been seized for the same object. The Navy was scattered in distant seas; leaving but a very small part of it within the immediate reach of the government. Officers of the Federal Army and Navy, had resigned in great numbers; and, of those resigning, a large proportion had taken up arms against the government. Simultaneously, and in connection, with all this, the purpose to sever the Federal Union, was openly avowed. In accordance with this purpose, an ordinance had been adopted in each of these States, declaring the States, respectively, to be separated from the National Union. A formula for instituting a combined government of these states had been promulgated; and this illegal organization, in the character of confederate States was already invoking recognition, aid, and intervention, from Foreign Powers. Finding this condition of things, and believing it to be an imperative duty upon the incoming Executive, to prevent, if possible, the consummation of such attempt to destroy the Federal Union, a choice of means to that end became indispensable. This choice was made; and was declared in the Inaugural address. The policy chosen looked to the exhaustion of all peaceful measures, before a resort to any stronger ones. It sought only to hold the public places and property, not already wrested from the Government, and to collect the revenue; relying for the rest, on time, discussion, and the ballot-box. It promised a continuance of the mails, at government expense, to the very people who were resisting the government; and it gave repeated pledges against any disturbance to any of the people, or any of their rights. Of all that which a president might constitutionally, and justifiably, do in such a case, everything was foreborne, without which, it was believed possible to keep the government on foot. On the 5th of March (the present incumbent’s first full day in office), a letter of Major Anderson, commanding at Fort Sumter, written on the 28th of February, and received at the War Department on the 4th of March, was, by that Department, placed in his hands. This letter expressed the professional opinion of the writer, that reinforcements could not be thrown into that Fort within the time for his relief, rendered necessary by the limited supply of provisions, and with a view of holding possession of the same, 125

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.021

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches with a force of less than twenty thousand good, and well-disciplined men. This opinion was concurred in by all the officers of his command; and their memoranda on the subject, were made enclosures of Major Anderson’s letter. The whole was immediately laid before Lieutenant General Scott, who at once concurred with Major Anderson in opinion. On reflection, however, he took full time, consulting with other officers, both of the Army and the Navy; and, at the end of four days, came reluctantly, but decidedly, to the same conclusion as before. He also stated at the same time that no such sufficient force was then at the control of the Government, or could be raised, and brought to the ground, within the time when the provisions in the Fort would be exhausted. In a purely military point of view, this reduced the duty of the administration, in the case, to the mere matter of getting the garrison safely out of the Fort. It was believed, however, that to so abandon that position, under the circumstances, would be utterly ruinous; that the necessity under which it was to be done, would not be fully understood – that, by many, it would be construed as a part of a voluntary policy – that, at home, it would discourage the friends of the Union, embolden its adversaries, and go far to insure to the latter, a recognition abroad – that, in fact, it would be our national destruction consummated. This could not be allowed. Starvation was not yet upon the garrison; and ere it would be reached, Fort Pickens might be reinforced. This last, would be a clear indication of policy, and would better enable the country to accept the evacuation of Fort Sumter, as a military necessity. An order was at once directed to be sent for the landing of the troops from the Steamship Brooklyn, into Fort Pickens. This order could not go by land, but must take the longer, and slower route by sea. The first return news from the order was received just one week before the fall of Fort Sumter. The news itself was, that the officer commanding the Sabine, to which vessel the troops had been transferred from the Brooklyn, acting upon some armistice of the late administration (and of the existence of which, the present administration, up to the time the order was despatched, had only too vague and uncertain rumors, to fix attention), had refused to land the troops. To now reinforce Fort Pickens, before a crisis would be reached at Fort Sumter was impossible – rendered so by the near-exhaustion of provisions in the latter-named Fort. In precaution against such a conjuncture, the government had, a few days before, commenced preparing an expedition, as well adapted as might be, to relieve Fort Sumter, which expedition was intended to be ultimately used, or not, according to circumstances. The 126

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.021

Message to Congress in Special Session strongest anticipated case, for using it, was now presented; and it was resolved to send it forward. As had been intended, in this contingency, it was also resolved to notify the Governor of South Carolina, that he might expect an attempt would be made to provision the Fort; and that, if the attempt should not be resisted, there would be no effort to throw in men, arms, or ammunition, without further notice, or in case of an attack upon the Fort. This notice was accordingly given; whereupon the Fort was attacked, and bombarded to its fall, without even awaiting the arrival of the provisioning expedition. It is thus seen that the assault upon, and reduction of, Fort Sumter, was, in no sense, a matter of self-defence on the part of the assailants. They well knew that the garrison in the Fort could, by no possibility, commit aggression upon them. They knew – they were expressly notified – that the giving of bread to the few brave and hungry men of the garrison, was all which would on that occasion be attempted, unless themselves, by resisting so much, should provoke more. They knew that this Government desired to keep the garrison in the Fort, not to assail them, but merely to maintain visible possession, and thus to preserve the Union from actual, and immediate dissolution – trusting, as hereinbefore stated, to time, discussion, and the ballot-box, for final adjustment; and they assailed, and reduced the Fort, for precisely the reverse object – to drive out the visible authority of the Federal Union, and thus force it to immediate dissolution. That this was their object, the Executive well understood; and having said to them in the inaugural address, “You can have no conflict without being yourselves the aggressors,” he took pains, not only to keep this declaration good, but also to keep the case so free from the power of ingenious sophistry, as that the world should not be able to misunderstand it. By the affair at Fort Sumter, with its surrounding circumstances, that point was reached. Then, and thereby, the assailants of the Government began the conflict of arms, without a gun in sight, or in expectancy, to return their fire, save only the few in the Fort, sent to that harbor, years before, for their own protection, and still ready to give that protection, in whatever was lawful. In this act, discarding all else, they have forced upon the country, the distinct issue: “Immediate dissolution, or blood.” And this issue embraces more than the fate of these United States. It presents to the whole family of man, the question, whether a constitutional republic, or a democracy – a government of the people, by the same people – can, or cannot, maintain its territorial integrity, against its own 127

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.021

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches domestic foes. It presents the question, whether discontented individuals, too few in numbers to control administration, according to organic law, in any case, can always, upon the pretences made in this case, or on any other pretences, or arbitrarily, without any pretence, break up their Government, and thus practically put an end to free government upon the earth. It forces us to ask: “Is there, in all republics, this inherent, and fatal weakness?” “Must a government, of necessity, be too strong for the liberties of its own people, or too weak to maintain its own existence?” So viewing the issue, no choice was left but to call out the war power of the Government; and so to resist force, employed for its destruction, by force, for its preservation. The call was made; and the response of the country was most gratifying; surpassing, in unanimity and spirit, the most sanguine expectation. Yet none of the States commonly called Slave-states, except Delaware, gave a Regiment through regular State organization. A few regiments have been organized within some others of those states, by individual enterprise, and received into the government service. Of course the seceded States, so called, (and to which Texas had been joined about the time of the inauguration), gave no troops to the cause of the Union. The border States,1 so called, were not uniform in their actions; some of them being almost for the Union, while in others – as Virginia, North Carolina, Tennessee, and Arkansas – the Union sentiment was nearly repressed, and silenced. The course taken in Virginia was the most remarkable – perhaps the most important. A convention, elected by the people of that State, to consider this very question of disrupting the Federal Union, was in session at the capital of Virginia when Fort Sumter fell. To this body the people had chosen a large majority of professed Union men. Almost immediately after the fall of Sumter, many members of that majority went over to the original disunion minority, and, with them, adopted an ordinance for withdrawing the State from the Union. Whether this change was wrought by their great approval of the assault upon Sumter, or their great resentment at the government’s resistance to that assault, is not definitely known. Although they submitted the ordinance, for ratification, to a vote of the people, to be taken on a day then somewhat more than a month distant, the convention, and the Legislature, (which was also in session at the same time and place) 1

The border states – Delaware, Maryland, Kentucky, and Missouri – were slave states that did not secede from the Union and join the Confederacy.

128

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.021

Message to Congress in Special Session with leading men of the State, not members of either, immediately commenced acting, as if the State were already out of the Union. They pushed military preparations vigorously forward all over the state. They seized the United States Armory at Harper’s Ferry, and the Navy-yard at Gosport, near Norfolk. They received – perhaps invited – into their state, large bodies of troops, with their warlike appointments, from the socalled seceded States. They formally entered into a treaty of temporary alliance, and co-operation with the so-called “Confederate States,” and sent members to their Congress at Montgomery. And, finally, they permitted the insurrectionary government to be transferred to their capital at Richmond. The people of Virginia have thus allowed this giant insurrection to make its nest within her borders; and this government has no choice left but to deal with it, where it finds it. And it has the less regret, as the loyal citizens have, in due form, claimed its protection. Those loyal citizens, this government is bound to recognize, and protect, as being Virginia. In the border States, so called – in fact, the middle states – there are those who favor a policy which they call “armed neutrality” – that is, an arming of those states to prevent the Union forces passing one way, or the disunion, the other, over their soil. This would be disunion completed. Figuratively speaking, it would be the building of an impassable wall along the line of separation. And yet, not quite an impassable one; for, under the guise of neutrality, it would tie the hands of the Union men, and freely pass supplies from among them, to the insurrectionists, which it could not do as an open enemy. At a stroke, it would take all the trouble off the hands of secession, except only what proceeds from the external blockade. It would do for the disunionists that which, of all things, they most desire – feed them well, and give them disunion without a struggle of their own. It recognizes no fidelity to the Constitution, no obligation to maintain the Union; and while very many who have favored it are, doubtless, loyal citizens, it is, nevertheless, treason in effect. Recurring to the action of the government, it may be stated that, at first, a call was made for seventy-five thousand militia; and rapidly following this, a proclamation was issued for closing the ports of the insurrectionary districts by proceedings in the nature of Blockade. So far all was believed to be strictly legal. At this point the insurrectionists announced their purpose to enter upon the practice of privateering. Other calls were made for volunteers, to serve three years, unless sooner discharged; and also for large additions to the regular Army and 129

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.021

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches Navy. These measures, whether strictly legal or not, were ventured upon, under what appeared to be a popular demand, and a public necessity; trusting, then as now, that Congress would readily ratify them. It is believed that nothing has been done beyond the constitutional competency of Congress. Soon after the first call for militia, it was considered a duty to authorize the Commanding General, in proper cases, according to his discretion, to suspend the privilege of the writ of habeas corpus; or, in other words, to arrest, and detain, without resort to the ordinary processes and forms of law, such individuals as he might deem dangerous to the public safety. This authority has purposely been exercised but very sparingly. Nevertheless, the legality and propriety of what has been done under it, are questioned; and the attention of the country has been called to the proposition that one who is sworn to “take care that the laws be faithfully executed,” should not himself violate them. Of course some consideration was given to the questions of power, and propriety, before this matter was acted upon. The whole of the laws which were required to be faithfully executed, were being resisted, and failing of execution, in nearly one-third of the States. Must they be allowed to finally fail of execution, even had it been perfectly clear, that by the use of the means necessary to their execution, some single law, made in such extreme tenderness of the citizen’s liberty, that practically, it relieves more of the guilty, than of the innocent, should, to a very limited extent, be violated? To state the question more directly, are all the laws, but one, to go unexecuted, and the government itself go to pieces, lest that one be violated? Even in such a case, would not the official oath be broken, if the government should be overthrown, when it was believed that disregarding the single law, would tend to preserve it? But it was not believed that this question was presented. It was not believed that any law was violated. The provision of the Constitution that “The privilege of the writ of habeas corpus, shall not be suspended unless when, in cases of, rebellion or invasion, the public safety may require it,” 2 is equivalent to a provision – is a provision – that such privilege may be suspended when, in cases of rebellion, or invasion, the public safety does require it. It was decided that we have a case of rebellion, and that the public safety does require the qualified suspension of the privilege of the writ which was authorized to be made. Now it 2

US Constitution, Article I, section 9. See selections 20, 24, and 25.

130

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.021

Message to Congress in Special Session is insisted that Congress, and not the Executive, is vested with this power. But the Constitution itself, is silent as to which, or who, is to exercise the power; and as the provision was plainly made for a dangerous emergency, it cannot be believed the framers of the instrument intended, that in every case, the danger should run its course, until Congress could be called together; the very assembling of which might be prevented, as was intended in this case, by the rebellion. No more extended argument is now offered; as an opinion, at some length, will probably be presented by the Attorney General. Whether there shall be any legislation upon the subject, and if any, what, is submitted entirely to the better judgment of Congress. The forbearance of this government had been so extraordinary, and so long continued, as to lead some foreign nations to shape their action as if they supposed the early destruction of our national Union was probable. While this, on discovery, gave the Executive some concern, he is now happy to say that the sovereignty, and rights of the United States, are now everywhere practically respected by foreign powers; and a general sympathy with the country is manifested throughout the world. The reports of the Secretaries of the Treasury, War, and the Navy, will give the information in detail deemed necessary, and convenient for your deliberation, and action; while the Executive, and all the Departments, will stand ready to supply omissions, or to communicate new facts, considered important for you to know. It is now recommended that you give the legal means for making this contest a short, and a decisive one; that you place at the control of the government, for the work, at least four hundred thousand men, and four hundred millions of dollars. That number of men is about one-tenth of those of proper ages within the regions where, apparently, all are willing to engage; and the sum is less than a twenty-third part of the money value owned by the men who seem ready to devote the whole. A debt of six hundred millions of dollars now, is a less sum per head, than was the debt of our revolution, when we came out of that struggle; and the money value in the country now, bears even a greater proportion to what it was then, than does the population. Surely each man has as strong a motive now, to preserve our liberties, as each had then, to establish them. A right result, at this time, will be worth more to the world, than ten times the men, and ten times the money. The evidence reaching us from the country, leaves no doubt, that the material for the work is 131

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.021

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches abundant; and that it needs only the hand of legislation to give it legal sanction, and the hand of the Executive to give it practical shape and efficiency. One of the greatest perplexities of the government, is to avoid receiving troops faster than it can provide for them. In a word, the people will save their government, if the government itself, will do its part, only indifferently well. It might seem, at first thought, to be of little difference whether the present movement at the South be called “secession” or “rebellion.” The movers, however, well understand the difference. At the beginning, they knew they could never raise their treason to any respectable magnitude, by any name which implies violation of law. They knew their people possessed as much of moral sense, as much of devotion to law and order, and as much pride in, and reverence for, the history, and government, of their common country, as any other civilized, and patriotic people. They knew they could make no advancement directly in the teeth of these strong and noble sentiments. Accordingly they commenced by an insidious debauching of the public mind. They invented an ingenious sophism, which, if conceded, was followed by perfectly logical steps, through all the incidents, to the complete destruction of the Union. The sophism itself is, that any state of the Union may, consistently with the national Constitution, and therefore lawfully, and peacefully, withdraw from the Union, without the consent of the Union, or of any other state. The little disguise that the supposed right is to be exercised only for just cause, themselves to be the sole judge of its justice, is too thin to merit any notice. With rebellion thus sugar-coated, they have been drugging the public mind of their section for more than thirty years; and, until at length, they have brought many good men to a willingness to take up arms against the government the day after some assemblage of men have enacted the farcical pretence of taking their State out of the Union, who could have been brought to no such thing the day before. This sophism derives much – perhaps the whole – of its currency, from the assumption, that there is some omnipotent, and sacred supremacy, pertaining to a State – to each State of our Federal Union. Our States have neither more, nor less power, than that reserved to them, in the Union, by the Constitution – no one of them ever having been a State out of the Union. The original ones passed into the Union even before they cast off their British colonial dependence; and the new ones each came into the Union directly from a condition of dependence, excepting Texas. And even Texas, in its temporary independence, was never designated a 132

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.021

Message to Congress in Special Session State.3 The new ones only took the designation of States, on coming into the Union, while that name was first adopted for the old ones, in, and by, the Declaration of Independence. Therein the “United Colonies” were declared to be “Free and Independent States”; but, even then, the object plainly was not to declare their independence of one another, or of the Union; but directly the contrary, as their mutual pledge, and their mutual action, before, at the time, and afterwards, abundantly show. The express plighting of faith, by each and all of the original thirteen, in the Articles of Confederation, two years later, that the Union shall be perpetual, is most conclusive. Having never been States, either in substance, or in name, outside of the Union, whence this magical omnipotence of “State rights,” asserting a claim of power to lawfully destroy the Union itself? Much is said about the “sovereignty” of the States; but the word, even, is not in the national Constitution; nor, as is believed, in any of the State constitutions. What is a “sovereignty,” in the political sense of the term? Would it be far wrong to define it “a political community, without a political superior”? Tested by this, no one of our States, except Texas, ever was a sovereignty. And even Texas gave up the character on coming into the Union; by which act, she acknowledged the Constitution of the United States, and the laws and treaties of the United States made in pursuance of the Constitution, to be, for her, the supreme law of the land. The States have their status in the Union, and they have no other legal status. If they break from this, they can only do so against law, and by revolution. The Union, and not themselves separately, procured their independence, and their liberty. By conquest, or purchase, the Union gave each of them, whatever of independence, and liberty, it has. The Union is older than any of the States; and, in fact, it created them as States. Originally, some dependent colonies made the Union; and, in turn, the Union threw off their old dependence, for them, and made them States, such as they are. Not one of them ever had a State constitution, independent of the Union. Of course, it is not forgotten that all the new States framed their constitutions, before they entered the Union; nevertheless, dependent upon, and preparatory to, coming into the Union. Unquestionably the States have the powers, and rights, reserved to them in, and by the National Constitution; but among these, surely, are not included all conceivable powers, however mischievous, or destructive; 3

After winning its independence from Mexico in 1836 the Republic of Texas was an independent nation until it became a state in 1845.

133

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.021

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches but, at most, such only, as were known in the world, at the time, as governmental powers; and certainly, a power to destroy the government itself, had never been known as a governmental – as a merely administrative power. This relative matter of National power, and State rights, as a principle, is no other than the principle of generality, and locality. Whatever concerns the whole, should be confided to the whole – to the general government; while, whatever concerns only the State, should be left exclusively, to the State. This is all there is of original principle about it. Whether the National Constitution, in defining boundaries between the two, has applied the principle with exact accuracy, is not to be questioned. We are all bound by that defining, without question. What is now combatted, is the position that secession is consistent with the Constitution – is lawful, and peaceful. It is not contended that there is any express law for it; and nothing should ever be implied as law, which leads to unjust, or absurd consequences. The nation purchased, with money, the countries out of which several of these States were formed. Is it just that they shall go off without leave, and without refunding? The nation paid very large sums (in the aggregate, I believe, nearly a hundred millions) to relieve Florida of the aboriginal tribes. Is it just that she shall now be off without consent, or without making any return? The nation is now in debt for money applied to the benefit of these so-called seceding States, in common with the rest. Is it just, either that creditors shall go unpaid, or the remaining States pay the whole? A part of the present national debt was contracted to pay the old debts of Texas. Is it just that she shall leave, and pay no part of this herself? Again, if one State may secede, so may another; and when all shall have seceded, none is left to pay the debts. Is this quite just to creditors? Did we notify them of this sage view of ours, when we borrowed their money? If we now recognize this doctrine, by allowing the seceders to go in peace, it is difficult to see what we can do, if others choose to go, or to extort terms upon which they will promise to remain. The seceders insist that our Constitution admits of secession. They have assumed to make a National Constitution of their own, in which, of necessity, they have either discarded, or retained, the right of secession, as they insist, it exists in ours. If they have discarded it, they thereby admit that, on principle, it ought not to be in ours. If they have retained it, by their own construction of ours they show that to be consistent they must secede from one another, whenever they shall find it the easiest way of settling their debts, or effecting any other selfish, or unjust object. The 134

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.021

Message to Congress in Special Session principle itself is one of disintegration, and upon which no government can possibly endure. If all the States, save one, should assert the power to drive that one out of the Union, it is presumed the whole class of seceder politicians would at once deny the power, and denounce the act as the greatest outrage upon State rights. But suppose that precisely the same act, instead of being called “driving the one out,” should be called “the seceding of the others from that one,” it would be exactly what the seceders claim to do; unless, indeed, they make the point, that the one, because it is a minority, may rightfully do, what the others, because they are a majority, may not rightfully do. These politicians are subtle, and profound, on the rights of minorities. They are not partial to that power which made the Constitution, and speaks from the preamble, calling itself “We, the People.” It may well be questioned whether there is, to-day, a majority of the legally qualified voters of any State, except perhaps South Carolina, in favor of disunion. There is much reason to believe that the Union men are the majority in many, if not in every other one, of the so-called seceded States. The contrary has not been demonstrated in any one of them. It is ventured to affirm this, even of Virginia and Tennessee; for the result of an election, held in military camps, where the bayonets are all on one side of the question voted upon, can scarcely be considered as demonstrating popular sentiment. At such an election, all that large class who are, at once, for the Union, and against coercion, would be coerced to vote against the Union. It may be affirmed, without extravagance, that the free institutions we enjoy, have developed the powers, and improved the condition, of our whole people, beyond any example in the world. Of this we now have a striking, and an impressive illustration. So large an army as the government has now on foot, was never before known, without a soldier in it, but who had taken his place there, of his own free choice. But more than this: there are many single Regiments whose members, one and another, possess full practical knowledge of all the arts, sciences, professions, and whatever else, whether useful or elegant, is known in the world; and there is scarcely one, from which there could not be selected, a President, a Cabinet, a Congress, and perhaps a Court, abundantly competent to administer the government itself. Nor do I say this is not true, also, in the army of our late friends, now adversaries, in this contest; but if it is, so much better the reason why the government, which has conferred such benefits on both them and us, should not be broken up. Whoever, in any 135

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.021

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches section, proposes to abandon such a government, would do well to consider, in deference to what principle it is, that he does it – what better he is likely to get in its stead – whether the substitute will give, or be intended to give, so much of good to the people. There are some foreshadowings on this subject. Our adversaries have adopted some Declarations of Independence; in which, unlike the good old one, penned by Jefferson, they omit the words “all men are created equal.” Why? They have adopted a temporary national constitution, in the preamble of which, unlike our good old one, signed by Washington, they omit “We, the People,” and substitute “We, the deputies of the sovereign and independent States.” 4 Why? Why this deliberate pressing out of view, the rights of men, and the authority of the people? This is essentially a People’s contest. On the side of the Union, it is a struggle for maintaining in the world, that form, and substance of government, whose leading object is, to elevate the condition of men – to lift artificial weights from all shoulders – to clear the paths of laudable pursuit for all – to afford all, an unfettered start, and a fair chance, in the race of life. Yielding to partial, and temporary departures, from necessity, this is the leading object of the government for whose existence we contend. I am most happy to believe that the plain people understand, and appreciate this. It is worthy of note, that while in this, the government’s hour of trial, large numbers of those in the Army and Navy, who have been favored with the offices, have resigned, and proved false to the hand which had pampered them, not one common soldier, or common sailor is known to have deserted his flag. Great honor is due to those officers who remain true, despite the example of their treacherous associates; but the greatest honor, and most important fact of all, is the unanimous firmness of the common soldiers, and common sailors. To the last man, so far as known, they have successfully resisted the traitorous efforts of those, whose commands, but an hour before, they obeyed as absolute law. This is the patriotic instinct of the plain people. They understand, without an argument, that destroying the government, which was made by Washington, means no good to them.

4

AL quotes from the draft constitution of The Confederate States of America; for the final version see Marshall L. DeRosa, The Confederate Constitution of 1861 (Columbia, Mo.: University of Missouri Press, 1991), appendix.

136

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.021

Message to Congress in Special Session Our popular government has often been called an experiment. Two points in it, our people have already settled – the successful establishing, and the successful administering of it. One still remains – its successful maintenance against a formidable internal attempt to overthrow it. It is now for them to demonstrate to the world, that those who can fairly carry an election, can also suppress a rebellion – that ballots are the rightful, and peaceful, successors of bullets; and that when ballots have fairly, and constitutionally, decided, there can be no successful appeal, back to bullets; that there can be no successful appeal, except to ballots themselves, at succeeding elections. Such will be a great lesson of peace; teaching men that what they cannot take by an election, neither can they take it by a war – teaching all, the folly of being the beginners of a war. Lest there be some uneasiness in the minds of candid men, as to what is to be the course of the government, towards the Southern States, after the rebellion shall have been suppressed, the Executive deems it proper to say, it will be his purpose then, as ever, to be guided by the Constitution, and the laws; and that he probably will have no different understanding of the powers, and duties of the Federal government, relatively to the rights of the States, and the people, under the Constitution, than that expressed in the Inaugural address. He desires to preserve the government, that it may be administered for all, as it was administered by the men who made it. Loyal citizens everywhere, have the right to claim this of their government; and the government has no right to withhold, or neglect it. It is not perceived that, in giving it, there is any coercion, any conquest, or any subjugation, in any just sense of those terms. The Constitution provides, and all the States have accepted the provision, that “The United States shall guarantee to every State in this Union a republican form of government.” 5 But, if a State may lawfully go out of the Union, having done so, it may also discard the republican form of government; so that to prevent its going out, is an indispensable means, to the end, of maintaining the guaranty mentioned; and when an end is lawful and obligatory, the indispensable means to it, are also lawful, and obligatory. It was with the deepest regret that the Executive found the duty of employing the war-power, in defence of the government, forced upon him. He could but perform this duty, or surrender the existence of the 5

US Constitution, Article IV, section 4.

137

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.021

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches government. No compromise, by public servants, could, in this case, be a cure; not that compromises are not often proper, but that no popular government can long survive a marked precedent, that those who carry an election, can only save the government from immediate destruction, by giving up the main point, upon which the people gave the election. The people themselves, and not their servants, can safely reverse their own deliberate decisions. As a private citizen, the Executive could not have consented that these institutions shall perish; much less could he, in betrayal of so vast, and so sacred a trust, as these free people had confided to him. He felt that he had no moral right to shrink; nor even to count the chances of his own life, in what might follow. In full view of his great responsibility, he has, so far, done what he has deemed his duty. You will now, according to your own judgment, perform yours. He sincerely hopes that your views, and your action, may so accord with his, as to assure all faithful citizens, who have been disturbed in their rights, of a certain, and speedy restoration to them, under the Constitution, and the laws. And having thus chosen our course, without guile, and with pure purpose, let us renew our trust in God, and go forward without fear, and with manly hearts. July 4, 1861

138

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:05, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.021

16

Appeal to Border-State Representatives for Compensated Emancipation

Lincoln convened a meeting at the White House with senators and congressmen from the “border states” – slave-owning states that remained loyal to the Union – and outlined his plan for the gradual emancipation of all American slaves. The federal government would compensate slave owners for the loss of their human “property.” Shortly thereafter, by a majority of twenty to eight, the representatives rejected Lincoln’s proposal for compensated emancipation.

Gentlemen. After the adjournment of Congress, now very near, I shall have no opportunity of seeing you for several months. Believing that you of the border-states hold more power for good than any other equal number of members,1 I feel it a duty which I can not justifiably waive, to make this appeal to you. I intend no reproach or complaint when I assure you that in my opinion, if you all had voted for the resolution in the gradual emancipation message of last March,2 the war would now be substantially ended. And the plan therein proposed is yet one of the most potent, and swift means of ending it. Let the states which are in rebellion see, definitely and certainly, that, in no event, will the states you represent ever join their proposed Confederacy, and they cannot much longer maintain the contest. But you cannot divest them of their hope to ultimately have you with them so long as you show a determination to perpetuate the institution

1 2

See selection 15, n. 1. The resolution for gradual emancipation was introduced on March 6, 1862 and passed by the Congress on April 10.

139

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.022

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches within your own states. Beat them at elections, as you have overwhelmingly done, and, nothing daunted, they still claim you as their own. You and I know what the lever of their power is. Break that lever before their faces, and they can shake you no more forever. Most of you have treated me with kindness and consideration; and I trust you will not now think I improperly touch what is exclusively your own, when, for the sake of the whole country I ask “Can you, for your states, do better than to take the course I urge?” Discarding punctilio, and maxims adapted to more manageable times, and looking only to the unprecedentedly stern facts of our case, can you do better in any possible event? You prefer that the constitutional relation of the states to the nation shall be practically restored, without disturbance of the institution; and if this were done, my whole duty, in this respect, under the constitution, and my oath of office, would be performed. But it is not done, and we are trying to accomplish it by war. The incidents of the war cannot be avoided. If the war continue long, as it must, if the object be not sooner attained, the institution in your states will be extinguished by mere friction and abrasion – by the mere incidents of the war. It will be gone, and you will have nothing valuable in lieu of it. Much of its value is gone already. How much better for you, and for your people, to take the step which, at once, shortens the war, and secures substantial compensation for that which is sure to be wholly lost in any other event. How much better to thus save the money which else we sink forever in the war. How much better to do it while we can, lest the war ere long render us pecuniarily [financially] unable to do it. How much better for you, as seller, and the nation as buyer, to sell out, and buy out, that without which the war could never have been, than to sink both the thing to be sold, and the price of it, in cutting one another’s throats. I do not speak of emancipation at once, but of a decision at once to emancipate gradually. Room in South America for colonization, can be obtained cheaply, and in abundance; and when numbers shall be large enough to be company and encouragement for one another, the freed people will not be so reluctant to go. I am pressed with a difficulty not yet mentioned – one which threatens division among those who, united are none too strong. An instance of it is known to you. Gen[eral] Hunter is an honest man. He was, and I hope, still is, my friend. I valued him none the less for his agreeing with me in the general wish that all men everywhere, could be free. He proclaimed all men free within certain states, and I repudiated the 140

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.022

Appeal for Compensated Emancipation proclamation.3 He expected more good, and less harm from the measure, than I could believe would follow. Yet in repudiating it, I gave dissatisfaction, if not offense, to many whose support the country cannot afford to lose. And this is not the end of it. The pressure, in this direction, is still upon me, and is increasing. By conceding what I now ask, you can relieve me, and much more, can relieve the country, in this important point. Upon these considerations I have again begged your attention to the message of March last. Before leaving the Capital, consider and discuss it among yourselves. You are patriots and statesmen; and, as such, I pray you, consider this proposition; and, at the least, commend it to the consideration of your states and people. As you would perpetuate popular government for the best people in the world, I beseech you that you do in no wise omit this. Our common country is in great peril, demanding the loftiest views, and boldest action to bring it speedy relief. Once relieved, its form of government is saved to the world; its beloved history, and cherished memories, are vindicated; and its happy future fully assured, and rendered inconceivably grand. To you, more than to any others, the privilege is given, to assure that happiness, and swell that grandeur, and to link your own names therewith forever. July 12, 1862

3

On May 9, 1862 General David Hunter issued an order freeing all slaves in three states – Georgia, South Carolina, and Florida – which AL rescinded on May 19 on the ground that Hunter had exceeded his authority. AL was at that time preparing to issue his own more extensive Emancipation Proclamation of September 22, 1862 (and the final version on January 1, 1863). See selections 19 and 22.

141

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.022

17

Address on Colonization to a Committee of Colored Men

Lincoln met with a delegation of free black men to outline his plan for the gradual emancipation and subsequent relocation of American slaves. This widely publicized meeting may have been called to prepare public opinion for the coming Emancipation Proclamation (see selections 19 and 22). By proposing relocation Lincoln sought to reassure white Northerners who feared that freed slaves would take away their jobs and livelihood. This afternoon the President of the United States gave audience to a Committee of colored men at the White House. They were introduced by the Rev[erend] J. Mitchell, Commissioner of Emigration. E.M. Thomas, the Chairman, remarked that they were there by invitation to hear what the Executive had to say to them. Having all been seated, the President, after a few preliminary observations, informed them that a sum of money had been appropriated by Congress, and placed at his disposition for the purpose of aiding the colonization in some country of the people, or a portion of them, of African descent, thereby making it his duty, as it had for a long time been his inclination, to favor that cause; and why, he asked, should the people of your race be colonized, and where? Why should they leave this country? This is, perhaps, the first question for proper consideration. You and we are different races. We have between us a broader difference than exists between almost any other two races. Whether it is right or wrong I need not discuss, but this physical difference is a great disadvantage to us both, as I think your race suffer very greatly, many of them by living among us, while ours suffer from your presence. In a word 142

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.023

Address on Colonization to a Committee of Colored Men we suffer on each side. If this is admitted, it affords a reason at least why we should be separated. You here are freemen I suppose. A Voice: Yes, sir. The President: Perhaps you have long been free, or all your lives. Your race are suffering, in my judgment, the greatest wrong inflicted on any people. But even when you cease to be slaves, you are yet far removed from being placed on an equality with the white race. You are cut off from many of the advantages which the other race enjoy. The aspiration of men is to enjoy equality with the best when free, but on this broad continent, not a single man of your race is made the equal of a single man of ours. Go where you are treated the best, and the ban is still upon you. I do not propose to discuss this, but to present it as a fact with which we have to deal. I cannot alter it if I would. It is a fact, about which we all think and feel alike, I and you. We look to our condition, owing to the existence of the two races on this continent. I need not recount to you the effects upon white men, growing out of the institution of Slavery. I believe in its general evil effects on the white race. See our present condition – the country engaged in war! – our white men cutting one another’s throats, none knowing how far it will extend; and then consider what we know to be the truth. But for your race among us there could not be war, although many men engaged on either side do not care for you one way or the other. Nevertheless, I repeat, without the institution of Slavery and the colored race as a basis, the war could not have an existence. It is better for us both, therefore, to be separated. I know that there are free men among you, who even if they could better their condition are not as much inclined to go out of the country as those, who being slaves could obtain their freedom on this condition. I suppose one of the principal difficulties in the way of colonization is that the free colored man cannot see that his comfort would be advanced by it. You may believe you can live in Washington or elsewhere in the United States the remainder of your life, perhaps more so than you can in any foreign country, and hence you may come to the conclusion that you have nothing to do with the idea of going to a foreign country. This is (I speak in no unkind sense) an extremely selfish view of the case. But you ought to do something to help those who are not so fortunate as yourselves. There is an unwillingness on the part of our people, harsh as it may be, for you free colored people to remain with us. Now, if you could give a start to white people, you would open a wide door for many to be made free. If we deal with those who are not free at the beginning, and 143

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.023

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches whose intellects are clouded by Slavery, we have very poor materials to start with. If intelligent colored men, such as are before me, would move in this matter, much might be accomplished. It is exceedingly important that we have men at the beginning capable of thinking as white men, and not those who have been systematically oppressed. There is much to encourage you. For the sake of your race you should sacrifice something of your present comfort for the purpose of being as grand in that respect as the white people. It is a cheering thought throughout life that something can be done to ameliorate the condition of those who have been subject to the hard usage of the world. It is difficult to make a man miserable while he feels he is worthy of himself, and claims kindred to the great God who made him. In the American Revolutionary war sacrifices were made by men engaged in it; but they were cheered by the future. Gen[eral] Washington himself endured greater physical hardships than if he had remained a British subject. Yet he was a happy man, because he was engaged in benefiting his race – something for the children of his neighbors, having none of his own. The colony of Liberia has been in existence a long time. In a certain sense it is a success. The old President of Liberia, Roberts, has just been with me – the first time I ever saw him. He says they have within the bounds of that colony between 300,000 and 400,000 people, or more than in some of our old States, such as Rhode Island or Delaware, or in some of our newer States, and less than in some of our larger ones. They are not all American colonists, or their descendants. Something less than 12,000 have been sent thither from this country. Many of the original settlers have died, yet, like people elsewhere, their offspring outnumber those deceased. The question is if the colored people are persuaded to go anywhere, why not there? One reason for an unwillingness to do so is that some of you would rather remain within reach of the country of your nativity. I do not know how much attachment you may have toward our race. It does not strike me that you have the greatest reason to love them. But still you are attached to them at all events. The place I am thinking about having for a colony is in Central America. It is nearer to us than Liberia – not much more than one-fourth as far as Liberia, and within seven days’ run by steamers. Unlike Liberia it is on a great line of travel – it is a highway. The country is a very excellent one for any people, and with great natural resources and advantages, and especially because of the similarity of climate with your native land – thus being suited to your physical condition. 144

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.023

Address on Colonization to a Committee of Colored Men The particular place I have in view is to be a great highway from the Atlantic or Caribbean Sea to the Pacific Ocean, and this particular place has all the advantages for a colony. On both sides there are harbors among the finest in the world. Again, there is evidence of very rich coal mines. A certain amount of coal is valuable in any country, and there may be more than enough for the wants of the country. Why I attach so much importance to coal is, it will afford an opportunity to the inhabitants for immediate employment till they get ready to settle permanently in their homes. If you take colonists where there is no good landing, there is a bad show; and so where there is nothing to cultivate, and of which to make a farm. But if something is started so that you can get your daily bread as soon as you reach there, it is a great advantage. Coal land is the best thing I know of with which to commence an enterprise. To return, you have been talked to upon this subject, and told that a speculation is intended by gentlemen, who have an interest in the country, including the coal mines. We have been mistaken all our lives if we do not know whites as well as blacks look to their self-interest. Unless among those deficient of intellect everybody you trade with makes something. You meet with these things here as elsewhere. If such persons have what will be an advantage to them, the question is whether it cannot be made of advantage to you. You are intelligent, and know that success does not as much depend on external help as on self-reliance. Much, therefore, depends upon yourselves. As to the coal mines, I think I see the means available for your self-reliance. I shall, if I get a sufficient number of you engaged, have provisions made that you shall not be wronged. If you will engage in the enterprise I will spend some of the money intrusted to me. I am not sure you will succeed. The Government may lose the money, but we cannot succeed unless we try; but we think, with care, we can succeed. The political affairs in Central America are not in quite as satisfactory condition as I wish. There are contending factions in that quarter; but it is true all the factions are agreed alike on the subject of colonization, and want it, and are more generous than we are here. To your colored race they have no objection. Besides, I would endeavor to have you made equals, and have the best assurance that you should be the equals of the best. The practical thing I want to ascertain is whether I can get a number of able-bodied men, with their wives and children, who are willing to go, 145

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.023

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches when I present evidence of encouragement and protection. Could I get a hundred tolerably intelligent men, with their wives and children, to “cut their own fodder,” so to speak? Can I have fifty? If I could find twenty-five able-bodied men, with a mixture of women and children, good things in the family relation, I think I could make a successful commencement. I want you to let me know whether this can be done or not. This is the practical part of my wish to see you. These are subjects of very great importance, worthy of a month’s study, instead of a speech delivered in an hour. I ask you then to consider seriously not pertaining to yourselves merely, nor for your race, and ours, for the present time, but as one of the things, if successfully managed, for the good of mankind – not confined to the present generation, but as From age to age descends the lay, To millions yet to be, Till far its echoes roll away, Into eternity.

The above is merely given as the substance of the President’s remarks. The Chairman of the delegation briefly replied that “they would hold a consultation and in a short time give an answer.” The President said: “Take your full time – no hurry at all.” The delegation then withdrew. August 14, 1862

146

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.023

18

To Horace Greeley

After the abolitionist editor Horace Greeley published “The Prayer of Twenty Millions” in The New York Tribune (August 20, 1862), an open letter urging the president to use his power to emancipate all American slaves, Lincoln replied in a letter published five days later. Lincoln says that his “paramount object” is not to free the slaves but to save the Union, and he would free none, all, or some slaves only if that would further that higher end. He had already drafted the Preliminary Emancipation Proclamation (see selection 19), and used his widely publicized reply to Greeley to prepare the public for its release. Hon. Horace Greeley:

Executive Mansion, Washington August 22, 1862

Dear Sir I have just read yours of the 19th addressed to myself through the New York Tribune. If there be in it any statements, or assumptions of fact, which I may know to be erroneous, I do not, now and here, controvert them. If there be in it any inferences which I may believe to be falsely drawn, I do not, now and here, argue against them. If there be perceptible in it an impatient and dictatorial tone, I waive it in deference to an old friend, whose heart I have always supposed to be right. As to the policy I “seem to be pursuing” as you say, I have not meant to leave any one in doubt. I would save the Union. I would save it the shortest way under the Constitution. The sooner the national authority can be restored; the

147

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.024

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches nearer the Union will be “the Union as it was.” If there be those who would not save the Union, unless they could at the same time save slavery, I do not agree with them. If there be those who would not save the Union unless they could at the same time destroy slavery, I do not agree with them. My paramount object in this struggle is to save the Union, and is not either to save or to destroy slavery. If I could save the Union without freeing any slave I would do it, and if I could save it by freeing all the slaves I would do it; and if I could save it by freeing some and leaving others alone I would also do that. What I do about slavery, and the colored race, I do because I believe it helps to save the Union; and what I forbear, I forbear because I do not believe it would help to save the Union. I shall do less whenever I shall believe what I am doing hurts the cause, and I shall do more whenever I shall believe doing more will help the cause. I shall try to correct errors when shown to be errors; and I shall adopt new views so fast as they shall appear to be true views. I have here stated my purpose according to my view of official duty; and I intend no modification of my oft-expressed personal wish that all men every where could be free. Yours,

148

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.024

19

Preliminary Emancipation Proclamation

Using military necessity as a justification under the president’s war powers as granted by the Constitution, Lincoln issued an initial Emancipation Proclamation. He reasoned that since the Confederate war machine ran largely on the labor of slaves, removing that labor would materially aid the Union war effort. Of course, neither this nor the Final Emancipation Proclamation (see selection 22) actually freed any slaves; it merely encouraged slaves to escape with the promise that they would not be returned to their masters.

By the President of the United States of America A Proclamation I, Abraham Lincoln, President of the United States of America, and Commander-in-chief of the Army and Navy thereof, do hereby proclaim and declare that hereafter, as heretofore, the war will be prosecuted for the object of practically restoring the constitutional relation between the United States, and each of the states, and the people thereof; in which states that relation is, or may be suspended, or disturbed. That it is my purpose, upon the next meeting of Congress to again recommend the adoption of a practical measure tendering pecuniary aid to the free acceptance or rejection of all slave-states, so called, the people whereof may not then be in rebellion against the United States, and which states, may then have voluntarily adopted, or thereafter may voluntarily adopt, immediate, or gradual abolishment of slavery within their respective limits; and that the effort to colonize persons of African 149

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:10, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.025

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches descent, with their consent, upon this continent, or elsewhere, with the previously obtained consent of the Governments existing there, will be continued. That on the first day of January in the year of our Lord, one thousand eight hundred and sixty-three, all persons held as slaves within any state, or designated part of a state, the people whereof shall then be in rebellion against the United States shall be then, thenceforward, and forever free; and the executive government of the United States, including the military and naval authority thereof, will recognize and maintain the freedom of such persons, and will do no act or acts to repress such persons, or any of them, in any efforts they may make for their actual freedom. That the executive will, on the first day of January aforesaid, by proclamation, designate the States, and parts of states, if any, in which the people thereof respectively, shall then be in rebellion against the United States; and the fact that any state, or the people thereof shall, on that day be, in good faith represented in the Congress of the United States, by members chosen thereto, at elections wherein a majority of the qualified voters of such state shall have participated, shall, in the absence of strong countervailing testimony, be deemed conclusive evidence that such state and the people thereof, are not then in rebellion against the United States. That attention is hereby called to an act of Congress entitled “An act to make an additional Article of War” approved March 13, 1862, and which act is in the words and figure following: Be it enacted by the Senate and House of Representatives of the United States of America in Congress assembled, That hereafter the following shall be promulgated as an additional article of war for the government of the army of the United States, and shall be obeyed and observed as such: Article — . All officers or persons in the military or naval service of the United States are prohibited from employing any of the forces under their respective commands for the purpose of returning fugitives from service or labor, who may have escaped from any persons to whom such service or labor is claimed to be due, and any officer who shall be found guilty by a court-martial of violating this article shall be dismissed from the service. Sec. 2. And be it further enacted, That this act shall take effect from and after its passage.

150

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:10, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.025

Preliminary Emancipation Proclamation Also to the ninth and tenth sections of an act entitled “An Act to suppress Insurrection, to punish Treason and Rebellion, to seize and confiscate property of rebels, and for other purposes,” approved July 17, 1862, and which sections are in the words and figures following: Sec. 9. And be it further enacted, That all slaves of persons who shall hereafter be engaged in rebellion against the government of the United States, or who shall in any way give aid or comfort thereto, escaping from such persons and taking refuge within the lines of the army; and all slaves captured from such persons or deserted by them and coming under the control of the government of the United States; and all slaves of such persons found on (or) being within any place occupied by rebel forces and afterwards occupied by the forces of the United States, shall be deemed captives of war, and shall be forever free of their servitude and not again held as slaves. Sec. 10. And be it further enacted, That no slave escaping into any State, Territory, or the District of Columbia, from any other State, shall, be delivered up, or in any way impeded or hindered of his liberty, except for crime, or some offence against the laws, unless the person claiming said fugitive shall first make oath that the person to whom the labor or service of such fugitive is alleged to be due is his lawful owner, and has not borne arms against the United States in the present rebellion, nor in any way given aid and comfort thereto; and no person engaged in the military or naval service of the United States shall, under any pretence whatever, assume to decide on the validity of the claim of any person to the service or labor of any other person, or surrender up any such person to the claimant, on pain of being dismissed from the service.

And I do hereby enjoin upon and order all persons engaged in the military and naval service of the United States to observe, obey, and enforce, within their respective spheres of service, the act, and sections above recited. And the executive will in due time recommend that all citizens of the United States who shall have remained loyal thereto throughout the rebellion, shall (upon the restoration of the constitutional relation between the United States, and their respective states, and people, if that relation shall have been suspended or disturbed) be compensated for all losses by acts of the United States, including the loss of slaves. In witness whereof, I have hereunto set my hand, and caused the seal of the United States to be affixed.

151

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:10, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.025

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches Done at the City of Washington, this twenty-second day of September, in the year of our Lord, one thousand eight hundred and sixty two, and of the Independence of the United States, the eighty-seventh. By the President: Abraham Lincoln William H. Seward, Secretary of State. September 22, 1862

152

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:10, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.025

20

Proclamation Suspending the Writ of Habeas Corpus One of Lincoln’s most controversial decisions during the Civil War was to suspend the writ of habeas corpus. This meant that suspects could be held without being charged with a specific crime, without trial before a jury of their peers, and without legal counsel. Far from acting extraconstitutionally, Lincoln claimed constitutional grounds: Article I, section 9 states that “The Privilege of the Writ of Habeas Corpus shall not be suspended, unless when in Cases of Rebellion or Invasion the public Safety shall require it.” The Confederate war against the United States, Lincoln reasoned, was a rebellion pure and simple and a threat to public safety. His critics were not mollified, however, and Lincoln had repeatedly to justify his decision to suspend habeas corpus (see selections 24 and 25).

By The President of The United States of America A Proclamation Whereas, it has become necessary to call into service not only volunteers but also portions of the militia of the States by draft in order to suppress the insurrection existing in the United States, and disloyal persons are not adequately restrained by the ordinary processes of law from hindering this measure and from giving aid and comfort in various ways to the insurrection; Now, therefore, be it ordered, first, that during the existing insurrection and as a necessary measure for suppressing the same, all Rebels and Insurgents, their aiders and abettors within the United States, and all 153

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.026

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches persons discouraging volunteer enlistments, resisting militia drafts, or guilty of any disloyal practice, affording aid and comfort to Rebels against the authority of the United States, shall be subject to martial law and liable to trial and punishment by Courts Martial or Military Commission. Second. That the Writ of Habeas Corpus is suspended in respect to all persons arrested, or who are now, or hereafter during the rebellion shall be, imprisoned in any fort, camp, arsenal, military prison, or other place of confinement by any military authority or by the sentence of any Court Martial or Military Commission. In witness whereof, I have hereunto set my hand, and caused the seal of the United States to be affixed. Done at the City of Washington this twenty-fourth day of September, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and sixty-two, and of the Independence of the United States the 87th. By the President: Abraham Lincoln William H. Seward, Secretary of State. September 24, 1862

154

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:31, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.026

21

Second Annual Message to Congress

In his Second Annual Message to Congress President Lincoln once again made the case against allowing the Union to be divided. He was replying to “Peace Democrats” and others who wanted the Civil War to end in a draw, allowing the Confederate States of America to coexist peacefully with a shrunken United States to its north. Lincoln also reiterated his proposal to compensate slave owners in the border states for the freeing of their slaves (see selection 16) and the relocation of former slaves outside the United States (see selection 17). Fellow-citizens of the Senate and House of Representatives: Since your last annual assembling another year of health and bountiful harvests has passed. And while it has not pleased the Almighty to bless us with a return of peace, we can but press on, guided by the best light He gives us, trusting that in His own good time, and wise way, all will yet be well… On the twenty-second day of September last a proclamation was issued by the Executive, a copy of which is herewith submitted.1 In accordance with the purpose expressed in the second paragraph of that paper, I now respectfully recall your attention to what may be called “compensated emancipation.” A nation may be said to consist of its territory, its people, and its laws. The territory is the only part which is of certain durability. “One generation passeth away, and another generation cometh, but the earth abideth forever.” 2 It is of the first importance to duly consider, and estimate, this ever-enduring part. That portion of the Earth’s surface which is owned 1

See selection 19.

2

Ecclesiastes 1: 4.

155

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.027

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches and inhabited by the people of the United States, is well adapted to be the home of one national family; and it is not well adapted for two, or more. Its vast extent, and its variety of climate and productions, are of advantage, in this age, for one people, whatever they might have been in former ages. Steam, telegraphs, and intelligence, have brought these, to be an advantageous combination, for one united people. In the Inaugural address3 I briefly pointed out the total inadequacy of disunion, as a remedy for the differences between the people of the two sections. I did so in language which I cannot improve, and which, therefore, I beg to repeat: One section of our country believes slavery is right, and ought to be extended, while the other believes it is wrong, and ought not to be extended. This is the only substantial dispute. The fugitive slave clause of the Constitution, and the law for the suppression of the foreign slave trade, are each as well enforced, perhaps, as any law can ever be in a community where the moral sense of the people imperfectly supports the law itself. The great body of the people abide by the dry legal obligation in both cases, and a few break over in each. This, I think, cannot be perfectly cured; and it would be worse in both cases after the separation of the sections, than before. The foreign slave trade, now imperfectly suppressed, would be ultimately revived without restriction in one section; while fugitive slaves, now only partially surrendered, would not be surrendered at all by the other. Physically speaking, we cannot separate. We cannot remove our respective sections from each other, nor build an impassable wall between them. A husband and wife may be divorced, and go out of the presence, and beyond the reach of each other; but the different parts of our country cannot do this. They cannot but remain face to face; and intercourse, either amicable or hostile, must continue between them. Is it possible, then, to make that intercourse more advantageous, or more satisfactory, after separation than before? Can aliens make treaties, easier than friends can make laws? Can treaties be more faithfully enforced between aliens, than laws can among friends? Suppose you go to war, you cannot fight always; and when, after much loss on both sides, and no gain on either, you cease fighting, the identical old questions, as to terms of intercourse, are again upon you.

3

See selection 14.

156

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.027

Second Annual Message to Congress There is no line, straight or crooked, suitable for a national boundary, upon which to divide. Trace through, from east to west, upon the line between the free and slave country, and we shall find a little more than one-third of its length are rivers, easy to be crossed, and populated, or soon to be populated, thickly upon both sides; while nearly all its remaining length, are merely surveyor’s lines, over which people may walk back and forth without any consciousness of their presence. No part of this line can be made any more difficult to pass, by writing it down on paper, or parchment, as a national boundary. The fact of separation, if it comes, gives up, on the part of the seceding section, the fugitive slave clause, along with all other constitutional obligations upon the section seceded from, while I should expect no treaty stipulation would ever be made to take its place. But there is another difficulty. The great interior region, bounded east by the Alleghenies, north by the British dominions, west by the Rocky Mountains, and south by the line along which the culture of corn and cotton meets, and which includes part of Virginia, part of Tennessee, all of Kentucky, Ohio, Indiana, Michigan, Wisconsin, Illinois, Missouri, Kansas, Iowa, Minnesota and the Territories of Dakota, Nebraska, and part of Colorado, already has above ten millions of people, and will have fifty millions within fifty years, if not prevented by any political folly or mistake. It contains more than one-third of the country owned by the United States – certainly more than one million of square miles. Once half as populous as Massachusetts already is, it would have more than seventy-five millions of people. A glance at the map shows that, territorially speaking, it is the great body of the republic. The other parts are but marginal borders to it, the magnificent region sloping west from the Rocky Mountains to the Pacific, being the deepest, and also the richest, in undeveloped resources. In the production of provisions, grains, grasses, and all which proceed from them, this great interior region is naturally one of the most important in the world. Ascertain from the statistics the small proportion of the region which has, as yet, been brought into cultivation, and also the large and rapidly increasing amount of its products, and we shall be overwhelmed with the magnitude of the prospect presented. And yet this region has no sea-coast, touches no ocean anywhere. As part of one nation, its people now find, and may forever find, their way to Europe by New York, to South America and Africa by New Orleans, and to Asia by San Francisco. But separate our common country into two nations, as designed by the present rebellion, 157

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.027

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches and every man of this great interior region is thereby cut off from some one or more of these outlets, not, perhaps, by a physical barrier, but by embarrassing and onerous trade regulations. And this is true, wherever a dividing, or boundary line, may be fixed. Place it between the now free and slave country, or place it south of Kentucky, or north of Ohio, and still the truth remains, that none south of it, can trade to any port or place north of it, and none north of it, can trade to any port or place south of it, except upon terms dictated by a government foreign to them. These outlets, east, west, and south, are indispensable to the well-being of the people inhabiting, and to inhabit, this vast interior region. Which of the three may be the best, is no proper question. All, are better than either, and all, of right, belong to that people, and to their successors forever. True to themselves, they will not ask where a line of separation shall be, but will vow, rather, that there shall be no such line. Nor are the marginal regions less interested in these communications to, and through them, to the great outside world. They too, and each of them, must have access to this Egypt of the West, without paying toll at the crossing of any national boundary. Our national strife springs not from our permanent part; not from the land we inhabit; not from our national homestead. There is no possible severing of this, but would multiply, and not mitigate, evils among us. In all its adaptations and aptitudes, it demands union, and abhors separation. In fact, it would, ere long, force reunion, however much of blood and treasure the separation might have cost. Our strife pertains to ourselves – to the passing generations of men; and it can, without convulsion, be hushed forever with the passing of one generation. In this view, I recommend the adoption of the following resolution and articles amendatory to the Constitution of the United States: Resolved by the Senate and House of Representatives of the United States of America in Congress assembled, (two-thirds of both houses concurring), That the following articles be proposed to the legislatures (or conventions) of the several States as amendments to the Constitution of the United States, all or any of which articles when ratified by three-fourths of the said legislatures (or conventions) to be valid as part or parts of the said Constitution, viz: Article –––. Every State, wherein slavery now exists, which shall abolish the same therein, at any time, or times, before the first day of January, in

158

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.027

Second Annual Message to Congress the year of our Lord one thousand and nine hundred, shall receive compensation from the United States as follows, to wit: The President of the United States shall deliver to every such State, bonds of the United States, bearing interest at the rate of ––– per cent, per annum, to an amount equal to the aggregate sum of ––– for each slave shown to have been therein, by the eighth census of the United States, said bonds to be delivered to such State by instalments, or in one parcel, at the completion of the abolishment, accordingly as the same shall have been gradual, or at one time, within such State; and interest shall begin to run upon any such bond, only from the proper time of its delivery as aforesaid. Any State having received bonds as aforesaid, and afterwards reintroducing or tolerating slavery therein, shall refund to the United States the bonds so received, or the value thereof, and all interest paid thereon. Article –––. All slaves who shall have enjoyed actual freedom by the chances of the war, at any time before the end of the rebellion, shall be forever free; but all owners of such, who shall not have been disloyal, shall be compensated for them, at the same rates as is provided for States adopting abolishment of slavery, but in such way, that no slave shall be twice accounted for. Article –––. Congress may appropriate money, and otherwise provide, for colonizing free colored persons, with their own consent, at any place or places without the United States.

I beg indulgence to discuss these proposed articles at some length. Without slavery the rebellion could never have existed; without slavery it could not continue. Among the friends of the Union there is great diversity, of sentiment, and of policy, in regard to slavery, and the African race amongst us. Some would perpetuate slavery; some would abolish it suddenly, and without compensation; some would abolish it gradually, and with compensation; some would remove the freed people from us, and some would retain them with us; and there are yet other minor diversities. Because of these diversities, we waste much strength in struggles among ourselves. By mutual concession we should harmonize, and act together. This would be compromise; but it would be compromise among the friends, and not with the enemies of the Union. These articles are intended to embody a plan of such mutual concessions. If the plan shall be adopted, it is assumed that emancipation will follow, at least, in several of the States. 159

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.027

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches As to the first article, the main points are: first, the emancipation; secondly, the length of time for consummating it – thirty-seven years; and thirdly, the compensation. The emancipation will be unsatisfactory to the advocates of perpetual slavery; but the length of time should greatly mitigate their dissatisfaction. The time spares both races from the evils of sudden derangement – in fact, from the necessity of any derangement – while most of those whose habitual course of thought will be disturbed by the measure will have passed away before its consummation. They will never see it. Another class will hail the prospect of emancipation, but will deprecate the length of time. They will feel that it gives too little to the now living slaves. But it really gives them much. It saves them from the vagrant destitution which must largely attend immediate emancipation in localities where their numbers are very great; and it gives the inspiring assurance that their posterity shall be free forever. The plan leaves to each State, choosing to act under it, to abolish slavery now, or at the end of the century, or at any intermediate time, or by degrees, extending over the whole or any part of the period; and it obliges no two states to proceed alike. It also provides for compensation, and generally the mode of making it. This, it would seem, must further mitigate the dissatisfaction of those who favor perpetual slavery, and especially of those who are to receive the compensation. Doubtless some of those who are to pay, and not to receive will object. Yet the measure is both just and economical. In a certain sense the liberation of slaves is the destruction of property – property acquired by descent, or by purchase, the same as any other property. It is no less true for having been often said, that the people of the South are not more responsible for the original introduction of this property, than are the people of the North; and when it is remembered how unhesitatingly we all use cotton and sugar, and share the profits of dealing in them, it may not be quite safe to say, that the South has been more responsible than the North for its continuance. If then, for a common object, this property is to be sacrificed is it not just that it be done at a common charge? And if, with less money, or money more easily paid, we can preserve the benefits of the Union by this means, than we can by the war alone, is it not also economical to do it? Let us consider it then. Let us ascertain the sum we have expended in the war since compensated emancipation was proposed last March, and consider whether, if that measure had been promptly accepted, by even some of the slave States, the same sum would not have done more to close the war, than has been otherwise done. If so 160

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.027

Second Annual Message to Congress the measure would save money, and, in that view, would be a prudent and economical measure. Certainly it is not so easy to pay something as it is to pay nothing; but it is easier to pay a large sum than it is to pay a larger one. And it is easier to pay any sum when we are able, than it is to pay it before we are able. The war requires large sums, and requires them at once. The aggregate sum necessary for compensated emancipation, of course, would be large. But it would require no ready cash; nor the bonds even, any faster than the emancipation progresses. This might not, and probably would not, close before the end of the thirty-seven years. At that time we shall probably have a hundred millions of people to share the burden, instead of thirty-one millions, as now. And not only so, but the increase of our population may be expected to continue for a long time after that period, as rapidly as before; because our territory will not have become full. I do not state this inconsiderately. At the same ratio of increase which we have maintained, on an average, from our first national census, in 1790, until that of 1860, we should, in 1900, have a population of 103,208,415. And why may we not continue that ratio far beyond that period? Our abundant room – our broad national homestead – is our ample resource. Were our territory as limited as are the British Isles, very certainly our population could not expand as stated. Instead of receiving the foreign-born, as now, we should be compelled to send part of the native-born away. But such is not our condition. We have two millions, nine hundred and sixty-three thousand square miles. Europe has three millions and eight hundred thousand, with a population averaging seventy-three and one-third persons to the square mile. Why may not our country, at some time, average as many? Is it less fertile? Has it more waste surface, by mountains, rivers, lakes, deserts, or other causes? Is it inferior to Europe in any natural advantage? If, then, we are, at some time, to be as populous as Europe, how soon? As to when this may be, we can judge by the past and the present; as to when it will be, if ever, depends much on whether we maintain the Union. Several of our States are already above the average of Europe – seventy-three and a third to the square mile. Massachusetts has 157; Rhode Island, 133; Connecticut, 99; New York and New Jersey, each, 8o; also two other great States, Pennsylvania and Ohio, are not far below, the former having 63, and the latter 59. The States already above the European average, except New York, have increased in as rapid a ratio, since passing that point, as ever before; while no one of them is equal to some other parts of our country, in natural capacity for sustaining a dense population. 161

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.027

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches Taking the nation in the aggregate, and we find its population and ratio of increase, for the several decennial periods, to be as follows: – 1790 1800 1810 1820 1830 1840 1850 1860

3,929,827 5,305,937 7,239,814 9,638,131 12,866,020 17,069,453 23,191,876 31,443,790

35.02 per cent. 36.45 33.13 33.49 32.67 35.87 35.58

{ratio of increase “ “ “ “ “ “

This shows an average decennial increase of 34.60 per cent in population through the seventy years from our first, to our last census yet taken. It is seen that the ratio of increase, at no one of these seven periods, is either 2 per cent below, or 2 per cent above, the average; thus showing how inflexible, and, consequently, how reliable, the law of increase, in our case, is. Assuming that it will continue, gives the following results: 1870 1880 1890 1900 1910 1920 1930

42,323,341 56,967,216 76,677,872 103,208,415 138,918,526 186,984,335 251,680,914

These figures show that our country may be as populous as Europe now is, at some point between 1920 and 1930 – say about 1925 – our territory, at seventy-three and a third persons to the square mile, being of capacity to contain 217,186,000. And we will reach this, too, if we do not ourselves relinquish the chance, by the folly and evils of disunion, or by long and exhausting war springing from the only great element of national discord among us. While it cannot be foreseen exactly how much one huge example of secession, breeding lesser ones indefinitely, would retard population, civilization, and prosperity, no one can doubt that the extent of it would be very great and injurious. The proposed emancipation would shorten the war, perpetuate peace, insure this increase of population, and proportionately the wealth of the 162

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.027

Second Annual Message to Congress country. With these, we should pay all the emancipation would cost, together with our other debt, easier than we should pay our other debt, without it. If we had allowed our old national debt to run at 6 per cent per annum, simple interest, from the end of our revolutionary struggle until to-day, without paying anything on either principal or interest, each man of us would owe less upon that debt now, than each man owed upon it then; and this because our increase of men, through the whole period, has been greater than 6 per cent; has run faster than the interest upon the debt. Thus, time alone relieves a debtor nation, so long as its population increases faster than unpaid interest accumulates on its debt. This fact would be no excuse for delaying payment of what is justly due; but it shows the great importance of time in this connexion – the great advantage of a policy by which we shall not have to pay until we number a hundred millions, what, by a different policy, we would have to pay now, when we number but thirty-one millions. In a word, it shows that a dollar will be much harder to pay for the war, than will be a dollar for emancipation on the proposed plan. And then the latter will cost no blood, no precious life. It will be a saving of both. As to the second article, I think it would be impracticable to return to bondage the class of persons therein contemplated. Some of them, doubtless, in the property sense, belong to loyal owners; and hence, provision is made in this article for compensating such. The third article relates to the future of the freed people. It does not oblige, but merely authorizes, Congress to aid in colonizing such as may consent. This ought not to be regarded as objectionable, on the one hand, or on the other, in so much as it comes to nothing, unless by the mutual consent of the people to be deported, and the American voters, through their representatives in Congress. I cannot make it better known than it already is, that I strongly favor colonization. And yet I wish to say there is an objection urged against free colored persons remaining in the country, which is largely imaginary, if not sometimes malicious. It is insisted that their presence would injure, and displace white labor and white laborers. If there ever could be a proper time for mere catch arguments, that time surely is not now. In times like the present, men should utter nothing for which they would not willingly be responsible through time and in eternity. Is it true, then, that colored people can displace any more white labor, by being free, than by remaining slaves? If they stay in their old places, they jostle no white laborers; if they leave their 163

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.027

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches old places, they leave them open to white laborers. Logically, there is neither more nor less of it. Emancipation, even without deportation, would probably enhance the wages of white labor, and, very surely, would not reduce them. Thus, the customary amount of labor would still have to be performed; the freed people would surely not do more than their old proportion of it, and very probably, for a time, would do less, leaving an increased part to white laborers, bringing their labor into greater demand, and, consequently, enhancing the wages of it. With deportation, even to a limited extent, enhanced wages to white labor is mathematically certain. Labor is like any other commodity in the market – increase the demand for it, and you increase the price of it. Reduce the supply of black labor, by colonizing the black laborer out of the country, and, by precisely so much, you increase the demand for, and wages of, white labor. But it is dreaded that the freed people will swarm forth, and cover the whole land. Are they not already in the land? Will liberation make them any more numerous? Equally distributed among the whites of the whole country, and there would be but one colored to seven whites. Could the one, in any way, greatly disturb the seven? There are many communities now, having more than one free colored person, to seven whites; and this, without any apparent consciousness of evil from it. The District of Columbia, and the States of Maryland and Delaware, are all in this condition. The District has more than one free colored to six whites; and yet, in its frequent petitions to Congress, I believe it has never presented the presence of free colored persons as one of its grievances. But why should emancipation south, send the free people north? People, of any color, seldom run, unless there be something to run from. Heretofore colored people, to some extent, have fled north from bondage; and now, perhaps, from both bondage and destitution. But if gradual emancipation and deportation be adopted, they will have neither to flee from. Their old masters will give them wages at least until new laborers can be procured; and the freed men, in turn, will gladly give their labor for the wages, till new homes can be found for them, in congenial climes, and with people of their own blood and race. This proposition can be trusted on the mutual interests involved. And, in any event, cannot the North decide for itself, whether to receive them? Again, as practice proves more than theory, in any case, has there been any irruption of colored people northward, because of the abolishment of slavery in this District last spring?

164

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.027

Second Annual Message to Congress What I have said of the proportion of free colored persons to the whites, in the District, is from the census of 1860, having no reference to persons called contrabands, nor to those made free by the act of Congress abolishing slavery here. The plan consisting of these articles is recommended, not but that a restoration of the national authority would be accepted without its adoption. Nor will the war, nor proceedings under the proclamation of September 22, 1862, be stayed because of the recommendation of this plan. Its timely adoption, I doubt not, would bring restoration and thereby stay both. And, notwithstanding this plan, the recommendation that Congress provide by law for compensating any State which may adopt emancipation, before this plan shall have been acted upon, is hereby earnestly renewed. Such would be only an advance part of the plan, and the same arguments apply to both. This plan is recommended as a means, not in exclusion of, but additional to, all others for restoring and preserving the national authority throughout the Union. The subject is presented exclusively in its economical aspect. The plan would, I am confident, secure peace more speedily, and maintain it more permanently, than can be done by force alone; while all it would cost, considering amounts, and manner of payment, and times of payment, would be easier paid than will be the additional cost of the war, if we rely solely upon force. It is much – very much – that it would cost no blood at all. The plan is proposed as permanent constitutional law. It cannot become such without the concurrence of, first, two-thirds of Congress, and, afterwards, three-fourths of the States. 4 The requisite threefourths of the States will necessarily include seven of the Slave states. Their concurrence, if obtained, will give assurance of their severally adopting emancipation, at no very distant day, upon the new constitutional terms. This assurance would end the struggle now, and save the Union forever. I do not forget the gravity which should characterize a paper addressed to the Congress of the nation by the Chief Magistrate of the nation. Nor do I forget that some of you are my seniors, nor that many of you have more experience than I, in the conduct of public affairs. Yet I trust that in

4

US Constitution, Article V.

165

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.027

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches view of the great responsibility resting upon me, you will perceive no want of respect to yourselves, in any undue earnestness I may seem to display. Is it doubted, then, that the plan I propose, if adopted, would shorten the war, and thus lessen its expenditure of money and of blood? Is it doubted that it would restore the national authority and national prosperity, and perpetuate both indefinitely? Is it doubted that we here – Congress and Executive – can secure its adoption? Will not the good people respond to a united, and earnest appeal from us? Can we, can they, by any other means, so certainly, or so speedily, assure these vital objects? We can succeed only by concert. It is not “can any of us imagine better?” but “can we all do better?” Object whatsoever is possible, still the question recurs “can we do better?” The dogmas of the quiet past, are inadequate to the stormy present. The occasion is piled high with difficulty, and we must rise with the occasion. As our case is new, so we must think anew, and act anew. We must disenthrall ourselves, and then we shall save our country. Fellow-citizens, we cannot escape history. We of this Congress and this administration, will be remembered in spite of ourselves. No personal significance, or insignificance, can spare one or another of us. The fiery trial through which we pass, will light us down, in honor or dishonor, to the latest generation. We say we are for the Union. The world will not forget that we say this. We know how to save the Union. The world knows we do know how to save it. We – even we here – hold the power, and bear the responsibility. In giving freedom to the slave, we assure freedom to the free – honorable alike in what we give, and what we preserve. We shall nobly save, or meanly lose, the last, best, hope of Earth. Other means may succeed; this could not fail. The way is plain, peaceful, generous, just – a way which, if followed, the world will forever applaud, and God must forever bless. December 1, 1862

166

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:30, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.027

22

Final Emancipation Proclamation

On the first day of 1863 President Lincoln issued his Final Emancipation Proclamation. Like its predecessor (see selection 19), it promised freedom to any slave who escaped from the Confederacy. By the President of the United States of America a proclamation Whereas, on the twenty-second day of September, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and sixty-two, a proclamation, was issued by the President of the United States,1 containing, among other things, the following, to wit: That on the first day of January, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and sixty-three, all persons held as slaves within any State or designated part of a State, the people whereof shall then be in rebellion against the United States, shall be then, thenceforward, and forever free; and the Executive Government of the United States, including the military and naval authority thereof, will recognize and maintain the freedom of such persons, and will do no act or acts to repress such persons, or any of them, in any efforts they may make for their actual freedom. That the Executive will, on the first day of January aforesaid, by proclamation, designate the States and parts of States, if any, in which the people thereof, respectively, shall then be in rebellion against the United States; and the fact that any State, or the people 1

See selection 19.

167

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.028

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches thereof, shall on that day be, in good faith, represented in the Congress of the United States by members chosen thereto at elections wherein a majority of the qualified voters of such State shall have participated, shall, in the absence of strong countervailing testimony, be deemed conclusive evidence that such State, and the people thereof, are not then in rebellion against the United States.

Now, therefore I, Abraham Lincoln, President of the United States, by virtue of the power in me vested as Commander-in-Chief, of the Army and Navy of the United States in time of actual armed rebellion against authority and government of the United States, and as a fit and necessary war measure for suppressing said rebellion, do, on this first day of January, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and sixty-three, and in accordance with my purpose so to do publicly proclaimed for the full period of one hundred days, from the day first above mentioned, order and designate as the States and parts of States wherein the people thereof respectively, are this day in rebellion against the United States, the following, to wit: Arkansas, Texas, Louisiana (except the Parishes of St. Bernard, Plaquemines, Jefferson, St. Johns, St. Charles, St. James, Ascension, Assumption, Terrebonne, Lafourche, St. Mary, St. Martin, and Orleans, including the City of New Orleans), Mississippi, Alabama, Florida, Georgia, South Carolina, North Carolina, and Virginia (except the forty-eight counties designated as West Virginia, and also the counties of Berkley, Accomac, Northampton, Elizabeth City, York, Princess Ann, and Norfolk, including the cities of Norfolk and Portsmouth); and which excepted parts are, for the present, left precisely as if this proclamation were not issued. And by virtue of the power, and for the purpose aforesaid, I do order and declare that all persons held as slaves within said designated States, and parts of States, are, and henceforward shall be free; and that the Executive government of the United States, including the military and naval authorities thereof, will recognize and maintain the freedom of said persons. And I hereby enjoin upon the people so declared to be free to abstain from all violence, unless in necessary self-defence; and I recommend to them that, in all cases when allowed, they labor faithfully for reasonable wages.

168

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.028

Final Emancipation Proclamation And I further declare and make known, that such persons of suitable condition, will be received into the armed service of the United States to garrison forts, positions, stations, and other places, and to man vessels of all sorts in said service. And upon this act, sincerely believed to be an act of justice, warranted by the Constitution, upon military necessity, I invoke the considerate judgment of mankind, and the gracious favor of Almighty God. In witness whereof, I have hereunto set my hand and caused the seal of the United States to be affixed. Done at the City of Washington, this first day of January, in the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and sixty-three, and of the Independence of the United States of America the eighty-seventh. By the President: Abraham Lincoln William H. Seward, Secretary of State. January 1, 1863

169

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.028

23

To General John A. McClernand

In this letter to General McClernand Lincoln restates his policy on emancipation and his view that the president alone has the authority to emancipate slaves in enemy territory. Executive Mansion, Washington January 8, 1863

Major General MeClernand

My dear Sir Your interesting communication by the hand of Major Scates is received. I never did ask more, nor ever was willing to accept less, than for all the States, and the people thereof, to take and hold their places, and their rights, in the Union, under the Constitution of the United States. For this alone have I felt authorized to struggle; and I seek neither more nor less now. Still, to use a coarse, but an expressive figure, broken eggs cannot be mended. I have issued the Emancipation Proclamation, and I cannot retract it. After the commencement of hostilities I struggled nearly a year and a half to get along without touching the “institution”; and when finally I conditionally determined to touch it, I gave a hundred days’ fair notice of my purpose, to all the States and people, within which time they could have turned it wholly aside, by simply again becoming good citizens of the United States. They chose to disregard it, and I made the peremptory proclamation on what appeared to me to be a military necessity. And being made, it must stand. As to the States not included in it, of course they can have their rights in the Union as of old. Even the people of the 170

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.029

Letter to General McClernand states included, if they choose, need not to be hurt by it. Let them adopt systems of apprenticeship for the colored people, conforming substantially to the most approved plans of gradual emancipation; and, with the aid they can have from the general government, they may be nearly as well off, in this respect, as if the present trouble had not occurred, and much better off than they can possibly be if the contest continues persistently. As to any dread of my having a “purpose to enslave, or exterminate, the whites of the South,” I can scarcely believe that such dread exists. It is too absurd. I believe you can be my personal witness that no man is less to be dreaded for undue severity, in any case. If the friends you mention really wish to have peace upon the old terms, they should act at once. Every day makes the case more difficult. They can so act, with entire safety, so far as I am concerned. I think you would better not make this letter public; but you may rely confidently on my standing by whatever I have said in it. Please write me if any thing more comes to light. Yours very truly

171

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.029

24

To Erastus Corning and Others

On May 1, 1863 former Ohio congressman Clement L. Vallandigham defied General Ambrose Burnside’s decree that anyone speaking publicly and sympathetically in defense of the Confederate cause would be summarily arrested and jailed and denied habeas corpus (see selection 20). The jailing of Vallandigham, a prominent Peace Democrat or “Copperhead,” produced public outcries at protest meetings throughout the Union. Lincoln neither knew of nor approved Burnside’s arrest of Vallandigham, but felt forced to defend it. Here he replies to resolutions passed at a meeting of loyal Democrats in Albany, New York, led by businessman and former congressman Erastus Corning.

Hon. Erastus Corning and others:

Executive Mansion, Washington. June 12, 1863

Gentlemen: Your letter of May 19, inclosing the resolutions of a public meeting held at Albany, NY, on the 16th of the same month, was received several days ago. The resolutions, as I understand them, are resolvable into two propositions – first, the expression of a purpose to sustain the cause of the Union, to secure peace through victory, and to support the Administration in every constitutional and lawful measure to suppress the Rebellion; and secondly, a declaration of censure upon the Administration for supposed unconstitutional action, such as the making of military arrests. And, from the two propositions, a third is deduced, which is that the gentlemen 172

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.030

Letter to Erastus Corning et al. composing the meeting are resolved on doing their part to maintain our common government and country, despite the folly or wickedness, as they may conceive, of any Administration. This position is eminently patriotic, and as such I thank the meeting and congratulate the nation for it. My own purpose is the same; so that the meeting and myself have a common object, and can have no difference, except in the choice of means or measures for effecting that object. And here I ought to close this paper, and would close it, if there were no apprehension that more injurious consequences than any merely personal to myself might follow the censures systematically cast upon me for doing what, in my view of duty, I could not forbear. The resolutions promise to support me in every constitutional and lawful measure to suppress the Rebellion; and I have not knowingly employed, nor shall knowingly employ, any other. But the meeting, by their resolutions, assert and argue that certain military arrests, and proceedings following them, for which I am ultimately responsible, are unconstitutional. I think they are not. The resolutions quote from the Constitution the definition of treason, and also the limiting safeguards and guarantees therein provided for the citizen on trials for treason, and on his being held to answer for capital or otherwise infamous crimes, and, in criminal prosecutions, his right to a speedy and public trial by an impartial jury. They proceed to resolve “that these safeguards of the rights of the citizen against the pretensions of arbitrary power were intended more especially for his protection in times of civil commotion.” And, apparently to demonstrate the proposition, the resolutions proceed: “They were secured substantially to the English people after years of protracted civil war, and were adopted into our Constitution at the close of the Revolution.” Would not the demonstration have been better if it could have been truly said that these safeguards had been adopted and applied during the civil wars and during our Revolution, instead of after the one and at the close of the other? I, too, am devotedly for them after civil war, and before civil war, and at all times, “except when, in cases of rebellion or invasion, the public safety may require” their suspension. The resolutions proceed to tell us that these safeguards “have stood the test of seventy-six years of trial, under our republican system, under circumstances which show that, while they constitute the foundation of all free government, they are the elements of the enduring stability of the Republic.” No one denies that they have so stood the test up to the beginning of the present Rebellion, if we except a certain occurrence at New Orleans; nor does any one question that they will 173

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.030

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches stand the same test much longer after the Rebellion closes. But these provisions of the Constitution have no application to the case we have in hand, because the arrests complained of were not made for treason – that is, not for the treason defined in the Constitution, and upon conviction of which the punishment is death – nor yet were they made to hold persons to answer for any capital or otherwise infamous crimes; nor were the proceedings following, in any constitutional or legal sense, “criminal prosecutions.” The arrests were made on totally different grounds, and the proceedings following accorded with the grounds of the arrests. Let us consider the real case with which we are dealing, and apply to it the parts of the Constitution plainly made for such cases. Prior to my installation here, it had been inculcated that any State had a lawful right to secede from the national Union, and that it would be expedient to exercise the right whenever the devotees of the doctrine should fail to elect a President to their own liking. I was elected contrary to their liking; and, accordingly, so far as it was legally possible, they had taken seven States out of the Union, had seized many of the United States forts, and had fired upon the United States flag, all before I was inaugurated, and, of course, before I had done any official act whatever. The Rebellion thus began soon ran into the present Civil War; and, in certain respects, it began on very unequal terms between the parties. The insurgents had been preparing for it more than thirty years, while the Government had taken no steps to resist them. The former had carefully considered all the means which could be turned to their account. It undoubtedly was a well-pondered reliance with them that, in their own unrestricted efforts to destroy Union, Constitution, and law, all together, the Government would, in great degree, be restrained by the same Constitution and law from arresting their progress. Their sympathizers pervaded all departments of the Government and nearly all communities of the people. From this material, under cover of “liberty of speech,” “liberty of the press,” and “habeas corpus,” they hoped to keep on foot among us a most efficient corps of spies, informers, suppliers, and aiders and abettors of their cause in a thousand ways. They knew that in times such as they were inaugurating, by the Constitution itself, the “habeas corpus” might be suspended; but they also knew they had friends who would make a question as to who was to suspend it; meanwhile, their spies and others might remain at large to help on their cause. Or, if, as has happened, the Executive should suspend the writ, without ruinous waste of time, instances of arresting innocent persons might occur, as are always 174

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.030

Letter to Erastus Corning et al. likely to occur in such cases; and then a clamor could be raised in regard to this, which might be, at least, of some service to the insurgent cause. It needed no very keen perception to discover this part of the enemy’s programme, so soon as, by open hostilities, their machinery was fairly put in motion. Yet, thoroughly imbued with a reverence for the guaranteed rights of individuals, I was slow to adopt the strong measures which by degrees I have been forced to regard as being within the exceptions of the Constitution, and as indispensable to the public safety. Nothing is better known to history than that courts of justice are utterly incompetent to such cases. Civil courts are organized chiefly for trials of individuals, or, at most, a few individuals acting in concert; and this in quiet times, and on charges of crimes well defined in the law. Even in times of peace, bands of horse-thieves and robbers frequently grow too numerous and powerful for the ordinary courts of justice. But what comparison, in numbers, have such bands ever borne to the insurgent sympathizers, even in many of the loyal States? Again: a jury too frequently has at least one member more ready to hang the panel than to hang the traitor. And yet, again, he who dissuades one man from volunteering, or induces one soldier to desert, weakens the Union cause as much as he who kills a Union soldier in battle. Yet this dissuasion or inducement may be so conducted as to be no defined crime of which any civil court would take cognizance. Ours is a case of rebellion – so called by the resolutions before me – in fact, a clear, flagrant, and gigantic case of rebellion; and the provision of the Constitution that “the privilege of the writ of habeas corpus shall not be suspended, unless when, in case of rebellion or invasion, the public safety may require it,” 1 is the provision which specially applies to our present case. This provision plainly attests the understanding of those who made the Constitution, that ordinary courts of justice are inadequate to “cases of rebellion” – attests their purpose that, in such cases, men may be held in custody whom the courts, acting on ordinary rules, would discharge. Habeas corpus does not discharge men who are proved to be guilty of defined crime; and its suspension is allowed by the Constitution on purpose that men may be arrested and held who cannot be proved to be guilty of defined crime, “when, in cases of rebellion or invasion, the public safety may require it.” This is precisely our present case – a case of rebellion, wherein the public safety does require the suspension. Indeed, arrests by process of courts, and arrests in cases of rebellion, do not 1

US Constitution, Article I, section 9.

175

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.030

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches proceed altogether upon the same basis. The former is directed at the small percentage of ordinary and continuous perpetration of crime; while the latter is directed at sudden and extensive uprisings against the Government, which at most, will succeed or fail in no great length of time. In the latter case, arrests are made, not so much for what has been done, as for what probably would be done. The latter is more for the preventive and less for the vindictive than the former. In such cases, the purposes of men are much more easily understood than in cases of ordinary crime. The man who stands by and says nothing when the peril of his Government is discussed, cannot be misunderstood. If not hindered, he is sure to help the enemy; much more, if he talks ambiguously – talks for his country with “buts” and “ifs” and “ands.” Of how little value the constitutional provisions I have quoted will be rendered, if arrests shall never be made until defined crimes shall have been committed, may be illustrated by a few notable examples. Gen[eral] John C. Breckinridge, Gen[eral] Robert E. Lee, Gen[eral] Joseph E. Johnston, Gen[eral] John B. Magruder, Gen[eral] William B. Preston, Gen[eral] Simon B. Buckner, and Commodore Franklin Buchanan, now occupying the very highest places in the Rebel war service, were all within the power of the Government since the Rebellion began, and were nearly as well known to be traitors then as now. Unquestionably if we had seized and held them, the insurgent cause would be much weaker. But no one of them had then committed any crime defined in the law. Every one of them, if arrested, would have been discharged on habeas corpus were the writ allowed to operate. In view of these and similar cases, I think the time not unlikely to come when I shall be blamed for having made too few arrests rather than too many. By the third resolution, the meeting indicate their opinion that military arrests may be constitutional in localities where rebellion actually exists, but that such arrests are unconstitutional in localities where rebellion or insurrection does not actually exist. They insist that such arrests shall not be made “outside of the lines of necessary military occupation, and the scenes of insurrection.” Inasmuch, however, as the Constitution itself makes no such distinction, I am unable to believe that there is any such constitutional distinction. I concede that the class of arrests complained of can be constitutional only when, in cases of rebellion or invasion, the public safety may require them; and I insist that in such cases they are constitutional wherever the public safety does require them; as well in places to which they may prevent the Rebellion extending as in those 176

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.030

Letter to Erastus Corning et al. where it may be already prevailing; as well where they may restrain mischievous interference with the raising and supplying of armies to suppress the Rebellion, as where the Rebellion may actually be; as well where they may restrain the enticing men out of the army, as where they would prevent mutiny in the army; equally constitutional at all places where they will conduce to the public safety, as against the dangers of rebellion or invasion. Take the particular case mentioned by the meeting. It is asserted, in substance, that Mr. Vallandigham2 was, by a military commander, seized and tried “for no other reason than words addressed to a public meeting, in criticism of the course of the Administration, and in condemnation of the Military orders of the General.” Now, if there be no mistake about this; if this assertion is the truth and the whole truth; if there was no other reason for the arrest, then I concede that the arrest was wrong. But the arrest, as I understand, was made for a very different reason. Mr. Vallandigham avows his hostility to the War on the part of the Union; and his arrest was made because he was laboring, with some effect, to prevent the raising of troops; to encourage desertions from the army; and to leave the Rebellion without an adequate military force to suppress it. He was not arrested because he was damaging the political prospects of the Administration, or the personal interests of the Commanding General, but because he was damaging the Army, upon the existence and vigor of which the life of the Nation depends. He was warring upon the Military, and this gave the Military constitutional jurisdiction to lay hands upon him. If Mr. Vallandigham was not damaging the military power of the country, then his arrest was made on mistake of fact, which I would be glad to correct on reasonably satisfactory evidence. I understand the meeting, whose resolutions I am considering, to be in favor of suppressing the Rebellion by military force – by armies. Long experience has shown that armies cannot be maintained unless desertions shall be punished by the severe penalty of death. The case requires, and the law and the Constitution sanction, this punishment. Must I shoot a simple-minded soldier boy who deserts, while I must not touch a hair of a wily agitator who induces him to desert? This is none the less injurious 2

Former congressman Clement L. Vallandigham of Ohio was a “Copperhead” – an anti-war Democrat who sympathized with the South – who defied General Ambrose Burnside’s order forbidding any public expression of pro-Confederate views. His arrest and imprisonment without trial led to widespread protests in the North. AL opposed the order and the detention, and Vallandigham was finally freed and ordered to be banished behind Confederate lines for the remainder of the war.

177

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.030

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches when effected by getting a father, or brother, or friend, into a public meeting, and there working upon his feelings till he is persuaded to write the soldier boy that he is fighting in a bad cause, for a wicked Administration of a contemptible Government, too weak to arrest and punish him if he shall desert. I think that in such a case to silence the agitator, and save the boy is not only constitutional, but withal a great mercy. If I be wrong on this question of constitutional power, my error lies in believing that certain proceedings are constitutional when, in cases of rebellion or invasion, the public safety requires them, which would not be constitutional when, in the absence of rebellion or invasion, the public safety does not require them: in other words, that the Constitution is not, in its application, in all respects the same, in cases of rebellion or invasion involving the public safety, as it is in time of profound peace and public security. The Constitution itself makes the distinction; and I can no more be persuaded that the Government can constitutionally take no strong measures in time of rebellion, because it can be shown that the same could not be lawfully taken in time of peace, than I can be persuaded that a particular drug is not good medicine for a sick man, because it can be shown not to be good for a well one. Nor am I able to appreciate the danger apprehended by the meeting that the American people will, by means of military arrests during the Rebellion, lose the right of Public Discussion, the Liberty of Speech and the Press, the Law of Evidence, Trial by Jury, and Habeas Corpus, throughout the indefinite peaceful future, which I trust lies before them, any more than I am able to believe that a man could contract so strong an appetite for emetics during temporary illness as to persist in feeding upon them during the remainder of his healthful life. In giving the resolutions that earnest consideration which you request of me, I cannot overlook the fact that the meeting speak as “Democrats.” Nor can I, with full respect for their known intelligence, and the fairly presumed deliberation with which they prepared their resolutions, be permitted to suppose that this occurred by accident, or in any way other than that they preferred to designate themselves “Democrats” rather than “American citizens.” In this time of national peril, I would have preferred to meet you upon a level one step higher than any party platform; because I am sure that, from such more elevated position, we could do better battle for the country we all love than we possibly can from those lower ones where, from the force of habit, the prejudices of the past, and selfish hopes of the future, 178

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.030

Letter to Erastus Corning et al. we are sure to expend much of our ingenuity and strength in finding fault with, and aiming blows at each other. But, since you have denied me this, I will yet be thankful, for the country’s sake, that not all Democrats have done so. He on whose discretionary judgment Mr. Vallandigham was arrested and tried is a Democrat, having no old party affinity with me; and the judge who rejected the constitutional view expressed in these resolutions, by refusing to discharge Mr. Vallandigham on habeas corpus, is a Democrat of better days than these, having received his judicial mantle at the hands of President Jackson. And still more, of all those Democrats who are nobly exposing their lives and shedding their blood on the battle-field, I have learned that many approve the course taken with Mr. Vallandigham, while I have not heard of a single one condemning it. I cannot assert that there are none such. And the name of President Jackson recalls an instance of pertinent history: After the battle of New Orleans, and while the fact that the treaty of peace had been concluded was well known in the city, but before official knowledge of it had arrived, Gen[eral] Jackson still maintained martial or military law. Now that it could be said the war was over, the clamor against martial law, which had existed from the first, grew more furious. Among other things, a Mr. Louiallier published a denunciatory newspaper article. Gen[eral] Jackson arrested him. A lawyer by the name of Morel procured the United States Judge Hall to issue a writ of habeas corpus to release Mr. Louiallier, Gen[eral] Jackson arrested both the lawyer and the judge. A Mr. Hollander ventured to say of some part of the matter that “it was a dirty trick.” Gen[eral] Jackson arrested him. When the officer undertook to serve the writ of habeas corpus, Gen[eral] Jackson took it from him, and sent him away with a copy. Holding the judge in custody a few days, the General sent him beyond the limits of his encampment, and set him at liberty, with an order to remain till the ratification of peace should be regularly announced, or until the British should have left the Southern coast. A day or two more elapsed, the ratification of a treaty of peace was regularly announced, and the judge and others were fully liberated. A few days more, and the judge called Gen[eral] Jackson into court and fined him $1,000 for having arrested him and the others named. The General paid the fine, and there the matter rested for nearly thirty years, when Congress refunded principal and interest. The late Senator Douglas,3 then in the House of Representatives, took a leading part in the debates, in which the constitutional question was much discussed. I am not 3

Senator Douglas died on June 6, 1861.

179

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.030

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches prepared to say whom the journals would show to have voted for the measure. It may be remarked: First, that we had the same Constitution then as now; secondly, that we then had a case of invasion, and now we have a case of rebellion; and, thirdly, that the permanent right of the People to Public Discussion, the Liberty of Speech and the Press, the Trial by Jury, the Law of Evidence, and the Habeas Corpus, suffered no detriment whatever by that conduct of Gen[eral] Jackson, or its subsequent approval by the American Congress. And yet, let me say that, in my own discretion, I do not know whether I would have ordered the arrest of Mr. Vallandigham. While I cannot shift the responsibility from myself, I hold that, as a general rule, the commander in the field is the better judge of the necessity in any particular case. Of course, I must practice a general directory and revisory power in the matter. One of the resolutions expresses the opinion of the meeting that arbitrary arrests will have the effect to divide and distract those who should be united in suppressing the Rebellion, and I am specifically called on to discharge Mr. Vallandigham. I regard this as, at least, a fair appeal to me on the expediency of exercising a Constitutional power which I think exists. In response to such appeal, I have to say, it gave me pain when I learned that Mr. Vallandigham had been arrested – that is, I was pained that there should have seemed to be a necessity for arresting him – and that it will afford me great pleasure to discharge him so soon as I can, by any means, believe the public safety will not suffer by it. I further say that, as the war progresses, it appears to me, opinion, and action, which were in great confusion at first, take shape, and fall into more regular channels, so that the necessity for strong dealing with them gradually decreases. I have every reason to desire that it should cease altogether, and far from the least is my regard for the opinions and wishes of those who, like the meeting at Albany, declare their purpose to sustain the Government in every constitutional and lawful measure to suppress the Rebellion. Still, I must continue to do so much as may seem to be required by the public safety.

180

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.030

25

To Matthew Birchard and Others: Reply to the Ohio Democratic Convention

Upon learning that leading Democrats in Ohio had drafted resolutions condemning Lincoln for arresting Vallandigham and other agitators, Lincoln wrote to Birchard and other delegates to the Ohio State Democratic convention. He expands and elaborates upon the justification proffered to Erastus Corning (see selection 24). Vallandigham was finally freed and ordered banished behind Confederate lines for the duration of the Civil War. Washington, DC June 29, 1863 Gentlemen: The resolutions of the Ohio Democratic State convention which you present me, together with your introductory and closing remarks, being in position and argument, mainly the same as the resolutions of the Democratic meeting at Albany, New York, I refer you to my response to the latter,1 as meeting most of the points in the former. This response you evidently used in preparing your remarks, and I desire no more than that it be used with accuracy. In a single reading of your remarks I only discovered one inaccuracy in matter which I suppose you took from that paper. It is when you say “The undersigned are unable to agree with you in the opinion you have expressed that the constitution is different in time of insurrection or invasion from what it is in time of peace & public security.” A recurrence to the paper will show you that I have not expressed the opinion you suppose. I expressed the opinion that the 1

See selection 24.

181

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.031

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches constitution is different, in its application in cases of Rebellion or Invasion, involving the Public Safety, from what it is in times of profound peace and public security; and this opinion I adhere to, simply because, by the constitution itself, things may be done in the one case which may not be done in the other. I dislike to waste a word on a merely personal point; but I must respectfully assure you that you will find yourselves at fault should you ever seek for evidence to prove your assumption that I “opposed, in discussions before the people, the policy of the Mexican war.” You say “Expunge from the constitution this limitation upon the power of congress to suspend the writ of Habeas corpus, and yet the other guaranties of personal liberty would remain unchanged.” Doubtless if this clause of the constitution, improperly called, as I think, a limitation upon the power of Congress, were expunged, the other guaranties would remain the same; but the question is, not how those guaranties would stand, with that clause out of the constitution, but how they stand with that clause remaining in it – in cases of Rebellion or Invasion, involving the Public Safety. If the liberty could be indulged, of expunging that clause letter and spirit, I really think the constitutional argument would be with you. My general view on this question was stated in the Albany response, and hence I do not state it now. I only add that, as seems to me, the benefit of the writ of Habeas corpus, is the great means through which the guaranties of personal liberty are conserved, and made available in the last resort; and corroborative of this view, is the fact that Mr. V[allandigham] in the very case in question, 2 under the advice of able lawyers, saw not where else to go but to the Habeas Corpus. But by the constitution the benefit of the writ of Habeas corpus itself may be suspended when in cases of Rebellion or Invasion the Public Safety may require it. You ask, in substance, whether I really claim that I may override all the guarantied rights of individuals, on the plea of conserving the public safety – when I may choose to say the public safety requires it. This question, divested of the phraseology calculated to represent me as struggling for an arbitrary personal prerogative, is either simply a question who shall decide, or an affirmation that nobody shall decide, what the public safety does require, in cases of Rebellion or Invasion. The

2

See selection 24, n. 2.

182

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.031

Letter to Matthew Birchard et al. constitution contemplates the question as likely to occur for decision, but it does not expressly declare who is to decide it. By necessary implication, when Rebellion or Invasion comes, the decision is to be made, from time to time; and I think the man whom, for the time, the people have, under the constitution, made the commander-in-chief of their Army and Navy, is the man who holds the power, and bears the responsibility of making it. If he uses the power justly, the same people will probably justify him; if he abuses it, he is in their hands, to be dealt with by all the modes they have reserved to themselves in the constitution. The earnestness with which you insist that persons can only, in times of rebellion, be lawfully dealt with, in accordance with the rules for criminal trials and punishments in times of peace, induces me to add a word to what I said on that point, in the Albany response. You claim that men may, if they choose, embarrass those whose duty it is, to combat a giant rebellion, and then be dealt with in turn, only as if there was no rebellion. The constitution itself rejects this view. The military arrests and detentions, which have been made, including those of Mr. V. which are not different in principle from the others, have been for prevention, and not for punishment – as injunctions to stay injury, as proceedings to keep the peace – and hence, like proceedings in such cases, and for like reasons, they have not been accompanied with indictments, or trials by juries, nor, in a single case by any punishment whatever, beyond what is purely incidental to the prevention. The original sentence of imprisonment in Mr. V.’s case, was to prevent injury to the Military service only, and the modification of it was made as a less disagreeable mode to him, of securing the same prevention. I am unable to perceive an insult to Ohio in the case of Mr. V. Quite surely nothing of the sort was or is intended. I was wholly unaware that Mr. V. was at the time of his arrest a candidate for the democratic nomination for Governor until so informed by your reading to me the resolutions of the convention. I am grateful to the State of Ohio for many things, especially for the brave soldiers and officers she has given in the present national trial, to the armies of the Union. You claim, as I understand, that according to my own position in the Albany response, Mr. V. should be released; and this because, as you claim, he has not damaged the military service, by discouraging enlistments, encouraging desertions, or otherwise; and that if he had, he should have been turned over to the civil authorities under recent acts of Congress. I certainly do not know that Mr. V. has specifically, and by 183

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.031

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches direct language, advised against enlistments, and in favor of desertion, and resistance to drafting. We all know that combinations, armed in some instances, to resist the arrest of deserters, began several months ago; that more recently the like has appeared in resistance to the enrolment preparatory to a draft; and that quite a number of assassinations have occurred from the same animus. These had to be met by military force, and this again has led to bloodshed and death. And now under a sense of responsibility more weighty and enduring than any which is merely official, I solemnly declare my belief that this hindrance, of the military, including maiming and murder, is due to the course in which Mr. V. has been engaged, in a greater degree than to any other cause; and is due to him personally, in a greater degree than to any other one man. These things have been notorious, known to all, and of course known to Mr. V. Perhaps I would not be wrong to say they originated with his special friends and adherents. With perfect knowledge of them, he has frequently, if not constantly made speeches, in Congress, and before popular assemblies; and if it can be shown that, with these things staring him, in the face, he has ever uttered a word of rebuke, or counsel against them, it will be a fact greatly in his favor with me, and one of which, as yet, I am totally ignorant. When it is known that the whole burthen of his speeches has been to stir up men against the prosecution of the war, and that in the midst of resistance to it, he has not been known, in any instance, to counsel against such resistance, it is next to impossible to repel the inference that he has counselled directly in favor of it. With all this before their eyes the convention you represent have nominated Mr. V. for Governor of Ohio; and both they and you, have declared the purpose to sustain the national Union by all constitutional means. But, of course, they and you, in common, reserve to yourselves to decide what are constitutional means; and, unlike the Albany meeting, you omit to state, or intimate, that in your opinion, an army is a constitutional means of saving the Union against a rebellion; or even to intimate that you are conscious of an existing rebellion being in progress with the avowed object of destroying that very Union. At the same time your nominee for Governor, in whose behalf you appeal, is known to you, and to the world, to declare against the use of an army to suppress the rebellion. Your own attitude, therefore, encourages desertion, resistance to the draft and the like, because it teaches those who incline to desert, and to escape the draft, to believe it is your purpose to protect them, and to hope that you will become strong enough to do so. After a short personal 184

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.031

Letter to Matthew Birchard et al. intercourse with you gentlemen of the committee, I cannot say I think you desire this effect to follow your attitude; but I assure you that both friends and enemies of the Union look upon it in this light. It is a substantial hope, and by consequence, a real strength to the enemy. If it is a false hope, and one which you would willingly dispel, I will make the way exceedingly easy. I send you duplicates of this letter, in order that you, or a majority of you, may if you choose, indorse your names upon one of them, and return it thus indorsed to me, with the understanding that those signing, are thereby committed to the following propositions, and to nothing else. 1. That there is now a rebellion in the United States, the object and tendency of which is to destroy the national Union; and that in your opinion, an army and navy are constitutional means for suppressing that rebellion. 2. That no one of you will do any thing which in his own judgment, will tend to hinder the increase, or favor the decrease, or lessen the efficiency of the army or navy, while engaged in the effort to suppress that rebellion; and, 3. That each of you will, in his sphere, do all he can to have the officers, soldiers, and seamen of the army and navy, while engaged in the effort to suppress the rebellion, paid, fed, clad, and otherwise well provided and supported. And with the further understanding that upon receiving the letter and names thus indorsed, I will cause them to be published, which publication shall be within itself, a revocation of the order in relation to Mr. V. It will not escape observation that I consent to the release of Mr. V upon terms, not embracing any pledge from him, or from others as to what he will, or will not do. I do this because he is not present to speak for himself, or to authorize others to speak for him; and because I should expect that on his returning, he would not put himself practically in antagonism with the position of his friends. But I do it chiefly because I thereby prevail on other influential gentlemen of Ohio to so define their position, as to be of immense value to the Army – thus more than compensating for the consequences of any mistake in allowing Mr. V. to return; and so that, on the whole, the public safety will not have suffered by it. Still, in regard to Mr. V. and all others, I must hereafter as heretofore, do so much as the public safety may seem to require. I have the honor to be respectfully yours, etc.,

185

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.031

26

To James C. Conkling

In Lincoln’s home state of Illinois, Peace Democrats or “Copperheads” had drafted resolutions opposing the Emancipation Proclamation (see selection 22), agitating for peace at any price, and decrying Lincoln’s decision to deploy colored troops. Hoping to halt the spread of such views Lincoln’s friend James C. Conkling called a meeting of staunch Unionists to which he invited the president. Instead of attending Lincoln sent the following firmly worded letter with instructions to Conkling to read it “very slowly” to the assembled multitude. Executive Mansion, Washington. August 26, 1863

Hon. James C. Conkling

My Dear Sir. Your letter inviting me to attend a mass-meeting of unconditional Union men, to be held at the Capital of Illinois, on the 3rd day of September, has been received. It would be very agreeable to me, to thus meet my old friends, at my own home; but I cannot, just now, be absent from here, so long as a visit there would require. The meeting is to be of all those who maintain unconditional devotion to the Union; and I am sure my old political friends will thank me for tendering, as I do, the nation’s gratitude to those other noble men, whom no partizan malice, or partizan hope, can make false to the nation’s life. There are those who are dissatisfied with me. To such I would say: You desire peace; and you blame me that we do not have it. But how can 186

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.032

Letter to James C. Conkling we attain it? There are but three conceivable ways. First, to suppress the rebellion by force of arms. This, I am trying to do. Are you for it? If you are, so far we are agreed. If you are not for it, a second way is, to give up the Union. I am against this. Are you for it? If you are, you should say so plainly. If you are not for force, nor yet for dissolution, there only remains some imaginable compromise. I do not believe any compromise, embracing the maintenance of the Union, is now possible. All I learn, leads to a directly opposite belief. The strength of the rebellion, is its military – its army. That army dominates all the country, and all the people, within its range. Any offer of terms made by any man or men within that range, in opposition to that army, is simply nothing for the present; because such man or men have no power whatever to enforce their side of a compromise, if one were made with them. To illustrate – Suppose refugees from the South, and peace men of the North, get together in convention, and frame and proclaim a compromise embracing a restoration of the Union; in what way can that compromise be used to keep Lee’s army out of Pennsylvania? Meade’s army can keep Lee’s army out of Pennsylvania; and, I think, can ultimately drive it out of existence. But no paper compromise, to which the controllers of Lee’s army are not agreed, can, at all, affect that army. In an effort at such compromise we should waste time, which the enemy would improve to our disadvantage; and that would be all. A compromise, to be effective, must be made either with those who control the rebel army, or with the people first liberated from the domination of that army, by the success of our own army. Now allow me to assure you, that no word or intimation, from that rebel army, or from any of the men controlling it, in relation to any peace compromise, has ever come to my knowledge or belief. All charges and insinuations to the contrary, are deceptive and groundless. And I promise you, that if any such proposition shall hereafter come, it shall not be rejected, and kept a secret from you. I freely acknowledge myself the servant of the people, according to the bond of service – the United States constitution; and that, as such, I am responsible to them. But, to be plain, you are dissatisfied with me about the negro. Quite likely there is a difference of opinion between you and myself upon that subject. I certainly wish that all men could be free, while I suppose you do not. Yet I have neither adopted, nor proposed any measure, which is not consistent with even your view, provided you are for the Union. I

187

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.032

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches suggested compensated emancipation;1 to which you replied you wished not to be taxed to buy negroes. But I had not asked you to be taxed to buy negroes, except in such way, as to save you from greater taxation to save the Union exclusively by other means. You dislike the Emancipation Proclamation;2 and, perhaps, would have it retracted. You say it is unconstitutional – I think differently. I think the Constitution invests its commander-in-chief with the law of war, in time of war. The most that can be said, if so much, is, that slaves are property. Is there – has there ever been – any question that by the law of war, property, both of enemies and friends, may be taken when needed? And is it not needed whenever taking it, helps us, or hurts the enemy? Armies, the world over, destroy enemies’ property when they cannot use it; and even destroy their own to keep it from the enemy. Civilized belligerents do all in their power to help themselves, or hurt the enemy, except a few things regarded as barbarous or cruel. Among the exceptions are the massacre of vanquished foes, and non-combatants, male and female. But the proclamation, as law, either is valid, or is not valid, it needs no retraction. If it is valid, it cannot be retracted, any more than the dead can be brought to life. Some of you profess to think its retraction would operate favorably for the Union. Why better after the retraction, than before the issue? There was more than a year and a half of trial to suppress the rebellion before the proclamation issued, the last one hundred days of which passed under an explicit notice that it was coming, unless averted by those in revolt, returning to their allegiance. The war has certainly progressed as favorably for us, since the issue of the proclamation as before. I know as fully as one can know the opinions of others, that some of the commanders of our armies in the field who have given us our most important successes, believe the emancipation policy, and the use of colored troops, constitute the heaviest blow yet dealt to the rebellion and that, at least one of those important successes, could not have been achieved when it was but for the aid of black soldiers. Among the commanders holding these views are some who have never had any affinity with what is called abolitionism, or with Republican party politics but who hold them purely as military opinions. I submit these opinions as being entitled to some weight against the objections, often urged, that emancipation, and arming the blacks, are unwise as military measures, and were not adopted, as such, in good faith. 1

See selection 16.

2

See selection 22.

188

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.032

Letter to James C. Conkling You say you will not fight to free negroes. Some of them seem willing to fight for you; but, no matter. Fight you, then, exclusively to save the Union. I issued the proclamation on purpose to aid you in saving the Union. Whenever you shall have conquered all resistance to the Union, if I shall urge you to continue fighting, it will be an apt time, then, for you to declare you will not fight to free negroes. I thought that in your struggle for the Union, to whatever extent the negroes should cease helping the enemy, to that extent it weakened the enemy in his resistance to you. Do you think differently? I thought that whatever negroes can be got to do as soldiers, leaves just so much less for white soldiers to do, in saving the Union. Does it appear otherwise to you? But negroes, like other people, act upon motives. Why should they do any thing for us, if we will do nothing for them? If they stake their lives for us, they must be prompted by the strongest motive – even the promise of freedom. And the promise being made, must be kept. The signs look better. The Father of Waters again goes unvexed to the sea.3 Thanks to the great North-West for it. Nor yet wholly to them. Three hundred miles up, they met New England, Empire, Keystone, and Jersey, hewing their way right and left. The Sunny South too, in more colors than one, also lent a hand. On the spot, their part of the history was jotted down in black and white. The job was a great national one; and let none be banned who bore an honorable part in it. And while those who have cleared the great river may well be proud, even that is not all. It is hard to say that anything has been more bravely, and well done, than at Antietam, Murfreesboro, Gettysburg, and on many fields of lesser note. Nor must Uncle Sam’s Web-feet be forgotten. At all the watery margins they have been present. Not only on the deep sea, the broad bay, and the rapid river, but also up the narrow muddy bayou, and wherever the ground was a little damp, they have been, and made their tracks. Thanks to all. For the great republic – for the principle it lives by, and keeps alive – for man’s vast future – thanks to all. Peace does not appear so distant as it did. I hope it will come soon, and come to stay; and so come as to be worth the keeping in all future time. It will then have been proved that, among free men, there can be no successful appeal from the ballot to the bullet; and that they who take 3

Union troops had recently defeated at Vicksburg Confederate forces that had blockaded the Mississippi River (“the Father of Waters”), thereby opening the river to military and commercial shipping.

189

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.032

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches such appeal are sure to lose their case, and pay the cost. And then, there will be some black men who can remember that, with silent tongue, and clenched teeth, and steady eye, and well-poised bayonet, they have helped mankind on to this great consummation; while, I fear, there will be some white ones, unable to forget that, with malignant heart, and deceitful speech, they have strove to hinder it. Still let us not be over-sanguine of a speedy final triumph. Let us be quite sober. Let us diligently apply the means, never doubting that a just God, in his own good time, will give us the rightful result. Yours very truly

190

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.032

27

The Gettysburg Address

The shortest and deservedly most famous of Lincoln’s public addresses, the Gettysburg Address was written in response to David Wills’s invitation to make “a few appropriate remarks” at the dedication of the new Soldiers’ National Cemetery at Gettysburg, Pennsylvania. The bloody Battle of Gettysburg had concluded only four months earlier, with a costly victory for the Union. Lincoln had come to believe that the Civil War was being fought not only to preserve the Union but to redeem the promise of the key “proposition” of the Declaration of Independence, that “all men are created equal.” Four score and seven years ago our fathers brought forth on this continent, a new nation, conceived in Liberty, and dedicated to the proposition that all men are created equal. Now we are engaged in a great civil war, testing whether that nation, or any nation so conceived and so dedicated, can long endure. We are met on a great battle-field of that war. We have come to dedicate a portion of that field, as a final resting place for those who here gave their lives that that nation might live. It is altogether fitting and proper that we should do this. But, in a larger sense, we cannot dedicate – we cannot consecrate – we cannot hallow – this ground. The brave men, living and dead, who struggled here, have consecrated it, far above our poor power to add or detract. The world will little note, nor long remember what we say here, but it can never forget what they did here. It is for us the living, rather, to be dedicated here to the unfinished work which they who fought here have thus far so nobly advanced. It is rather for us to be here dedicated to

191

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.033

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches the great task remaining before us – that from these honored dead we take increased devotion to that cause for which they gave the last full measure of devotion – that we here highly resolve that these dead shall not have died in vain – that this nation, under God, shall have a new birth of freedom – and that government of the people, by the people, for the people, shall not perish from the Earth. November 19, 1863

192

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.033

28

Third Annual Message to Congress

When Lincoln delivered his Third Annual Message to Congress the tide of war had begun to turn in favor of the Union, a turn the President traced to the bravery of all Union troops, including those of African descent. Here Lincoln looks forward to the reentry of the Southern states into the Union and outlines his requirements for their readmission and the reconstruction to follow (see also selection 29). Fellow citizens of the Senate and House of Representatives: Another year of health, and of sufficiently abundant harvests has passed. For these, and especially for the improved condition of our national affairs, our renewed, and profoundest gratitude to God is due . . . Of those who were slaves at the beginning of the rebellion, full one hundred thousand are now in the United States military service, about one-half of which number actually bear arms in the ranks; thus giving the double advantage of taking so much labor from the insurgent cause, and supplying the places which otherwise must be filled with so many white men. So far as tested, it is difficult to say they are not as good soldiers as any. No servile insurrection, or tendency to violence or cruelty, has marked the measures of emancipation and arming the blacks. These measures have been much discussed in foreign countries, and contemporary with such discussion the tone of public sentiment there is much improved. At home the same measures have been fully discussed, supported, criticised, and denounced, and the annual elections following are highly encouraging to those whose official duty it is to bear the country 193

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.034

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches through this great trial. Thus we have the new reckoning. The crisis which threatened to divide the friends of the Union is past. Looking now to the present and future, and with reference to a resumption of the national authority within the States wherein that authority has been suspended, I have thought fit to issue a proclamation, a copy of which is herewith transmitted.1 On examination of this proclamation it will appear, as is believed, that nothing is attempted beyond what is amply justified by the Constitution. True, the form of an oath is given, but no man is coerced to take it. The man is only promised a pardon in case he voluntarily takes the oath. The Constitution authorizes the Executive to grant or withhold the pardon at his own absolute discretion; and this includes the power to grant on terms, as is fully established by judicial and other authorities. It is also proffered that if, in any of the States named, a State government shall be, in the mode prescribed, set up, such government shall be recognized and guarantied by the United States, and that under it the State shall, on the constitutional conditions, be protected against invasion and domestic violence. The constitutional obligation of the United States to guaranty to every State in the Union a republican form of government, 2 and to protect the State, in the cases stated, is explicit and full. But why tender the benefits of this provision only to a State government set up in this particular way? This section of the Constitution contemplates a case wherein the element within a State, favorable to republican government, in the Union, may be too feeble for an opposite and hostile element external to, or even within the State; and such are precisely the cases with which we are now dealing. An attempt to guaranty and protect a revived State government, constructed in whole, or in preponderating part, from the very element against whose hostility and violence it is to be protected, is simply absurd. There must be a test by which to separate the opposing elements, so as to build only from the sound; and that test is a sufficiently liberal one, which accepts as sound whoever will make a sworn recantation of his former unsoundness. But if it be proper to require, as a test of admission to the political body, an oath of allegiance to the Constitution of the United States, and to the Union under it, why also to the laws and proclamations in regard to slavery? Those laws and proclamations were enacted and put forth 1

See selection 29.

2

US Constitution, Article IV, section 4.

194

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.034

Third Annual Message to Congress for the purpose of aiding in the suppression of the rebellion. To give them their fullest effect, there had to be a pledge for their maintenance. In my judgment they have aided, and will further aid, the cause for which they were intended. To now abandon them would be not only to relinquish a lever of power, but would also be a cruel and an astounding breach of faith. I may add at this point, that while I remain in my present position I shall not attempt to retract or modify the Emancipation Proclamation; nor shall I return to slavery any person who is free by the terms of that proclamation, or by any of the acts of Congress. For these and other reasons it is thought best that support of these measures shall be included in the oath; and it is believed the Executive may lawfully claim it in return for pardon and restoration of forfeited rights, which he has clear constitutional power to withhold altogether, or grant upon the terms which he shall deem wisest for the public interest. It should be observed, also, that this part of the oath is subject to the modifying and abrogating power of legislation and supreme judicial decision. The proposed acquiescence of the national Executive in any reasonable temporary State arrangement for the freed people is made with the view of possibly modifying the confusion and destitution which must, at best, attend all classes by a total revolution of labor throughout whole States. It is hoped that the already deeply afflicted people in those States may be somewhat more ready to give up the cause of their affliction, if to this extent, this vital matter be left to themselves; while no power of the national Executive to prevent an abuse is abridged by the proposition. The suggestion in the proclamation as to maintaining the political framework of the States on what is called reconstruction, is made in the hope that it may do good without danger of harm. It will save labor and avoid great confusion. But why any proclamation now upon this subject? This question is beset with the conflicting views that the step might be delayed too long or be taken too soon. In some States the elements for resumption seem ready for action, but remain inactive, apparently for want of a rallying point – a plan of action. Why shall A adopt the plan of B, rather than B that of A? And if A and B should agree, how can they know but that the general government here will reject their plan? By the proclamation a plan is presented which may be accepted by them as a rallying point, and which they are assured in advance will not be rejected here. This may bring them to act sooner than they otherwise would. 195

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.034

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches The objections to a premature presentation of a plan by the national Executive consists in the danger of committals on points which could be more safely left to further developments. Care has been taken to so shape the document as to avoid embarrassments from this source. Saying that, on certain terms, certain classes will be pardoned, with rights restored, it is not said that other classes, or other terms, will never be included. Saying that reconstruction will be accepted if presented in a specified way, it is not said it will never be accepted in any other way. The movements, by State action, for emancipation in several of the States, not included in the Emancipation Proclamation, are matters of profound gratulation. And while I do not repeat in detail what I have heretofore so earnestly urged upon this subject, my general views and feelings remain unchanged; and I trust that Congress will omit no fair opportunity of aiding these important steps to a great consummation. In the midst of other cares, however important, we must not lose sight of the fact that the war power is still our main reliance. To that power alone can we look, yet for a time, to give confidence to the people in the contested regions, that the insurgent power will not again overrun them. Until that confidence shall be established, little can be done anywhere for what is called reconstruction. Hence our chiefest care must still be directed to the army and navy, who have thus far borne their harder part so nobly and well. And it may be esteemed fortunate that in giving the greatest efficiency to these indispensable arms, we do also honorably recognize the gallant men, from commander to sentinel, who compose them, and to whom, more than to others, the world must stand indebted for the home of freedom disenthralled, regenerated, enlarged, and perpetuated. Washington, December 8, 1863

196

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.034

29

Proclamation of Amnesty and Reconstruction

Here Lincoln lays out the terms and conditions under which American citizenship will be restored to rebels. By the President of the United States of America: A Proclamation Whereas, in and by the Constitution of the United States, it is provided that the President “shall have power to grant reprieves and pardons for offences against the United States, except in cases of impeachment;” 1 and Whereas a rebellion now exists whereby the loyal State governments of several States have for a long time been subverted, and many persons have committed and are now guilty of treason against the United States; and Whereas, with reference to said rebellion and treason, laws have been enacted by Congress declaring forfeitures and confiscation of property and liberation of slaves, all upon terms and conditions therein stated, and also declaring that the President was thereby authorized at any time thereafter, by proclamation, to extend to persons who may have participated in the existing rebellion, in any State or part thereof, pardon and amnesty, with such exceptions and at such times and on such conditions as he may deem expedient for the public welfare; and Whereas the Congressional declaration for limited and conditional pardon accords with well-established judicial exposition of the pardoning power; and 1

US Constitution, Article II, section 2.

197

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.035

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches Whereas, with reference to said rebellion, the President of the United States has issued several proclamations, with provisions in regard to the liberation of slaves; and Whereas it is now desired by some persons heretofore engaged in said rebellion to resume their allegiance to the United States, and to reinaugurate loyal State governments within and for their respective States; therefore, I, Abraham Lincoln, President of the United States, do proclaim, declare, and make known to all persons who have, directly or by implication, participated in the existing rebellion, except as hereinafter excepted, that a full pardon is hereby granted to them and each of them, with restoration of all rights of property, except as to slaves, and in property cases where rights of third parties shall have intervened, and upon the condition that every such person shall take and subscribe an oath, and thenceforward keep and maintain said oath inviolate; and which oath shall be registered for permanent preservation, and shall be of the tenor and effect following, to wit: “I, ——, do solemnly swear, in presence of Almighty God, that I will henceforth faithfully support, protect and defend the Constitution of the United States, and the union of the States there under; and that I will, in like manner, abide by and faithfully support all acts of Congress passed during the existing rebellion with reference to slaves, so long and so far as not repealed, modified or held void by Congress, or by decision of the Supreme Court; and that I will, in like manner, abide by and faithfully support all proclamations of the President made during the existing rebellion having reference to slaves, so long and so far as not modified or declared void by decision of the Supreme Court. So help me God.” The persons excepted from the benefits of the foregoing provisions are all who are, or shall have been, civil or diplomatic officers or agents of the so-called confederate government; all who have left judicial stations under the United States to aid the rebellion; all who are, or shall have been, military or naval officers of said so-called confederate government above the rank of colonel in the army, or of lieutenant in the navy; all who left seats in the United States Congress to aid the rebellion; all who resigned commissions in the army or navy of the United States, and afterwards aided the rebellion; and all who have engaged in any way in treating colored persons or white persons, in charge of such, otherwise than lawfully as prisoners of war, and which persons may have been found in the United States service, as soldiers, seamen, or in any other capacity. 198

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.035

Proclamation of Amnesty & Reconstruction And I do further proclaim, declare, and make known, that whenever, in any of the States of Arkansas, Texas, Louisiana, Mississippi, Tennessee, Alabama, Georgia, Florida, South Carolina, and North Carolina, a number of persons, not less than one-tenth in number of the votes cast in such State at the Presidential election of the year of our Lord one thousand eight hundred and sixty, each having taken the oath aforesaid and not having since violated it, and being a qualified voter by the election law of the State existing immediately before the so-called act of secession, and excluding all others, shall re-establish a State government which shall be republican, and in no wise contravening said oath, such shall be recognized as the true government of the State, and the State shall receive thereunder the benefits of the constitutional provision which declares that “The United States shall guaranty to every State in this union a republican form of government, and shall protect each of them against invasion; and, on application of the legislature, or the executive (when the legislature cannot be convened), against domestic violence.” And I do further proclaim, declare, and make known that any provision which may be adopted by such State government in relation to the freed people of such State, which shall recognize and declare their permanent freedom, provide for their education, and which may yet be consistent, as a temporary arrangement, with their present condition as a laboring, landless, and homeless class, will not be objected to by the national Executive. And it is suggested as not improper, that, in constructing a loyal State government in any State, the name of the State, the boundary, the subdivisions, the constitution, and the general code of laws, as before the rebellion, be maintained, subject only to the modifications made necessary by the conditions hereinbefore stated, and such others, if any, not contravening said conditions, and which may be deemed expedient by those framing the new State government. To avoid misunderstanding, it may be proper to say that this proclamation, so far as it relates to State governments, has no reference to States wherein loyal State governments have all the while been maintained. And for the same reason, it may be proper to further say that whether members sent to Congress from any State shall be admitted to seats, constitutionally rests exclusively with the respective Houses, and not to any extent with the Executive. And still further, that this proclamation is intended to present the people of the States wherein the national authority has been suspended, and loyal State governments have been subverted, a mode in and by which the national authority and loyal State governments may be 199

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.035

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches re-established within said States, or in any of them; and, while the mode presented is the best the Executive can suggest, with his present impressions, it must not be understood that no other possible mode would be acceptable. Given under my hand at the city of Washington, the 8th day of December, ad one thousand eight hundred and sixty-three, and of the independence of the United States of America the eighty-eighth. By the President: Abraham Lincoln William H. Seward, Secretary of State. December 8, 1863

200

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.035

30

Reply to the New York Working-men’s Democratic Republican Association This is Lincoln’s reply to a delegation of New York workingmen who had made him an honorary member of their organization, which rallied workingmen to the Union cause. Here Lincoln expounds his views on the value of labor (see also selections 45–7). The honorary membership in your Association, as generously tendered, is gratefully accepted. You comprehend, as your address shows, that the existing rebellion, means more, and tends to more, than the perpetuation of African Slavery – that it is, in fact, a war upon the rights of all working people. Partly to show that this view has not escaped my attention, and partly that I cannot better express myself, I read a passage from the Message to Congress in December 1861: It continues to develop that the insurrection . . . till all of liberty shall be lost.

The views then expressed remain unchanged, nor have I much to add. None are so deeply interested to resist the present rebellion as the working people. Let them beware of prejudice, working division and hostility among themselves. The most notable feature of a disturbance in your city last summer, was the hanging of some working people by other working people.1 It should never be so. The strongest bond of human sympathy, outside of the family relation, should be one uniting all working people, of 1

AL refers to recent riots in New York City ( July 13–16) protesting the drafting of workingmen into Union military service. That wealthy men could pay $300 to be exempted by

201

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.036

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches all nations, and tongues, and kindreds. Nor should this lead to a war upon property, or the owners of property. Property is the fruit of labor – property is desirable – is a positive good in the world. 2 That some should be rich, shows that others may become rich, and hence is just encouragement to industry and enterprize. Let not him who is houseless pull down the house of another; but let him labor diligently and build one for himself, thus by example assuring that his own shall be safe from violence when built. March 21, 1864

2

hiring a replacement only fueled workingmen’s anger. Five months earlier (March 3, 1863) Congress had passed the first Conscription Act. The New York riots broke out when the Conscription Act began to be implemented. See AL’s fragments on labor and capital in selections 45, 46, and 47.

202

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.036

31

To Albert G. Hodges

At the end of March 1864 a delegation of prominent Kentuckians called on President Lincoln at the White House to discuss affairs in their border state and to express their dissatisfaction with his policy of enlisting and arming soldiers of African descent. Asked by the newspaper editor Albert G. Hodges to write out his reply to that delegation’s complaint, Lincoln wrote the following.

A.G. Hodges, Esq Frankfort, Ky.

Executive Mansion, Washington, April 4, 1864

My dear Sir: You ask me to put in writing the substance of what I verbally said the other day in your presence to Governor Bramlette and Senator Dixon. It was about as follows: I am naturally anti-slavery. If slavery is not wrong, nothing is wrong. I cannot remember when I did not so think, and feel. And yet I have never understood that the Presidency conferred upon me an unrestricted right to act officially upon this judgment and feeling. It was in the oath I took that I would, to the best of my ability, preserve, protect, and defend the Constitution of the United States. I could not take the office without taking the oath. Nor was it my view that I might take an oath to get power, and break the oath in using the power. I understood, too, that in ordinary civil administration this oath even forbade me to practically indulge my primary abstract judgment on the moral question of slavery. I had publicly declared this many times, and in many ways. And I aver that, to this day, I have

203

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.037

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches done no official act in mere deference to my abstract judgment and feeling on slavery. I did understand however, that my oath to preserve the constitution to the best of my ability, imposed upon me the duty of preserving, by every indispensable means, that government – that nation – of which that constitution was the organic law. Was it possible to lose the nation, and yet preserve the constitution? By general law life and limb must be protected; yet often a limb must be amputated to save a life; but a life is never wisely given to save a limb. I felt that measures, otherwise unconstitutional, might become lawful, by becoming indispensable to the preservation of the constitution, through the preservation of the nation. Right or wrong, I assumed this ground, and now avow it. I could not feel that, to the best of my ability, I had even tried to preserve the constitution, if, to save slavery, or any minor matter, I should permit the wreck of government, country, and Constitution all together. When, early in the war, Gen[eral] Frémont attempted military emancipation, I forbade it,1 because I did not then think it an indispensable necessity. When a little later, Gen[eral] Cameron, then Secretary of War, suggested the arming of the blacks, I objected, because I did not yet think it an indispensable necessity. When, still later, Gen[eral] Hunter attempted military emancipation, I again forbade it,2 because I did not yet think the indispensable necessity had come. When, in March, and May, and July 1862 I made earnest, and successive appeals to the border states to favor compensated emancipation,3 I believed the indispensable necessity for military emancipation, and arming the blacks would come, unless averted by that measure. They declined the proposition; and I was, in my best judgment, driven to the alternative of either surrendering the Union, and with it, the Constitution, or of laying strong hand upon the colored element. I chose the latter. In choosing it, I hoped for greater gain than loss; but of this, I was not entirely confident. More than a year of trial now shows no loss by it in our foreign relations, none in our home popular sentiment, none in our white military force – no loss by it anyhow or anywhere. On the contrary, it shows a gain of quite a hundred and thirty thousand soldiers, seamen and laborers. These are palpable facts, about which, as facts, can be no cavilling. We have the men; and we could not have had them without the measure. And now let any Union man who complains of the measure, test himself by writing down in one line that he is for subduing the rebellion by force of arms; and in the next, that he is for taking these hundred and 1

See selection 16.

2

See selection 16, n. 3.

3

See selection 16.

204

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.037

Letter to Albert G. Hodges thirty thousand men from the Union side, and placing them where they would be but for the measure he condemns. If he cannot face his case so stated, it is only because he cannot face the truth. I add a word which was not in the verbal conversation. In telling this tale I attempt no compliment to my own sagacity. I claim not to have controlled events, but confess plainly that events have controlled me. Now, at the end of three years’ struggle the nation’s condition is not what either party, or any man devised, or expected. God alone can claim it. Whither it is tending seems plain. If God now wills the removal of a great wrong, and wills also that we of the North as well as you of the South, shall pay fairly for our complicity in that wrong, impartial history will find therein new cause to attest and revere the justice and goodness of God. Yours truly

205

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.037

32

To Charles D. Robinson

During the run-up to the 1864 election the Wisconsin editor and War Democrat (as distinguished from Peace Democrat or Copperhead) Charles D. Robinson wrote to Lincoln to take issue with the president’s statement that he would entertain any sincere Confederate peace proposal that included “the restoration of the peace, the integrity of the whole Union, and the abandonment of slavery.” If the third of these was indeed the president’s position, Robinson wrote, he and his fellow War Democrats would not support Lincoln’s reelection. Lincoln penned the following reply to Robinson, which apparently was not sent. Executive Mansion, Washington, August 17, 1864

Hon. Charles D. Robinson

My Dear Sir: Your letter of the 7th was placed in my hand yesterday by Gov[ernor] Randall. To me it seems plain that saying re-union and abandonment of slavery would be considered, if offered, is not saying that nothing else or less would be considered, if offered. But I will not stand upon the mere construction of language. It is true, as you remind me, that in the Greeley letter of 1862,1 I said: “If I could save the Union without freeing any slave I would do it; and if I could save it by freeing all the slaves I would do it; and if I could save it by freeing some, and leaving others alone 1

See selection 18.

206

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.038

Letter to Charles D. Robinson I would also do that.” I continued in the same letter as follows: “What I do about slavery and the colored race, I do because I believe it helps to save the Union; and what I forbear I forbear because I do not believe it would help to save the union. I shall do less whenever I shall believe what I am doing hurts the cause; and I shall do more whenever I shall believe doing more will help the cause.” All this I said in the utmost sincerity; and I am as true to the whole of it now, as when I first said it. When I afterwards proclaimed emancipation, and employed colored soldiers, I only followed the declaration just quoted from the Greeley letter that “I shall do more whenever I shall believe doing more will help the cause.” The way these measures were to help the cause, was not to be by magic, or miracles, but by inducing the colored people to come bodily over from the rebel side to ours. On this point, nearly a year ago, in a letter to Mr. Conkling, 2 made public at once, I wrote as follows: “But negroes, like other people, act upon motives. Why should they do anything for us if we will do nothing for them? If they stake their lives for us they must be prompted by the strongest motive – even the promise of freedom. And the promise, being made, must be kept.” I am sure you will not, on due reflection, say that the promise being made, must be broken at the first opportunity. I am sure you would not desire me to say, or to leave an inference, that I am ready, whenever convenient, to join in re-enslaving those who shall have served us in consideration of our promise. As matter of morals, could such treachery by any possibility, escape the curses of Heaven, or of any good man? As matter of policy, to announce such a purpose, would ruin the Union cause itself. All recruiting of colored men would instantly cease, and all colored men now in our service would instantly desert us. And rightfully too. Why should they give their lives for us, with full notice of our purpose to betray them? Drive back to the support of the rebellion the physical force which the colored people now give, and promise us, and neither the present, nor any coming administration, can save the Union. Take from us, and give to the enemy, the hundred and thirty, forty, or fifty thousand colored persons now serving us as soldiers, seamen, and laborers, and we can not longer maintain the contest. The party who could elect a President on a War & Slavery Restoration platform, would, of necessity, lose the colored force; and that force being lost, would be as powerless to save the Union as to do any other impossible thing. It is not a question of sentiment or taste, but one of physical force, which may be 2

See selection 26.

207

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.038

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches measured, and estimated as horse-power, and steam-power, are measured and estimated. And by measurement, it is more than we can lose, and live. Nor can we, by discarding it, get a white force in place of it. There is a witness in every white man’s bosom that he would rather go to the war having the negro to help him, than to help the enemy against him. It is not the giving of one class for another. It is simply giving a large force to the enemy, for nothing in return. In addition to what I have said, allow me to remind you that no one, having control of the rebel armies, or, in fact, having any influence whatever in the rebellion, has offered, or intimated a willingness to, a restoration of the Union, in any event, or on any condition whatever. Let it be constantly borne in mind that no such offer has been made or intimated. Shall we be weak enough to allow the enemy to distract us with an abstract question which he himself refuses to present as a practical one? In the Conkling letter before mentioned, I said: “Whenever you shall have conquered all resistance to the Union, if I shall urge you to continue fighting, it will be an apt time then to declare that you will not fight to free negroes.” I repeat this now. If Jefferson Davis 3 wishes, for himself, or for the benefit of his friends at the North, to know what I would do if he were to offer peace and re-union, saying nothing about slavery, let him try me.

3

Jefferson Davis (1808–89) was the first and only president of the Confederate States of America.

208

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.038

33

Reply to a Southern Woman

Lincoln wrote this reply to a Southern woman who appealed to Lincoln to pardon her Confederate husband because he was “a religious man.” Here is Lincoln’s terse and acerbic reply, which should be read alongside selection 39 (“On Pro-Slavery Theology”). On Thursday of last week two ladies from Tennessee came before the President asking the release of their husbands held as prisoners of war at Johnson’s Island. They were put off till Friday, when they came again; and were again put off to Saturday. At each of the interviews one of the ladies urged that her husband was a religious man. On Saturday the President ordered the release of the prisoners, and then said to this lady “You say your husband is a religious man; tell him when you meet him, that I say I am not much of a judge of religion, but that, in my opinion, the religion that sets men to rebel and fight against their government, because, as they think, that government does not sufficiently help some men to eat their bread on the sweat of other men’s faces, is not the sort of religion upon which people can get to heaven!” December 6, 1864

209

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.039

34

“With Malice toward None”: Second Inaugural Address

Taking the inaugural oath for the second time, Lincoln looked for the larger meaning or purpose of the Civil War, which he had come to see as divine retribution for the sin of slavery. If God willed it the war would “continue, until . . . every drop of blood drawn with the lash, shall be paid for by another drawn with the sword . . . ” But if God is wrathful, humans need not be so, as Lincoln says in concluding: “With malice toward none, with charity for all . . . ” Fellow Countrymen: At this second appearing to take the oath of the Presidential office, there is less occasion for an extended address than there was at the first. Then a statement, somewhat in detail, of a course to be pursued, seemed fitting and proper. Now, at the expiration of four years, during which public declarations have been constantly called forth on every point and phase of the great contest which still absorbs the attention, and engrosses the energies of the nation, little that is new could be presented. The progress of our arms, upon which all else chiefly depends, is as well known to the public as to myself; and it is, I trust, reasonably satisfactory and encouraging to all. With high hope for the future, no prediction in regard to it is ventured. On the occasion corresponding to this four years ago, all thoughts were anxiously directed to an impending civil war. All dreaded it – all sought to avert it. While the Inaugural address was being delivered from this place, devoted altogether to saving the Union without war, insurgent agents were in the city seeking to destroy it without war – seeking to 210

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.040

Second Inaugural Address dissolve the Union, and divide effects, by negotiation. Both parties deprecated war; but one of them would make war rather than let the nation survive; and the other would accept war rather than let it perish. And the war came. One-eighth of the whole population were colored slaves, not distributed generally over the Union, but localized in the Southern part of it. These slaves constituted a peculiar and powerful interest. All knew that this interest was, somehow, the cause of the war. To strengthen, perpetuate, and extend this interest was the object for which the insurgents would rend the Union, even by war; while the government claimed no right to do more than to restrict the territorial enlargement of it. Neither party expected for the war, the magnitude, or the duration, which it has already attained. Neither anticipated that the cause of the conflict might cease with, or even before, the conflict itself should cease. Each looked for an easier triumph, and a result less fundamental and astounding. Both read the same Bible, and pray to the same God; and each invokes His aid against the other. It may seem strange that any men should dare to ask a just God’s assistance in wringing their bread from the sweat of other men’s faces; but let us judge not that we be not judged.1 The prayers of both could not be answered; that of neither has been answered fully. The Almighty has His own purposes. “Woe unto the world because of offences! for it must needs be that offences come; but woe to that man by whom the offence cometh!” 2 If we shall suppose that American Slavery is one of those offences which, in the providence of God, must needs come, but which, having continued through His appointed time, He now wills to remove, and that He gives to both North and South, this terrible war, as the woe due to those by whom the offence came, shall we discern therein any departure from those divine attributes which the believers in a Living God always ascribe to Him? Fondly do we hope – fervently do we pray – that this mighty scourge of war may speedily pass away. Yet, if God wills that it continue, until all the wealth piled by the bond-man’s two hundred and fifty years of unrequited toil shall be sunk, and until every drop of blood drawn with the lash, shall be paid by another drawn with the sword, as was said three thousand years ago, so still it must be said “the judgments of the Lord are true and righteous altogether.” 3

1

Matthew 7: 1; Luke 6: 37.

2

Matthew 18: 7.

3

Psalms 19: 9.

211

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.040

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches With malice toward none; with charity for all; with firmness in the right, as God gives us to see the right, let us strive on to finish the work we are in; to bind up the nation’s wounds; to care for him who shall have borne the battle, and for his widow, and his orphan – to do all which achieve and cherish a just, and a lasting peace, among ourselves, and with all nations. March 4, 1865

212

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.040

35

Speech on Reconstruction (Lincoln’s last speech)

When on April 9, 1865 General Robert E. Lee surrendered his Army of Northern Virginia to General Ulysses S. Grant, the Civil War effectively ended. With war’s end questions arose about the proper treatment of rebellious Southerners and the “reconstruction” of Southern state governments. Against the Radical Republicans in his own party, who sought revenge and favored immediate enfranchisement of freed slaves, Lincoln offered his more measured and gradualist proposal. Lincoln’s own policy was one of immediate emancipation (via the Thirteenth Amendment) and gradual enfranchisement. Three days after delivering this address President Lincoln was assassinated. We meet this evening, not in sorrow, but in gladness of heart. The evacuation of Petersburg and Richmond, and the surrender of the principal insurgent army,1 give hope of a righteous and speedy peace whose joyous expression cannot be restrained. In the midst of this, however, He, from Whom all blessings flow, must not be forgotten. A call for a national thanksgiving is being prepared, and will be duly promulgated. Nor must those whose harder part gives us the cause of rejoicing, be overlooked. Their honors must not be parcelled out with others. I myself, was near the front, and had the high pleasure of transmitting much of the good news to you; but no part of the honor, for plan or execution, is mine. To Gen[eral] 1

General Robert E. Lee (1807–70) had surrendered his Army of Northern Virginia to General Ulysses S. Grant (1822–85) two days earlier, on April 9, 1865, effectively ending the Civil War.

213

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.041

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches Grant, his skilful officers, and brave men, all belongs. The gallant Navy stood ready, but was not in reach to take active part. By these recent successes the re-inauguration of the national authority – reconstruction – which has had a large share of thought from the first, is pressed much more closely upon our attention. It is fraught with great difficulty. Unlike the case of a war between independent nations, there is no authorized organ for us to treat with. No one man has authority to give up the rebellion for any other man. We simply must begin with, and mould from, disorganized and discordant elements. Nor is it a small additional embarrassment that we, the loyal people, differ among ourselves as to the mode, manner, and means of reconstruction. As a general rule, I abstain from reading the reports of attacks upon myself; wishing not to be provoked by that to which I cannot properly offer an answer. In spite of this precaution, however, it comes to my knowledge that I am much censured for some supposed agency in setting up, and seeking to sustain, the new State Government of Louisiana. In this I have done just so much as, and no more than, the public knows. In the Annual Message of December 1863 and accompanying Proclamation, 2 I presented a plan of reconstruction (as the phrase goes) which, I promised, if adopted by any State, should be acceptable to, and sustained by, the Executive government of the nation. I distinctly stated that this was not the only plan which might possibly be acceptable; and I also distinctly protested that the Executive claimed no right to say when, or whether members should be admitted to seats in Congress from such States. This plan was, in advance, submitted to the then Cabinet, and distinctly approved by every member of it. One of them suggested that I should then, and in that connection, apply the Emancipation Proclamation to the theretofore excepted parts of Virginia and Louisiana;3 that I should drop the suggestion about apprenticeship for freed-people, and that I should omit the protest against my own power, in regard to the admission of members to Congress; but even he approved every part and parcel of the plan which has since been employed or touched by the action of Louisiana. The new constitution of Louisiana, declaring emancipation for the whole State, practically applies the Proclamation to the part previously excepted. It does not adopt apprenticeship for freed-people; and it is silent, as it could not well be otherwise, about the admission of members to Congress. So that, as it applies to Louisiana, every member of 2

See selections 28 and 29, respectively.

3

See selection 22.

214

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.041

Speech on Reconstruction the Cabinet fully approved the plan. The Message went to Congress, and I received many commendations of the plan, written and verbal; and not a single objection to it, from any professed emancipationist, came to my knowledge, until after the news reached Washington that the people of Louisiana had begun to move in accordance with it. From about July 1862, I had corresponded with different persons, supposed to be interested, seeking a reconstruction of a State government for Louisiana. When the Message of 1863, with the plan before mentioned, reached New Orleans, Gen[eral] Banks wrote me that he was confident the people, with his military co-operation, would reconstruct, substantially on that plan. I wrote him, and some of them to try it; they tried it, and the result is known. Such only has been my agency in getting up the Louisiana government. As to sustaining it, my promise is out, as before stated. But, as bad promises are better broken than kept, I shall treat this as a bad promise, and break it, whenever I shall be convinced that keeping it is adverse to the public interest. But I have not yet been so convinced. I have been shown a letter on this subject, supposed to be an able one, in which the writer expresses regret that my mind has not seemed to be definitely fixed on the question whether the seceded States, so called, are in the Union or out of it. It would, perhaps, add astonishment to his regret, were he to learn that since I have found professed Union men endeavoring to make that question, I have purposely forborne any public expression upon it. As appears to me, that question has not been, nor yet is, a practically material one, and that any discussion of it, while it thus remains practically immaterial, could have no effect other than the mischievous one of dividing our friends. As yet, whatever it may hereafter become, that question is bad, as the basis of a controversy, and good for nothing at all – a merely pernicious abstraction. We all agree that the seceded States, so called, are out of their proper practical relation with the Union; and that the sole object of the government, civil and military, in regard to those States is to again get them into that proper practical relation. I believe it is not only possible, but in fact, easier, to do this, without deciding, or even considering, whether these states have even been out of the Union, than with it. Finding themselves safely at home, it would be utterly immaterial whether they had ever been abroad. Let us all join in doing the acts necessary to restoring the proper practical relations between these states and the Union; and each forever after, innocently indulge his own opinion whether, in doing the acts, he

215

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.041

Part I: Political Writings & Speeches brought the States from without, into the Union, or only gave them proper assistance, they never having been out of it. The amount of constituency, so to speak, on which the new Louisiana government rests, would be more satisfactory to all, if it contained fifty, thirty, or even twenty thousand, instead of only about twelve thousand, as it does. It is also unsatisfactory to some that the elective franchise is not given to the colored man. I would myself prefer that it were now conferred on the very intelligent, and on those who serve our cause as soldiers. Still the question is not whether the Louisiana government, as it stands, is quite all that is desirable. The question is “Will it be wiser to take it as it is, and help to improve it; or to reject, and disperse it?” “Can Louisiana be brought into proper practical relation with the Union sooner by sustaining, or by discarding her new State Government?” Some twelve thousand voters in the heretofore slave-state of Louisiana have sworn allegiance to the Union, assumed to be the rightful political power of the State, held elections, organized a State government, adopted a free-state constitution, giving the benefit of public schools equally to black and white, and empowering the Legislature to confer the elective franchise upon the colored man. Their Legislature has already voted to ratify the constitutional amendment recently passed by Congress, 4 abolishing slavery throughout the nation. These twelve thousand persons are thus fully committed to the Union, and to perpetual freedom in the state – committed to the very things, and nearly all the things the nation wants – and they ask the nation’s recognition, and its assistance to make good their committal. Now, if we reject, and spurn them, we do our utmost to disorganize and disperse them. We in effect say to the white men “You are worthless, or worse – we will neither help you, nor be helped by you.” To the blacks we say “This cup of liberty which these, your old masters, hold to your lips, we will dash from you, and leave you to the chances of gathering the spilled and scattered contents in some vague and undefined when, where, and how.” If this course, discouraging and paralyzing both white and black, has any tendency to bring Louisiana into proper practical relations with the Union, I have, so far, been unable to perceive it. If, on the contrary, we recognize, and sustain the new government of Louisiana the converse of all this is made true. We encourage the hearts, and nerve the arms of the twelve thousand to adhere to their work, and 4

AL refers to the Thirteenth Amendment to the US Constitution which abolished slavery throughout the United States. See selection 49.

216

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.041

Speech on Reconstruction argue for it, and proselytize for it, and fight for it, and feed it, and grow it, and ripen it to a complete success. The colored man too, in seeing all united for him, is inspired with vigilance, and energy, and daring, to the same end. Grant that he desires the elective franchise, will he not attain it sooner by saving the already advanced steps toward it, than by running backward over them? Concede that the new government of Louisiana is only to what it should be as the egg is to the fowl, we shall sooner have the fowl by hatching the egg than by smashing it? Again, if we reject Louisiana, we also reject one vote in favor of the proposed amendment to the national constitution. To meet this proposition, it has been argued that no more than three-fourths of those States which have not attempted secession are necessary to validly ratify the amendment. I do not commit myself against this, further than to say that such a ratification would be questionable, and sure to be persistently questioned; while a ratification by three-fourths of all the States would be unquestioned and unquestionable. I repeat the question. “Can Louisiana be brought into proper practical relation with the Union sooner by sustaining or by discarding her new State Government?” What has been said of Louisiana will apply generally to other States. And yet so great peculiarities pertain to each state; and such important and sudden changes occur in the same state; and, withal, so new and unprecedented is the whole case, that no exclusive, and inflexible plan can safely be prescribed as to details and collaterals. Such exclusive, and inflexible plan would surely become a new entanglement. Important principle may, and must, be inflexible. In the present “situation,” as the phrase goes, it may be my duty to make some new announcement to the people of the South. I am considering, and shall not fail to act, when satisfied that action will be proper. April 11, 1865

217

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.041

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.041

II

Notes and Fragments

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784

36

On Government (1854?)

The legitimate object of government, is to do for a community of people, whatever they need to have done, but cannot do, at all, or cannot, so well do, for themselves – in their separate, and individual capacities. In all that the people can individually do as well for themselves, government ought not to interfere. The desirable things which the individuals of a people cannot do, or cannot well do, for themselves, fall into two classes: those which have relation to wrongs, and those which have not. Each of these branch off into an infinite variety of subdivisions. The first – that in relation to wrongs – embraces all crimes, misdemeanors, and non-performance of contracts. The other embraces all which, in its nature, and without wrong, requires combined action, as public roads and highways, public schools, charities, pauperism, orphanage, estates of the deceased, and the machinery of government itself. From this it appears that if all men were just, there still would be some, though not so much, need of government. —————— Government is a combination of the people of a country to effect certain objects by joint effort. The best framed and best administered governments are necessarily expensive; while by errors in frame and maladministration most of them are more onerous than they need be, and some of them very oppressive. Why, then, should we have government? Why not each individual take to himself the whole fruit of his labor, without having any of it taxed away, in services, corn, or money? Why not take just so much land as he can cultivate with his own hands, without buying it of any one? 221

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.043

Part II: Notes & Fragments The legitimate object of government is “to do for the people what needs to be done, but which they cannot, by individual effort, do at all, or do so well, for themselves.” There are many such things – some of them exist independently of the injustice in the world. Making and maintaining roads, bridges, and the like; providing for the helpless young and afflicted; common schools; and disposing of deceased men’s property, are instances. But a far larger class of objects springs from the injustice of men. If one people will make war upon another, it is a necessity with that other to unite and cooperate for defense. Hence the military department. If some men will kill, or beat, or constrain others, or despoil them of property, by force, fraud, or noncompliance with contracts, it is a common object with peaceful and just men to prevent it. Hence the criminal and civil departments —————— dent truth. Made so plain by our good Father in Heaven, that all feel and understand it, even down to brutes and creeping insects. The ant, who has toiled and dragged a crumb to his nest, will furiously defend the fruit of his labor, against whatever robber assails him. So plain, that the most dumb and stupid slave that ever toiled for a master, does constantly know that he is wronged. So plain that no one, high or low, ever does mistake it, except in a plainly selfish way; for although volume upon volume is written to prove slavery a very good thing, we never hear of the man who wishes to take the good of it, by being a slave himself. Most governments have been based, practically, on the denial of equal rights of men, as I have, in part, stated them; ours began, by affirming those rights. They said, some men are too ignorant, and vicious, to share in government. Possibly so, said we; and, by your system, you would always keep them ignorant, and vicious. We proposed to give all a chance; and we expected the weak to grow stronger, the ignorant, wiser; and all better, and happier together. We made the experiment; and the fruit is before us. Look at it – think of it. Look at it, in its aggregate grandeur, of extent of country, and numbers of population – of ship, and steamboat, and rail.

222

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.043

37

On Slavery (1854?)

If A. can prove, however conclusively, that he may, of right, enslave B. – why may not B. snatch the same argument, and prove equally, that he may enslave A? — You say A. is white, and B. is black. It is color, then; the lighter, having the right to enslave the darker? Take care. By this rule, you are to be slave to the first man you meet, with a fairer skin than your own. You do not mean color exactly? – You mean the whites are intellectually the superiors of the blacks, and, therefore have the right to enslave them? Take care again. By this rule, you are to be slave to the first man you meet, with an intellect superior to your own. But, say you, it is a question of interest; and, if you can make it your interest, you have the right to enslave another. Very well. And if he can make it his interest, he has the right to enslave you.

223

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.044

38

On Slavery and Democracy (1858?)

As I would not be a slave, so I would not be a master. This expresses my idea of democracy. Whatever differs from this, to the extent of the difference, is no democracy.

224

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.045

39

On Pro-slavery Theology (1858)

Suppose it is true, that the negro is inferior to the white, in the gifts of nature; is it not the exact reverse justice that the white should, for that reason, take from the negro, any part of the little which has been given him? “Give to him that is needy” is the Christian rule of charity; but “Take from him that is needy” is the rule of slavery.

Pro-slavery theology The sum of pro-slavery theology seems to be this: “Slavery is not universally right, nor yet universally wrong; it is better for some people to be slaves; and, in such cases, it is the Will of God that they be such.” Certainly there is no contending against the Will of God; but still there is some difficulty in ascertaining, and applying it, to particular cases. For instance we will suppose the Reverend Dr. Ross1 has a slave named Sambo, and the question is “Is it the Will of God that Sambo shall remain a slave, or be set free?” The Almighty gives no audible answer to the question, and his revelation – the Bible – gives none – or, at most, none but such as admits of a squabble, as to its meaning. No one thinks of asking Sambo’s opinion on it. So, at last, it comes to this, that Dr. Ross is to decide the question. And while he considers it, he sits in the shade, with gloves on his hands, and subsists on the bread that Sambo is earning in the burning sun. If he decides that God wills Sambo to continue a slave, he thereby retains his own comfortable position; but if he decides that God 1

Reverend Frederick A. Ross was a Presbyterian minister in Alabama and author of Slavery Ordained by God (1857).

225

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.046

Part II: Notes & Fragments wills Sambo to be free, he thereby has to walk out of the shade, throw off his gloves, and delve for his own bread. Will Dr. Ross be actuated by that perfect impartiality, which has ever been considered most favorable to correct decisions? But, slavery is good for some people!!! 2 As a good thing, slavery is strikingly peculiar, in this, that it is the only good thing which no man ever seeks the good of, for himself. Nonsense! Wolves devouring lambs, not because it is good for their own greedy maws, but because it is good for the lambs!!!

2

So claimed some prominent Southern supporters of slavery, including John C. Calhoun and George Fitzhugh (1806–81).

226

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.046

40

On the Struggle against Slavery (c. July 1858)

I have never professed an indifference to the honors of official station; and were I to do so now, I should only make myself ridiculous. Yet I have never failed – do not now fail – to remember that in the Republican cause there is a higher aim than that of mere office. I have not allowed myself to forget that the abolition of the Slave-trade by Great Britain, was agitated a hundred years before it was a final success; that the measure had its open fire-eating opponents; its stealthy “don’t care” opponents; its dollar and cent opponents; its inferior race opponents; its negro equality opponents; and its religion and good order opponents; that all these opponents got offices, and their adversaries got none. But I have also remembered that, though they blazed like tallow-candles for a century, at last they flickered in the socket, died out, stank in the dark for a brief season, and were remembered no more, even by the smell. School-boys know that Wilberforce, and Granville Sharp,1 helped that cause forward; but who can now name a single man who labored to retard it? Remembering these things I cannot but regard it as possible that the higher object of this contest may not be completely attained within the term of my natural life.

1

William Wilberforce (1759–1833) and Granville Sharp (1735–1813) were instrumental in the abolition of the British slave trade in 1833.

227

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.047

41

On Racial (In)equality 1: First Lincoln–Douglas Debate (August 21, 1858) I will say here, while upon this subject, that I have no purpose directly or indirectly to interfere with the institution of slavery in the States where it exists. I believe I have no lawful right to do so, and I have no inclination to do so. I have no purpose to introduce political and social equality between the white and the black races. There is a physical difference between the two, which in my judgment will probably forever forbid their living together upon the footing of perfect equality, and inasmuch as it becomes a necessity that there must be a difference, I, as well as Judge Douglas, am in favor of the race to which I belong, having the superior position. I have never said anything to the contrary, but I hold that notwithstanding all this, there is no reason in the world why the negro is not entitled to all the natural rights enumerated in the Declaration of Independence, the right to life, liberty and the pursuit of happiness. [Loud cheers.] I hold that he is as much entitled to these as the white man. I agree with Judge Douglas he is not my equal in many respects – certainly not in color, perhaps not in moral or intellectual endowment. But in the right to eat the bread, without leave of anybody else, which his own hand earns, he is my equal and the equal of Judge Douglas, and the equal of every living man. [Great applause.]

228

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.048

42

On Racial (In)equality 2: Fourth Lincoln– Douglas Debate (September 18, 1858)

While I was at the hotel to-day an elderly gentleman called upon me to know whether I was really in favor of producing a perfect equality between the negroes and white people. [Great laughter.] While I had not proposed to myself on this occasion to say much on that subject, yet as the question was asked me I thought I would occupy perhaps five minutes in saying something in regard to it. I will say then that I am not, nor ever have been in favor of bringing about in any way the social and political equality of the white and black races, [applause] – that I am not nor ever have been in favor of making voters or jurors of negroes, nor of qualifying them to hold office, nor to intermarry with white people; and I will say in addition to this that there is a physical difference between the white and black races which I believe will for ever forbid the two races living together on terms of social and political equality. And inasmuch as they cannot so live, while they do remain together there must be the position of superior and inferior, and I as much as any other man am in favor of having the superior position assigned to the white race. I say upon this occasion I do not perceive that because the white man is to have the superior position the negro should be denied everything. I do not understand that because I do not want a negro woman for a slave I must necessarily want her for a wife. [Cheers and laughter.] My understanding is that I can just let her alone. I am now in my fiftieth year, and I certainly never have had a black woman for either a slave or a wife. So it seems to me quite possible for us to get along without making either slaves or wives of negroes. I will add to this that I have never seen to my knowledge a 229

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.049

Part II: Notes & Fragments man, woman or child who was in favor of producing a perfect equality, social and political, between negroes and white men. I recollect of but one distinguished instance that I ever heard of so frequently as to be entirely satisfied of its correctness – and that is the case of Judge Douglas’s old friend Col[onel] Richard M. Johnson.1 [Laughter.] I will also add to the remarks I have made (for I am not going to enter at large upon this subject), that I have never had the least apprehension that I or my friends would marry negroes if there was no law to keep them from it, [laughter] but as Judge Douglas and his friends seem to be in great apprehension that they might, if there were no law to keep them from it, [roars of laughter] I give him the most solemn pledge that I will to the very last stand by the law of this State, which forbids the marrying of white people with negroes. [Continued laughter and applause.] I will add one further word, which is this, that I do not understand there is any place where an alteration of the social and political relations of the negro and the white man can be made except in the State Legislature – not in the Congress of the United States – and as I do not really apprehend the approach of any such thing myself; and as Judge Douglas seems to be in constant horror that some such danger is rapidly approaching, I propose as the best means to prevent it that the Judge be kept at home and placed in the State Legislature to fight the measure. [Uproarious laughter and applause.] I do not propose dwelling longer at this time on this subject …

1

Colonel Richard M. Johnson, Martin van Buren’s Vice-President, was a slave-owner who had a series of slave mistresses.

230

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.049

43

The Declaration of Independence includes all men: Fifth Lincoln–Douglas Debate (October 7, 1858)

The Judge has alluded to the Declaration of Independence, and insisted that negroes are not included in that Declaration; and that it is a slander upon the framers of that instrument, to suppose that negroes were meant therein; and he asks you: Is it possible to believe that Mr. Jefferson, who penned the immortal paper, could have supposed himself applying the language of that instrument to the negro race, and yet held a portion of that race in slavery? Would he not at once have freed them? I only have to remark upon this part of the Judge’s speech (and that, too, very briefly, for I shall not detain myself, or you, upon that point for any great length of time), that I believe the entire records of the world, from the date of the Declaration of Independence up to within three years ago, may be searched in vain for one single affirmation, from one single man, that the negro was not included in the Declaration of Independence. I think I may defy Judge Douglas to show that he ever said so, that Washington ever said so, that any President ever said so, that any member of Congress ever said so, or that any living man upon the whole earth ever said so, until the necessities of the present policy of the Democratic party, in regard to slavery, had to invent that affirmation. [Tremendous applause.] And I will remind Judge Douglas and this audience, that while Mr. Jefferson was the owner of slaves, as undoubtedly he was, in speaking upon this very

231

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.050

Part II: Notes & Fragments subject, he used the strong language that “he trembled for his country when he remembered that God was just”; 1 and I will offer the highest premium in my power to Judge Douglas if he will show that he, in all his life, ever uttered a sentiment at all akin to that of Jefferson. [Great applause and cries of “Hit him again,” “good,” “good.”] . . .

1

Thomas Jefferson, Notes on the State of Virginia (1783), Query XVIII “customs and manners”; in Joyce Appleby and Terence Ball, eds, Jefferson: Political Writings (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1999), p. 481.

232

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.050

44

On Slavery, Property, and the Constitution: Fifth Lincoln–Douglas Debate (October 7, 1858) The essence of the Dred Scott case is compressed into the sentence which I will now read: “Now, as we have already said in an earlier part of this opinion, upon a different point, the right of property in a slave is distinctly and expressly affirmed in the Constitution.” I repeat it, “The right of property in a slave is distinctly and expressly affirmed in the Constitution!” What is it to be “affirmed” in the Constitution? Made firm in the Constitution – so made that it cannot be separated from the Constitution without breaking the Constitution – durable as the Constitution, and part of the Constitution. Now, remembering the provision of the Constitution which I have read, affirming that that instrument is the supreme law of the land; that the Judges of every State shall be bound by it, any law or Constitution of any State to the contrary notwithstanding; that the right of property in a slave is affirmed in that Constitution, is made, formed into and cannot be separated from it without breaking it; durable as the instrument; part of the instrument; what follows as a short and even syllogistic argument from it? I think it follows, and I submit to the consideration of men capable of arguing, whether as I state it in syllogistic form the argument has any fault in it: Nothing in the Constitution or laws of any State can destroy a right distinctly and expressly affirmed in the Constitution of the United States; The right of property in a slave is distinctly and expressly affirmed in the Constitution of the United States; Therefore, nothing in the Constitution or laws of any State can destroy the right of property in a slave. I believe that no fault can be pointed out in that argument; assuming the truth of the premises, the conclusion, so far as I have capacity at all to 233

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.051

Part II: Notes & Fragments understand it, follows inevitably. There is a fault in it as I think, but the fault is not in the reasoning; but the falsehood in fact is a fault of the premises. I believe that the right of property in a slave is not distinctly and expressly affirmed in the Constitution, and Judge Douglas thinks it is. I believe that the Supreme Court and the advocates of that decision may search in vain for the place in the Constitution where the right of property in a slave is distinctly and expressly affirmed. I say, therefore, that I think one of the premises is not true in fact. But it is true with Judge Douglas. It is true with the Supreme Court who pronounced it. They are estopped from denying it, and being estopped from denying it, the conclusion follows that the Constitution of the United States being the supreme law, no constitution or law can interfere with it. It being affirmed in the decision that the right of property in a slave is distinctly and expressly affirmed in the Constitution, the conclusion inevitably follows that no State law or constitution can destroy that right. I then say to Judge Douglas and to all others, that I think it will take a better answer than a sneer to show that those who have said that the right of property in a slave is distinctly and expressly affirmed in the Constitution, are not prepared to show that no constitution or law can destroy that right. I say I believe it will take a far better argument than a mere sneer to show to the minds of intelligent men that whoever has so said, is not prepared, whenever public sentiment is so far advanced as to justify it, to say the other. [“That’s so.”] This is but an opinion, and the opinion of one very humble man; but it is my opinion that the Dred Scott decision, as it is, never would have been made in its present form if the party that made it had not been sustained previously by the elections. My own opinion is, that the new Dred Scott decision, deciding against the right of the people of the States to exclude slavery, will never be made, if that party is not sustained by the elections. [Cries of “Yes, yes.”]

234

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.051

45

On Labor and Capital 1 (c. 1846–7)

In the early days of the world, the Almighty said to the first of our race “In the sweat of thy face shalt thou eat bread”; and since then, if we except the light and the air of heaven, no good thing has been, or can be enjoyed by us, without having first cost labor. And, inasmuch as most good things are produced by labor, it follows that all such things of right belong to those whose labor has produced them. But it has so happened in all ages of the world, that some have labored, and others have, without labor, enjoyed a large proportion of the fruits. This is wrong, and should not continue. To secure to each laborer the whole product of his labor, or as nearly as possible, is a most worthy object of any good government.

235

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.052

46

On Labor and Capital 2: Address to the Wisconsin State Agricultural Society (September 30, 1859) . . . The world is agreed that labor is the source from which human wants are mainly supplied. There is no dispute upon this point. From this point, however, men immediately diverge. Much disputation is maintained as to the best way of applying and controlling the labor element. By some it is assumed that labor is available only in connection with capital – that nobody labors, unless somebody else, owning capital, somehow, by the use of that capital, induces him to do it. Having assumed this, they proceed to consider whether it is best that capital shall hire laborers, and thus induce them to work by their own consent; or buy them, and drive them to it without their consent. Having proceeded so far they naturally conclude that all laborers are necessarily either hired laborers, or slaves. They further assume that whoever is once a hired laborer, is fatally fixed in that condition for life; and thence again that his condition is as bad as, or worse than that of a slave. This is the “mud-sill” theory.1 But another class of reasoners hold the opinion that there is no such relation between capital and labor, as assumed; and that there is no such thing as a freeman being fatally fixed for life, in the condition of a hired laborer, that both these assumptions are false, and all inferences from them groundless. They hold that labor is prior to, and independent of, capital; that, in fact, capital is the fruit of labor, and could never have existed if labor had not first existed – that labor can exist without capital,

1

The theory proposed by South Carolina Senator J.H. Hammond in an 1858 speech in the US Senate. He claimed that every civilized society must have a class of poor laborers or slaves as its economic foundation or “mud-sill.”

236

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.053

On Labor & Capital 2 (1859) but that capital could never have existed without labor. Hence they hold that labor is the superior – greatly the superior – of capital. They do not deny that there is, and probably always will be, a relation between labor and capital. The error, as they hold, is in assuming that the whole labor of the world exists within that relation. A few men own capital; and that few avoid labor themselves, and with their capital, hire, or buy, another few to labor for them. A large majority belong to neither class – neither work for others, nor have others working for them. Even in all our slave States, except South Carolina, a majority of the whole people of all colors, are neither slaves nor masters. In these Free States, a large majority are neither hirers nor hired. Men, with their families – wives, sons and daughters – work for themselves, on their farms, in their houses and in their shops, taking the whole product to themselves, and asking no favors of capital on the one hand, nor of hirelings or slaves on the other. It is not forgotten that a considerable number of persons mingle their own labor with capital; that is, labor with their own hands, and also buy slaves or hire freemen to labor for them; but this is only a mixed, and not a distinct class. No principle stated is disturbed by the existence of this mixed class. Again, as has already been said, the opponents of the “mud-sill” theory insist that there is not, of necessity, any such thing as the free hired laborer being fixed to that condition for life. There is demonstration for saying this. Many independent men, in this assembly, doubtless a few years ago were hired laborers. And their case is almost if not quite the general rule. The prudent, penniless beginner in the world, labors for wages awhile, saves a surplus with which to buy tools or land, for himself; then labors on his own account another while, and at length hires another new beginner to help him. This, say its advocates, is free labor – the just and generous, and prosperous system, which opens the way for all – gives hope to all, and energy, and progress, and improvement of condition to all. If any continue through life in the condition of the hired laborer, it is not the fault of the system, but because of either a dependent nature which prefers it, or improvidence, folly, or singular misfortune. I have said this much about the elements of labor generally, as introductory to the consideration of a new phase which that element is in process of assuming. The old general rule was that educated people did not perform manual labor. They managed to eat their bread, leaving the toil of producing it to the uneducated. This was not an insupportable evil to the working bees, so long as the class of drones remained very small. But now, especially in these free States, nearly all are educated – quite too nearly all, to leave the 237

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.053

Part II: Notes & Fragments labor of the uneducated, in any wise adequate to the support of the whole. It follows from this that henceforth educated people must labor. Otherwise, education itself would become a positive and intolerable evil. No country can sustain, in idleness, more than a small percentage of its numbers. The great majority must labor at something productive. From these premises the problem springs, “How can labor and education be the most satisfactorily combined?” By the “mud-sill” theory it is assumed that labor and education are incompatible; and any practical combination of them impossible. According to that theory, a blind horse upon a tread-mill, is a perfect illustration of what a laborer should be – all the better for being blind, that he could not tread out of place, or kick understandingly. According to that theory, the education of laborers is not only useless, but pernicious, and dangerous. In fact, it is, in some sort, deemed a misfortune that laborers should have heads at all. Those same heads are regarded as explosive materials, only to be safely kept in damp places, as far as possible from that peculiar sort of fire which ignites them. A Yankee who could invent a strong-handed man without a head would receive the everlasting gratitude of the “mud-sill” advocates. But Free Labor says “no!” Free Labor argues that, as the Author of man makes every individual with one head and one pair of hands, it was probably intended that heads and hands should cooperate as friends; and that particular head should direct and control that particular pair of hands. As each man has one mouth to be fed, and one pair of hands to furnish food, it was probably intended that that particular pair of hands should feed that particular mouth – that each head is the natural guardian, director, and protector of the hands and mouth inseparably connected with it; and that being so, every head should be cultivated, and improved, by whatever will add to its capacity for performing its charge. In one word Free Labor insists on universal education. I have so far stated the opposite theories of “Mud-Sill ” and “Free Labor” without declaring any preference of my own between them. On an occasion like this I ought not to declare any. I suppose, however, I shall not be mistaken, in assuming as a fact, that the people of Wisconsin prefer free labor, with its natural companion, education . . .

238

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.053

47

On Labor and Capital 3: Speech at New Haven, Connecticut (March 6, 1860) . . . I am glad to see that a system of labor prevails in New England under which laborers can strike when they want to [Cheers], where they are not obliged to work under all circumstances, and are not tied down and obliged to labor whether you pay them or not! [Cheers] I like the system which lets a man quit when he wants to, and wish it might prevail everywhere. [Tremendous applause] One of the reasons why I am opposed to Slavery is just here. What is the true condition of the laborer? I take it that it is best for all to leave each man free to acquire property as fast as he can. Some will get wealthy. I don’t believe in a law to prevent a man from getting rich; it would do more harm than good. So while we do not propose any war upon capital, we do wish to allow the humblest man an equal chance to get rich with everybody else. [Applause] When one starts poor, as most do in the race of life, free society is such that he knows he can better his condition; he knows that there is no fixed condition of labor, for his whole life. I am not ashamed to confess that twenty-five years ago I was a hired laborer, mauling rails, at work on a flat-boat – just what might happen to any poor man’s son! [Applause] I want every man to have the chance – and I believe a black man is entitled to it – in which he can better his condition – when he may look forward and hope to be a hired laborer this year and the next, work for himself afterward, and finally to hire men to work for him! That is the true system. Up here in New England, you have a soil that scarcely sprouts black-eyed beans, and yet where will you find wealthy men so wealthy, and poverty so rarely in extremity? There is not another such place on earth! [Cheers] I desire that if you get too thick here, and find it hard to better your condition on this soil, you may have a chance to strike and go somewhere else, where you may not be degraded, nor have your family corrupted by forced rivalry with negro slaves . . . 239

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.054

48

On Liberty: Address at Sanitary Fair, Baltimore, Maryland (April 18, 1864) . . . The world has never had a good definition of the word liberty, and the American people, just now, are much in want of one. We all declare for liberty; but in using the same word we do not all mean the same thing. With some the word liberty may mean for each man to do as he pleases with himself, and the product of his labor; while with others the same word may mean for some men to do as they please with other men, and the product of other men’s labor. Here are two, not only different, but incompatible things, called by the same name – liberty. And it follows that each of the things is, by the respective parties, called by two different and incompatible names – liberty and tyranny. The shepherd drives the wolf from the sheep’s throat, for which the sheep thanks the shepherd as a liberator, while the wolf denounces him for the same act as the destroyer of liberty, especially as the sheep was a black one. Plainly the sheep and the wolf are not agreed upon a definition of the word liberty; and precisely the same difference prevails to-day among us human creatures, even in the North, and all professing to love liberty. Hence we behold the processes by which thousands are daily passing from under the yoke of bondage, hailed by some as the advance of liberty, and bewailed by others as the destruction of all liberty. Recently, as it seems, the people of Maryland have been doing something to define liberty; and thanks to them that, in what they have done, the wolf’s dictionary, has been repudiated . . .

240

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.055

49

On the Thirteenth Amendment (abolition of slavery): Fourth Annual Message to Congress (December 6, 1864)

. . . At the last session of Congress a proposed amendment of the Constitution abolishing slavery throughout the United States, passed the Senate, but failed for lack of the requisite two-thirds vote in the House of Representatives. Although the present is the same Congress, and nearly the same members, and without questioning the wisdom or patriotism of those who stood in opposition, I venture to recommend the reconsideration and passage of the measure at the present session. Of course the abstract question is not changed; but an intervening election shows, almost certainly, that the next Congress will pass the measure if this does not. Hence there is only a question of time as to when the proposed amendment will go to the States for their action. And as it is to so go, at all events, may we not agree that the sooner the better? It is not claimed that the election has imposed a duty on members to change their views or their votes, any further than, as an additional element to be considered, their judgment may be affected by it. It is the voice of the people now, for the first time, heard upon the question. In a great national crisis, like ours, unanimity of action among those seeking a common end is very desirable – almost indispensable. And yet no approach to such unanimity is attainable, unless some deference shall be paid to the will of the majority, simply because it is the will of the majority. In this case the common end is the maintenance of the Union; and, among the means to secure that end, such will, through the election, is most clearly declared in favor of such constitutional amendment. 241

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:53, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784.056

Index Abolitionism 188 Abolitionists xvi Adams, John 90 African slave trade 23 American Revolution xix, xxxiii, 17, 18, 35, 173 American Revolutionary War 144 Anderson, Major Robert xxxii, xl, 126 Articles of Confederation 118, 133 Bacon, Francis xxxvii Bill of Rights 93 Birchard, Matthew xli, 181 Black Hawk War xvii, 7 Blackstone, Sir William xviii Blount, William 94 Booth, John Wilkes xv Border States 128, 129, 139, 155, 203, 204 Breckenridge, John C. xxx, xlii, 176 Brown, John xlii, 103, 105, 106 Buchanan, Commodore Franklin 176 Buchanan, James xlii, 56, 59 Buckner, Gen. Simon B. 176 Burnside, Ambrose 172, 177 Calhoun, John C. xxiii, xlii, 71, 72, 90, 226 Capital 235, 236 Chase, Salmon P. 69 Choate, Rufus 90 Civil War xxxii, 124 Clay, Henry xviii, xxxix, xliii, 7, 70, 72, 74, 75, 85 Colonization 140, 142, 143, 163

Colonization of Slaves 53, 159 Compensated Emancipation 139, 188 Confederate States of America xxxii, xl Conkling, James C. xxxiv, xli, 186, 207, 208 Constitution of the United States of America xxii, xxxii, xxxvi, 18, 20, 21, 27, 33, 37, 45, 46, 47, 58, 59, 60, 70, 78, 87, 93, 98, 106, 107, 108, 112, 116, 117, 118, 119, 120, 122, 129, 133, 137, 147, 149, 173, 174, 176, 178, 180, 187, 188, 194, 198, 203, 204, 233, 234 Cooper Union Address xxix, xl, 92 Copperheads xxxiii, 172, 186 Corning, Erastus xxxv, 172 Crittenden, John J. 75 Curtis, Benjamin R. 46, 44 Davis, Jefferson xxxii, xl, xliii, 208 Declaration of Independence xx, xxii, xxiv, xxvi, xxvii, xxxiii, xxxvi, 15, 25, 30, 33, 35, 46, 47, 49, 50, 51, 70, 71, 72, 73, 74, 113, 114, 118, 136, 231 Democratic Party xxviii, xxx Differences between the Democratic and Republican parties 63 Douglas, Stephen A. xviii, xxi, xxiv, xxv, xxvi, xxx, xxxix, xliii, 9, 22, 24, 26, 38, 41, 42, 43, 44, 45, 46, 48, 50, 51, 52, 54, 60, 61, 62, 63, 64, 68, 69, 70, 71, 72, 75, 78, 79, 80, 82, 84, 88, 92, 93, 98, 109, 179, 230, 231, 234 Douglass, Frederick xv, xxvi, xxxvi, xliv Dred Scott Case 60, 98

242

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784

Index Dred Scott Decision xxiii, xxiv, xxv, xxvi, xxix, xxxvii, xl, 41, 55, 57, 59, 63, 64, 67, 68, 69, 88, 234 Early Life and Education, Lincoln xxii Emancipation 196 Emancipation of Slaves 47, 159, 160, 161, 162, 164, 189 Emancipation Proclamation xxxiv, xxxv, xxxvii, xli, 149, 188, 196, 207, 214 Euclid 5, 90 Expansion of Slavery 63, 68, 76 Fame xxxvii Few, William 94 Final Emancipation Proclamation 167 First Inaugural Address xxxii, 115 Fitzhugh, George 226 Fitzsimmons, Thomas 94 Foreign slave trade 156 Fort Sumter xxxii, xli, 124, 126, 127, 128 Founding, American xix Franklin, Benjamin 98 Frémont, Gen. John C. 204 Fugitive Slave Act 121 Fugitive Slave Clause of the Constitution 156 Fugitive Slave Law 32, 87 Garrison, William Lloyd xxix, xxxvi Gettysburg Address xxxvi, xli, 191 Grant, Ulysses S. xliv, 213 Greeley, Horace xxxiii, xliv, 206 Habeas corpus xxxv, 130, 153, 174, 175, 176, 178, 179, 182 Hamilton, Alexander xxxvii, 98 Hammond, J. H. 236 Harper’s Ferry 103, 104, 106, 129 Harrison, William Henry xix, xxxix Helper, Hinton R. 106 Herndon, William H. xx, xliv, 20 Hodges, Albert G. xli, 203 “House Divided” Speech xxv, xl, 54 Jackson, Andrew 45, 46, 179 Jefferson, Thomas xlv, 33, 89, 105, 113, 231 Johnson, Richard M. 230

Johnston, Gen. Joseph E. 176 Johnston, Sarah Bush xvi, 4 Kansas–Nebraska Act xxi, xxii, xxiii, xxv, xxxvii, xxxix, 22, 37, 41, 48, 55, 56, 57, 63, 69 Know-Nothing 39 Labor xxvii, xxix, 163, 164, 201, 202, 222, 235, 236 Lafayette, Marquis de 102 Lecompton Constitution 57, 76 Lee, Robert E. xlv, 176, 187, 213 Liberty xxx, 240 Lincoln, Mary Todd xix, xxxix, xlv, 8, 40 Lincoln, Nancy Hanks 4, xvi Lincoln, Robert xxix Lincoln, Thomas xvi Lincoln–Douglas Debates xxv, xxvi Louisiana Purchase xxi, 95, 96 Lovejoy, Elijah 11, 14 M’Henry, James 94 Machiavelli, Niccolò xix Madison, James 94 Magruder, Gen. John B. 170, 176 McLean, John 44 McLellan, George B. xlv Memory xix Mexican–American War xx, 8, 20, 80, 182 Mexican Session xxi Mifflin, Thomas 93 Missouri Compromise xxi, xxiii, 9, 22, 24, 30, 31, 32, 37, 41, 64–65, 96 Morris, Gouverneur 98 “mud-sill” theory 236, 237, 238 Nelson, Samuel 60 Nullification Question 80 Peace Democrats xxxiii, xxxiv Pettit, John 34, 72, 90 Phillips, Wendell xv Pierce, Franklin 59 Pierce, Henry L. xxx Political religion xix, 15 Polk, James K. xx, 20 Popular Sovereignty xxi, 22, 36, 42, 54, 65, 66 Presidential Power, Limits 20

243

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784

Index Stanton, Edwin M. xlvii Stephens, Alexander H. xlvii Stone, Dan xviii, 8 Stowe, Harriet Beecher xlvii Stringfellow, Benjamin F. 39 Stuart, Major John Todd xviii, xlvii, 7

Preston, Gen. William B. 176 Proclamation Suspending the Writ of Habeas Corpus xxxv Property xxx, 202, 233 Reconstruction xli, 196, 197, 213, 214 Reeder, Andrew H. 37 Religion xix Remembrance xix Republican Party xxii, xxix, xl Robinson, Charles D. 206 Ross, Frederick A. 225 Rousseau, Jean-Jacques xix Rutledge, John 98 Sandford, John F.A. xlvi Scott, Dred xxiii, xlvi, 52 Second Inaugural Address (Lincoln) xli, 210 Self-government 16, 24, 26, 28, 55, 56, 76 Seward, William H. xxx, xlvi Shakespeare, William xvi Sherman, Roger 93 Sherman, William Tecumseh xlvi Slavery xvi, xvii, xxii, xxiv, xxv, xxvii, xxviii, xxxi, xxxvi, 26, 29, 30, 32, 41, 54, 63, 64–65, 73, 78, 93, 94, 98, 105, 106, 107, 109, 110, 121, 144, 148, 156, 158, 159, 164, 194, 203, 211, 223, 239 Slavery, Extension of 55, 81, 100 Speech on Reconstruction xli Speed, Joshua xvii, xxxix, xlvii, 36 “Squatter Sovereignty” 55, 56

Taney, Roger B. xxiii, xxiv, xxxv, xlviii, 44, 46, 47, 49, 60, 72 Territorial Act 95 Texas, Annexation of 80 Thirteenth Amendment to the Constitution of the United States of America xxiv, xxxvii, xli, 72, 213, 241 Three-fifths Clause of the Constitution of the United States of America xxxi, 27, 77 Trumbull, Lyman xxii, xl, xlviii, 56, 74 Turner, Nat 104 U.S. Supreme Court xxiii Vallandigham, Clement L. xxxv, xlviii, 172, 177, 179, 180, 181, 182, 183, 184, 185 Washington, George 95, 102 Whig xviii, 32, 39 Whig Party 32 Whitman, Walt xlviii Williamson, Hugh 93 Wilmot Proviso 39, 39 Young Men’s Lyceum xix

244

Downloaded from https://www.cambridge.org/core. Fudan University, on 05 Dec 2020 at 01:36:52, subject to the Cambridge Core terms of use, available at https://www.cambridge.org/core/terms. https://doi.org/10.1017/CBO9781139034784